v -V* P< ^ < 1 JAMES K.MOFFITT PAULINE FORE MOFFITT LIBRARY UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA GENERAL LIBRARY, BERKELEY mtfc a By the same Author. A PLAIN COMMENTARY ON THE FOUR HOLY GOSPELS. 7 Vols. Fcap. 8vo. NINETY SHORT SERMONS FOR FAMILY READING. 2 Vols. Fcap. 8vO. THE PORTRAIT OF A CHRISTIAN GENTLEMAN : A MEMOIR OF P. F. TYTLER, ESQ. (2nd. Ed.) 1859. ClOWH 8vO. Inspiration anti Interpretation: SEVEN SERMONS PREACHED BEFORE THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD : WITH PRELIMINARY REMARKS BEING AN ANSWER TO A VOLUME ENTITLED antJ BY THE REV. JOHN WILLIAM BURGON, M.A., FELLOW OF ORIEL COLLEGE, AND SELECT PREACHER. I CANNOT HOLD MY PEACE, BECAUSE THOU HAST HEARD, O MY SOUL, THE SOUND OF THE TRUMPET, THE ALARM OF WAR. xfortr Sr Honfcon : J. H. AND JAS. PARKER, 1861. nfeb bg Hfrsars. Barker, Cornmarbt, 6R50 E 12 TO THE REVEREND WILLIAM SEWELL, D.D., FELLOW OF EXETER COLLEGE : LATE PROFESSOR OF MORAL PHILOSOPHY IN THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD; AND LATE WARDEN OF ST. PETER'S COLLEGE, RADLEY. MY DEAR FRIEND, Let me have the satisfaction of inscribing this volume to yourself. I know of no one who has more faithfully devoted himself to the sacred cause of Christian Educa- tion : no one to whom those blessed Truths are more precious, which of late have been so unscrupulously as- sailed, and which the ensuing pages are humbly designed to uphold in their integrity. Affectionately yours, JOHN W. BURGON. 344 AEI TAP KAI 'AIPE2EIS 'EN 'TMIN EINAI, 'INA OI AOKIMOI *ANEPOI FENHNTAI 'EN 'TMIN. Ac si diceret : Ob hoc haereseon non statim divinitus eradicantur auctores, ut probati manifest! fiant ; id est, ut unusquisque quam tenax, et fidelis, et fixus Catholics fidei sit amator, appareat. Et revera cum quaBque no-vitas ebullit, statim cernitur frumentorum gravitas, et levitas palearum : tune sine magno molimine excutitur ab area, quod nullo pondere intra aream tenebatur. YINCENTIFS , Adversus ffcereses, 20. PREFACE. F AM unwilling that this volume should go forth to the world without some account of its origin and of its contents. I. Appointed last year, (without solicitation on his part,) to the office of Select Preacher, the present writer was called upon at the commencement of the October Term to address the University. His Sermon, (the first in the volume,) was simply intended to em- body the advice which he had already orally given to every Undergraduate who had sought counsel at his hands for many years past in Oxford; advice which, to say the truth, he was almost weary of re- peating. Nothing more weighty or more apposite, at all events, presented itself, for an introductory ad- dress : nor has a review of the current of religious opinion, either before or since, produced any change of opinion as to the importance of what was on that first occasion advocated. Another, and another, and yet another preaching turn unexpectedly presented itself, in the course of the same Term ; and the Ilnd, Illrd, and IVth of the ensuing Sermons, (preached on alternate Sundays,) were the result. The study of the Bible had been advocated in the first Sermon ; but it was urged from a hundred quarters that a considerable amount of un- Vlll PREFACE. belief prevailed respecting that very Book for which it was evident that the preacher claimed entire per- fection and absolute supremacy. The singular fallacy of these last days, that Natural Science, in some un- explained manner, has already demolished, or is in- evitably destined to demolish a , the Book of Divine Eevelation, appeared to be the fallacy which had emerged into most offensive prominence ; and to this, he accordingly addressed himself. It will not, surely, be thought by any one who reads the Ilnd of these Sermons that its author is so weak as to look with jealousy on the progress of Physical Science. His alarm does not arise from the cultivation of the noblest study but one, viz. the study of GOD'S Works ; but from the prevalent neglect of the noblest study of all, viz. the study of'Go&s Word. His quarrel is not with the Professors of Natural Science, but with those who are mere Pretenders to it. Moreover, he makes no secret of his displeasure at the undue importance which has of late been claimed for Natural Science; and which is sufficiently implied by the prevalent fashion of naming it without any distinguishing epi- thet, as " Science, " absolutely : just as if Theology were not a Science also b ! It is not necessary to speak particularly of the con- tents of the next two Sermons; except to say that the train of thought thus started conducted the author inevitably over ground which was already occupied in the public mind by a volume which had already a The reader is invited to refer to the passages cited in the present volume, at pp. Ixxxvii. and Ixxxviii. b See p. 47 to p. 50. Also Appendix (B.) PREFACE. IX obtained some notoriety, and which has since become altogether infamous. Enough of the contents of that unhappy production I had read to be convinced that in a literary, certainly in a Theological point of view, it was a most worthless performance ; and I recognized with equal sorrow and alarm that it was but the ma- tured expression of opinions which had been fostering for years in certain quarters : opinions which, occa- sionally, had been ventilated from the University pulpit ; or which had been deliberately advocated in print c ; and which it was now hinted were formidably maintained, and would be found hard to answer. As- tonished, (not by any means for the first time in my life,) at the apathy which seemed to prevail on ques- tions of such vital moment, I determined at all events not to be a party to a craven silence ; and denounced from the University pulpit with hearty indignation that whole system of unbelief, (if system it can be called,) which has been growing up for years among us d ; and which, I was and am convinced, must be openly met, not silently ignored until the mischief c In illustration of what is meant, may be particularized a highly objectionable Sermon which Dr. Temple preached before the Uni- versity some years ago, and which occasioned no small offence to many who heard it, as all in Oxford well remember. It was al- most as unsound as the same writer's Essay "On the Education of the World," which, to the best of my remembrance, it strongly resembled. A printed Sermon by Dr. Temple may also be referred to, " preached on Act-Sunday, July 1, 1860, before the University of Oxford, during the Meeting of the British Association," entitled " The present delations of Science to Religion." Professor Jowett's handling of the Doctrine of the Atonement, needs only to be re- ferred to. 1 Page 80 to 82. X PREFACE. becomes unmanageable : met, too, by building up men in THE TRUTH : above all, by giving Theological instruction to those who are destined to become Pro- fessors of Theological Science, and are about to under- take the cure of souls In this spirit, I asserted the opposite fundamental verities ; and so, would have been content to dismiss the " Essays and Ee views" from my thoughts for ever. But in the meantime, the respectability of the au- thors of that volume had attracted to their work an increasing share of notice. An able article in the 1 Westminster Eeview ' first aroused public attention. A still abler in the ' Quarterly 7 awoke the Church to a sense of the enormity of the offence which had been committed. It was not that danger was apprehended. There could be but one opinion as to the essential im- potence of the attack. But the circumstances which aroused public indignation were twofold. First, Here was a conspiracy against the Faith. Seven Critics had avowedly combined "to illustrate the ad- vantage derivable to the cause of Religious and Moral Truth from a free handling, in a becoming spirit, of" what they were pleased to characterize as " subjects peculiarly liable to suffer by the repetition of con- ventional language, and from traditional modes of treatment e ." They prefixed to their joint labours the expression of a " hope that their volume would be re- ceived as an attempt "to do this. That their allusion was to the Creeds, Articles, Book of Common Prayer and Administration of the Sacraments, was obvious. Equally obvious was the ^-becoming spirit, the arro- 6 "To the Reader," prefixed to Essays and Reviews. PREFACE. XI gance and the hostility, with which all those sacred things were handled by those seven writers. Secondly, "Essays and Beviews" attracted notice because six of its authors were Ministers of the Church of England. Here were six Clergymen openly making light of their sacred profession, and apparently worse than regardless of their Ordination vows. As an in- fidel but certainly in this instance most truthful as well as able Keviewer, remarked concerning the work in question, " In their ordinary, if not plain sense, there has been discarded the Word of GOD, the Crea- tion, the Fall, the Bedemption, Justification, Begene- ration, and Salvation, Miracles, Inspiration, Prophecy, Heaven and Hell, Eternal punishment and a Day of Judgment, Creeds, Liturgies, and Articles, the truth of Jewish History and of Gospel narrative; a sense of doubt thrown over even the Incarnation, the Besur- rection, and Ascension, the Divinity of the Second Person, and the personality of the Third. It may be that this is a true view of Christianity ; but we insist, in the name of common sense, that it is a new view. Surely it is waste of time to argue that it is agreeable to Scripture, and not contrary to the Canons M" f ' Keo- Christianity ' in the Westminster Review, No. 36. How true is what follows: "The Bible is one; and it is too late now to propose to divide it. We shall only point out that the moral value of the Gospel teaching becomes suspicious when the whole miraculous element is discarded. " We certainly do think that the Gospels assert a miraculous Incarnation, Resurrection, and Ascension ; and that the Epistles teach Original Sin, and a vicarious Sacrifice. If this be doubted by our authors, it is sufficient for us to say that such is the im- pression they have created on all ages of Christians." " We desire that if the Bible, or any part of it be retained as Xll PREFACE. This twofold phenomenon, which has shocked the public conscience and perplexed common sense, has been the sole cause of the amount of attention " Essays and Keviews" has excited. Laymen might have com- bined to produce this volume, almost unheeded. An obscure Clergyman might possibly have published any one of these seven papers ; and with a rebuke for his immorality or his insolence, he would probably have been unnoticed by the world. But here is a combination of Doctors of Divinity; Professors; Tel- Holy Writ, it be defended as a miraculous gift to Man, and not by distorting the principles of modern Science. Let the Essayists be assured that there exists no middle course; that there is no Inspiration more than is natural, yet not supernatural ; no Theology which can abandon its doctrines and retain its authority" Lastly, with what sickening and almost Satanic power, does the same writer invite the Essayists and Eeviewers to make shipwreck of their souls in the following terrible passage. And yet, who sees not that on their principles absolute and professed unbelief is in- evitable ? He says : " How long shall this last ? Until men have the courage to bury their dead convictions out of sight, and the greater courage to form new. All honour to these writers for the boldness with which they have, at great risk, urged their opinions. Eut what is wanted is strength not merely to face the world, but to face ones own conclusions. We know the cost. It must be endured. Let each who has thought and felt for himself, ask him- self first what he does not believe, and then, if wise or needful, avow it. Next let him ask himself what he does believe, and pursue it to its true and full conclusions. Neither loose accommo- dation nor sonorous principles will long give them rest. It is of as little use to surrender the more glaring contradictions of Science as it is to evaporate discredited doctrine into a few vague precepts. That end will not be attained by our authors by subliming Religion into an emotion, and making an armistice with Science. It will not be obtained by any unreal adaptation; nor by this, which is, of all recent adaptations, at once the most able, the most earnest, and the most suicidal" PREFACE. Xlll lows, nay Heads of Colleges ; Instructors of England's Youth; Teachers of Eeligion; Chaplains to Koyal and noble personages ! The Jesuitical notice prefixed to the book, (depre- cating the idea that its authors should be held re- sponsible, except severally for their several articles,) completed the scandal. As if seven men, each armed with his own appropriate weapon of violence, breaking into a house, and spreading ruin around them, could "readily be understood," (to quote their own lan- guage,) to incur each a limited responsibility ! Charity doubtless would have rejoiced to spread her mantle over any one or more of the number, "who, on seeing the extravagantly vicious manner in which some of his associates had performed their part, had openly declared his disgust and abhorrence of such unfaithfulness, and had withdrawn his name g ," with some expression of sorrow for the irreparable mischief which he had actively helped to occasion. But long before nine editions of " Essays and Reviews" had appeared, it became apparent that each of the living authors, (for one, alas, has already gone to his ac- count !) has made himself responsible for the whole work h . Nay, there are some of the number who * The Bishop of Exeter to Dr. Temple. h The Bishop of Manchester exactly expressed the general opinion, when he said, " Nor will I for a single moment, however my per- sonal feelings might interfere, conceal my deliberate conviction that every partner in that work is equally guilty." (Guardian, Ap. 10, 1861, p. 341.) But the most faithful language of all came from the Bishop of Exeter in his crushing reply to an inquiry put to him by Dr. Temple. " I avow that I hold every one of the seven persons acting together for such an object to be alike re- XIV PREFACE. make no secret of their satisfaction at what has hap- pened; and seem desirous only that their volume should obtain a yet wider circulation 1 . " Essays and Ee views," as already stated, with the turn of the year, experienced a vast increase of noto- riety. The entire Bench of Bishops condemned the book ; and both Houses of Convocation endorsed the Episcopal censure. A very careful perusal of the volume became necessary; and it proved to be in- finitely weaker in point of ability, infinitely more fatal in point of intention, than could have been sus- pected from the known respectability and position of its authors. A clamour also arose for a Eeply to these Seven Champions, not exactly of Christendom. sponsible for the several acts of every individual among them in executing their avowed common purpose." 1 A letter from Dr. Rowland Williams, which has appeared in the newspapers, contains the following language with reference to the American reprint of " Essays and Reviews :" " I confess my- self personally gratified that my own work, and that of my far more distinguished coadjutors, with whom it is sufficient honour for me to be included in the same volume, should have obtained the honour of a reprint in another hemisphere. Still more would I hail the circumstance as an auspicious token of the sympathy which should prevail between kindred nations, as regards subjects of the highest import, and as a sign of the prospects of Christian freedom beyond the Atlantic " I have not yet discovered any community or individual possessing the right to cast the first stone at those who interpret the Bible in freedom, and who subordinate its letter to its spirit, or its parts to its whole. Even if Holy Scripture were, as is popularly fancied, the foundation, and not, as I believe, the expression and the memorial, of Religious Truth in man, it would be absurd to ren- der it honours essentially different from those which it claims for itself, or to make it a master, where it claims only to be a servant." PREFACE. XV " You condemn : but why do you not reply ?" be- came quite a popular form of reproach. It was useless to urge, in private, such considera- tions as the following : To reply to a volume of 433 pages, each of which contains a fallacy or a falsity, while some pages are packed full of both, is a serious undertaking. Besides, the book has been replied to already ; for there is scarcely an objection urged within its pages which was not better urged, and effectually disposed of, in the last century. Nay, every good Eeview of " Essays and Ee views" has ansivered the book : for what signify the details, if the fundamental lie has been detected, and unrelentingly exposed ? The man who plants his heel on the ser- pent's head, and refuses to withdraw it, can afford to disregard the tortuous writhings of the long supple body. Again. These attacks are seven. Must seven men with " concert and comparison," with leisure and inclination too, be procured to demolish this flimsy compound of dogmatism and unbelief? to disperse these cloudy doubts, and to analyse and repel these many ambiguous statements ? Once more. A fool can assert, and in a moment, that ' There is no GOD. J But it requires a wise man to refute the lie ; and his refutation will probably demand a volume. I say, it was in vain to urge such considerations as these. "Why does no one reply to these 'Essays and Ee- views ?' " was asked, till, I apprehend, pens enough have been unsheathed to do the work effectually. It struck me, in the meantime, that I should be employing myself not unprofitably at such a juncture, if (laying aside all other work for a month or two) XVI PREFACE. I were to attempt a short reply to the volume in ques- tion, myself; and to combine it with the publication of the Sermons I had already preached ; and which I had the comfort of learning had not only been favourably received by some of those who heard them, but had attracted some slight notice outside the University also. Accordingly, with not a little re- luctancej in the month of February I began. The Destructive part of the argument, I determined to ad- dress to the younger members of my own College, men with whom I live in daily intimacy, and on terms of private friendship ; and whom, above all, I desired to protect against the influence of that "moral poison," (as the Bishop of Exeter describes it,) of which the world has lately heard so much. The Constructive part of the argument, I resolved to complete as opportunities might oifer, in my Sermons. One such opportunity presented itself early in Lent ; of which I availed myself to establish some funda- mental truths relative to the Interpretation of Holy Writ k . By favour of the Vice Chancellor, the pro- mise of yet another preaching turn was obtained. It appeared best to avail myself of the opportunity to consider the chief objections which have been brought against the Bible from the marvellous character of some of its contents *. An University Sermon preached exactly ten years ago, (on the Doctrine of Accommoda- tion,) supplied an important link in the argument. . . . Thus the unscientific shape in which the present volume appears, is explained ; and its want of exact method is accounted for. Let me add, that but for k Serm. Y. See Sermon VII. PREFACE. XV11 the forward state of what I like to regard as the Constructive part of the present volume, (and which I am not without a humble hope will secure for the rest a more than ephemeral interest,) I should have been slow indeed to undertake the distasteful task of answering a work of which I have long since been heartily weary. II. And now, for a few words on the general ques- tion which has called out these " Sermons" and " Pre- liminary Remarks." At the root of the whole mischief of these last days lies disbelief in the Bible as the Word of GOD. This is the fundamental error. Dangerous enough is it to the moral and intellectual nature of Man, when the authority of the Church is doubted: or rather, this is the first downward step. Not to believe that CHRIST bequeathed to His Church a Divine form of polity : not to believe that He set officers over His Kingdom, of which He is Himself the sole invisible Head : not to believe that He invested His Apostles with authority to delegate to others the Commission He had Himself conveyed to them; and that, by virtue of such transmitted powers, the Church has authority in the Ministration of GOD'S Word and Sacraments: not to believe that He vouchsafed to His Church extraordinary guidance at the first, and that He vouchsafes to His Church effectual guidance still : an utter want of faith in the Church and her Ordinances, is the first step, I repeat, in a soul's downward progress. Next comes an impatience of Creeds. It has been falsely asserted by an Essayist and Reviewer that XV111 PREFACE. " Constantine inaugurated the principle of doctrinal limitation" 1 ;" by which is meant that definitions of Faith date from the Council of Mcsea, A.D. 325 : the truth being that the famous (Ecumenical Council which was then held did but rule the consubstantiality of the SON with the FATHER : whereas elaborate -Creeds exist of a far earlier date ; as all are aware. Creeds indeed are coeval with Christianity itself 11 . "What need to add that when the decree of the first (Ecume- nical Council concerning the true faith in the adorable Trinity has been set at nought, all other decisions of the Church are disregarded also ? That marvellous concrete fact, the Bible, has next to be encountered. Unmethodical as it seems to be, the Bible arrests a man in his impatient course with many a significant History, many an unmanageable precept. Much of its contents, it is true, are of such a nature that they may be glossed over, explained away, -ignored, set aside. The reading is doubtful : or there are two opinions, (perhaps twenty,) concern- ing it : or the language may be figurative : or the words are not to be pressed too closely : or a perverse logic may pretend to find in it agreeable confirmation, instead of stern reproof. Not a few places there are, however, which defy any such handling; stubborn rocks which refuse to yield a single trace of the wished-for vegetation, in return for the most deter- mined husbandry. Nothing of the kind ever will or can be made to germinate upon them. They are absolutely unmanageable, and hopelessly in the way of the man who is determined to cast off restraint, m Essays and Reviews, p. 166. n See p. clxxvii. to p. clxxxiii. PREFACE. XIX whether spiritual, intellectual, or moral. He is for being lawless ; or at least, without law : but the Bible is unmistakably an external Law, and is opposed to him. The Bible is his enemy, and the Bible claims to be Divine. . . . What need to state that to deny the Inspiration of the Bible, and to undermine its autho- rity, and to explain away its statements, becomes the next object of the unbeliever? It is precisely at this stage of his downward progress that public attention is excited, and public indignation aroused. The Church, (like its Divine Author,) may be outraged, and few will be found to remonstrate. The Creeds may be assailed, (especially " one unhappy Creed !"), and it is hinted that these are speculative matters, on which none should pronounce too dogmatically. But (thank GOD !) Englishmen yet love their Bible ; and Common Sense is able to see that an uninspired Bible is no Bible at all. At the assault upon the Bible, therefore, as I said, an indignant outcry is raised, as now. Systematically to cope with such irreverence, such entire ignorance rather of all the questions at issue, from the pulpit, would be clearly impracticable. Men require to be taught "which be the first principles." They require to be educated in Divinity. And thus we come back to the fontal source of all the mischief of our own Day. "We, in Oxford, give no systematic training to our Candidates for Holy Orders. We do not even attempt it. Nay, incredible to relate, we do not give them any training at all. And the fatal con- sequences of this omission are to be seen on every side. A youth no sooner gets through " the Schools," XX PREFACE. and graduates in Arts, than he inquires for a Curacy. During the three months, perhaps six, of interval, he makes himself sufficiently acquainted with the Alpha- bet of Divinity to enable him to satisfy the very modest requirements of the Bishop's examination; after which he finds himself at once actively engaged in the Bishopric of souls and the profession of Theo- logy. It is probable that the realities of the Minis- terial calling, and the eminently practical nature of such an one's daily life, will keep this man from error. Not so his more, shall I say, or less? fortunate fellow-student ; who, by hard self-relying labour, having obtained distinction in the Schools, finds him- self in the enjoyment of a fellowship, and straightway engages in the work of tuition. This man, whose fellowship is his " title" for orders, studies Divinity, or neglects it, at pleasure : and if he studies it, he studies it in his own way. He has read a little of heathen Ethics with great care; or he has trained himself to the exactness of mathematical inference. With the purest idiom of ancient Greece he has also made himself very familiar. He is besides a Master of Arts. What need to add that such an one is not therefore a Master of Divinity? possesses no qualifi- cation which authorizes him to dogmatize about any one department of Theological Science ? The plain truth is, (and it is really better to speak plainly,) the plain truth is, that the offensive Ser- mons one sometimes hears from the University pulpit, the offensive Essays and Eeviews which have lately occasioned so much public scandal, are the work of men who discuss that which they do not understand ; PREFACE. XXI profess that which they were never, at any time of their life, taught. Their method of handling a text is altogether unique and extraordinary. Their re- marks concerning Divine things are even puerile. Their very citations of Scripture are incorrect. Their cool affectation of superiority of knowledge, their claim to intellectual power, would be laughable, were the subject less solemn and important. Speculations so feeble that they sound like the cries of an infant in the dark, are insinuated to be the sublime views of a bold and original thinker, who "has ly a Divine help been enabled to plant his foot somewhere beyond the waves of Time /" Doubts so badly expressed that they read like the confused utterance of one in his sleep, claim to be regarded as the legacy of one who is about to "depart hence before the natural term, worn out with intellectual toil /" ... In a word, Men who have never been taught and trained, but have grown up in a miserable self-evolved system of their own, (with a little of Hegel, and a. little of Schleiermacher, and a little of Strauss,) cannot but trouble the peace of the Church. They deny her authority. (They are not aware of her claims.) They cavil at her Creeds. (They are not acquainted with their history.) They doubt the authenticity of the very Bible. (They know wondrous little about it.) How did the Bible attain its actual shape? They cannot tell. How has it been guarded? They are careless to inquire. How does it come to us as 'the Bible,' the Book of all books ? It is best not to discuss a question which must infallibly bring forward the Church as " a wit- Mr. Jowett in Essays and Reviews, p. 433. XX11 PREFACE. ness and a keeper of Holy Writ p ." Men are even impatient to publish their private prejudice that it is to be interpreted like any other book ; that it is in- spired in no other sense than Sophocles and Plato. " The principle of private judgment," (it is said,) " puts Conscience between us and the Bible, making Conscience the supreme interpreter^" "Hence," it is said, " we use the Bible, some consciously, some un- consciously, not to override, but to evoke the voice of Conscience." (p. 44.) " The Book of this Law," (as Hooker phrases it,) is dethroned; and Man usurps the vacant seat, and becomes a Law unto himself! GOD Himself is dethroned, in effect; and Man be- comes his own god. To cope systematically with all this from the Uni- versity pulpit, as already remarked, is plainly impos- sible. The preacher must take up the question at some definite stage, and arrest the false teachers there. " That wicked," or rather " THE LAWLESS ONE," (o cu/o/toy, as he is called in 2 Thess. ii. 8,) must be bound, hand and foot, somewhere in his career of law- lessness ; and in these Sermons the threshold of the Bible has been chosen as the place for the conflict. My life for his life. I will slay or be slain on the very portal of Holy Scripture. With the young, you begin at the beginning, "the Creed, the LORD'S Prayer, the Ten Commandments ;" and they must be further instructed in the Church Catechism. But the foundation cannot be laid afresh with the full-grown. It is idle to talk about the authority of the Church to men who do not believe in the Bible. It is useless p Article XX, Essays and Reviews, p. 45. PREFACE. XX111 to dispute about Creeds with men who know nothing of the origin and history of Christianity. Eeserving the true method of teaching for those who alone are capable of being taught, we are constrained to argue with men of full age about the inspiration and Inter- pretation of the Bible. If in the ensuing Sermons the principles handled are so very elementary, it is because the available limits were so very narrow, while the field over which Unbelief has spread itself, is so very broad. III. When a few words have been added concern- ing the manner in which I have executed my task, this Preface shall be brought to a close. If the style of the present SERMONS, considering the auditory, and above all considering the subject, shall be thought by competent judgesjiot sufficiently dignified in parts, I will bow to their decision without remon- strance. Everybody can divine the defence which would be set up; but perhaps it may not be quite a valid defence. A man feels strongly and warmly ; writes fast and freely; is determined to be clearly understood : is weary of the dignified conventionalities under which Scepticism loves to conceal itself when it comes abroad. Perhaps some expressions which may be permitted in delivery, ought to be remodelled when a Sermon is sent to the press. But with regard to the ensuing PRELIMINARY RE- MARKS, I shall not so easily be persuaded to think that I am mistaken as to the style in which Essayists and Ee viewers are to be dealt with r . Some respect- * It should perhaps be stated that the edition of " Essays and Reviews" which I have employed is the Third (1860.) XXIV PREFACE. able persons, I doubt not, will think my treatment of them harsh and uncharitable. I invite them to con- sider that we do not expect blasphemy from Ministers of the Gospel,' irreligion from the teachers of you/th, infidelity from the Professor's chair: nor are we called upon to tolerate it either. I have the mis- fortune to concur entirely with the verdict pronounced by the Bishop of Exeter on the subject of i Essays and Ee views. 7 Let those who feel little jealousy for GOD'S honour measure out in grains their censure of a volume, the confessed tendency of which is to sap the foundation of Faith, and to introduce irreligion with a flood-tide. Such shall not, at all events, be my method. Private regard, if it is to weigh largely with him who stands up for GOD'S Truth, should first have weighed a little with those by whom it has been most grievously outraged. It may suit these Authors to wrap up their shameful meaning in a cloud of words ; but their Eeviewer avails himself of that Christian liberty to which they themselves so systematically lay claim, mercilessly to uncover their baseness, and un- compromisingly to denounce it. If I may declare my mind freely, punctilious courtesy in dealing with such opinions, becomes a species of treason against Him after whose Name we are called, and whom we profess to serve. Seven men may combine to handle the things of GOD, it seems, in the most outrageous man- ner; while themselves are to be the objects of con- sideration, tenderness, respect! I cannot see their title to any consideration at all. It will be found, it is hoped, that when these writers have the courage to descend to argument, there I have PREFACE. XXV gladly met them on their own ground, and sought to refute them : but to reason is no part of their plan. Unsupported dicta on every subject on which they treat: doubts promiscuously insinuated, but never once openly and honestly maintained: cool assump- tions of intellectual superiority for themselves and their infidel allies : contemptuous allusions to the names which the respectable part of mankind agrees to hold in honour: foul imputations against the honesty of the Clergy : this is all their method ! The favourite cant of these writers is, that no one should shrink from free discussion, or fear the results of Criticism. Why then do not they themselves criti- cize? "Why do not they reason? Charity herself after weighing these Essays carefully has no alter- native but to assume that the Authors either have not the courage, or that they lack the ability, to descend to a free discussion, and risk all on a stand-up fight. A kind of guerilla warfare : half a dozen arrows, and a hasty retreat : such is their mode of attack ! But this method, though it may occasion annoyance, is quite unworthy of an honest inquirer, and never can be decisive of anything. It is the cowardly expedient of men who shrink from scrutiny, and dread exposure. Nothing so easy, for example, as to repeat the old commonplace about " irreconcileable discrepancies" in the " Synoptical Gospels :" but why, instead^ are we not told, which these irreconcileable discrepancies are? For my own part, I freely renew in this place the challenge I gave in my Illrd Sermon 8 . Let any one of these Gentlemen publicly and definitely lay his pp. 72-3. XXVI PREFACE. finger on one or more of these contradictory state- ments in the Gospels, during term-time ; and within a week I hereby undertake publicly to refute him in the Divinity School of this University : and our peers shall be our judges. Gentlemen who come abroad in the fashion above described, have no right to complain if they encounter rough usage on the road. When Critics are clamorous for the " free handling" of Divine Truth, they must not be surprised to find themselves freely handled too. If free discussion is to be the order of the day, then let there be free discussion of " Essays and Ee views," as well as o/' THE BIBLE. Six Clergymen of the Church of England who enter upon a crusade against the Faith of the Church of England must not be astonished if they are looked upon in the light of immoral cha- racters, and treated as such. Accordingly, I have handled them just as freely as they have handled the Prophets, Apostles, and Evangelists of CHRIST. I cannot therefore pretend to offer anything in ex- tenuation of the style in which I have examined the statements of these Essayists and Ee viewers. Per- fectly sensible as I am of the gracefulness of highly courteous language in controversial writing, I will not so far violate my own conviction of what is right as to bandy compliments on such an occasion as this. This is no literary misunderstanding, or I could have been amicable enough: no private or personal matter, or I could have flung it from me with unconcern. No other than an attempt to destroy Man's dearest hopes, is this infamous book : no other than an insult, the PREFACE. grossest imaginable, offered to the Majesty of Heaven ; an attack, the more foul because it is so insidious, against the Everlasting Gospel of JESUS CHRIST. In such a cause I will not so far give in to the smooth fashion of a supple and indifferent age, as to pay these seven writers a single compliment which they will care to accept. The most foolish composition of the seven is Dr. Temple's ; the most mischievous is Pro- fessor Jowett's : but the germ of the last Essay is con- tained in the first ; the foolishness of the first Essay is abundantly shared by the last : while the evidence of correspondence of sentiment between the two writers is unmistakable. The most unphilosophical Essay, (where all are unphilosophical,) is Professor Powell's : the most insolent, Dr. Williams' : the most immoral, Mr. Wilson's : the most shallow, Mr. Goodwin's ; the most irrelevant, Mr. Pattison's. Not one of these writers shews himself capable of recognizing the true logical result of his own opinions : of drawing from his own premisses their one inevitable issue. Not one of them has had the manliness to speak out, and to say plainly what he means. They seem to deny the Divinity of CHRIST, and the Personality of the HOLY GHOST : but how reluctant is a reader to believe that they really mean it ! Quite inevitable is it that these clerical critics must choose between two alternatives. Either they hold opinions which make it impossible that they should retain Orders in the Church of Eng- land, and yet be honest men ; or they have expressed themselves with such culpable inaccuracy and am- biguity, as shews that they are altogether incompetent to handle the Science of Theology. Gladly would one XXV 111 PREFACE. give them the benefit of a third alternative : but I see not that any remains. If it should be thought strange that one thinking so meanly of ' Essays and Reviews,' should have pro- duced a yet larger volume in reply to them, it must suffice to point out that the refutation of a fallacy is almost of necessity the ampler writing. Or again, if it be remarked that by far the largest part of what I have written is directed against the hundred pages of Professor Jowett, the explanation is still obvious. Tor not only does that concluding Essay of his bring to a terribly practical issue the speculative doubts and difficulties which had been started by all his pre- decessors; (namely, doubts as to (1) the relation in which the Bible stands to Man; (2) the nature of Prophecy ; (3) the reality of Miracles ; (4) the worth of Creeds and formularies ; (5) the authenti- city of Genesis ; (6) the basis on which Eevelation is by the Church of England supposed to rest;) by proposing that we should henceforth regard the Bible as a book no otherwise inspired than Sophocles and Plato : not only does Professor Jowett's essay discharge this fatal office ; but his style is somewhat peculiar ; and what he says, cannot always be effectually dis- posed of by a few words. Let me explain. There is a certain form of fallacy of statement in which this Gentleman's writings abound, which calls aloud for notice and signal reprobation. He has a marvellous aptitude, (one would fain hope through some intellectual infirmity,) of connecting together in the same sentence two or three clauses ; one or two of which shall be true as Heaven, while the other PREFACE. XXIX is false as Hell. The reply to such a sentence is im- possible, without many words, far more than Mr. Jowett's sentences commonly deserve. Sometimes he strings together several heads of thought; of which enumeration the kindest thing which can be said is that it betrays an utter want of intellectual perspective. To unravel even a part of this tangled web so as to expose its argumentative worthlessness, soon fills a page But there is another kind of fallacy which the same gentleman wields with immense effect, and in the use of which he is a great master; which, because it was absolutely impossible to handle it fitly in the proper place, shall be briefly adverted to, here. I proceed to describe it not without indignation ; for I am profoundly struck by the intellectual perversity, not to say the moral obliquity, which has so entirely made this vile instrument its own. The fallacy then is of this nature. When Pro- fessor Jowett would put forth something especially deserving of reprehension, some sentiment or opinion which he either knows, or ought to know, that the whole Church will resent with unqualified abhorrence, he assumes a plaintive manner, and puts himself into an interesting attitude ; sometimes even folds his hands, as if in prayer. He then begins by (1) throwing out a remark of real beauty, and so conciliating for himself an indulgent hearing ; or (2) he goes off on some Moral question, and so defeats attention ; or (3) he delivers himself of some undeniable truth, and so disarms censure ; or (4) he says something of an en- tirely equivocal kind, and so leaves his reader at fault. Candour, of course, gives him the benefit of the doubt. XXX PREFACE. It is not till the sentence is well advanced, or till it is examined by the fatal light of its context, that one is shewn what the ambiguous writer really was intending. A cloven foot appears at last; but it is instantly withdrawn, with a shuffle ; and you experience a scowl or a sneer, as the case may be, for your extreme unkindness in inquiring whether it was not a cloven foot you saw? .... Meanwhile, the learned Professor has gone off in alia omnia, with a look of earnestness which challenges respect, and a vagueness of diction which at once discourages pursuit and defeats inquiry. The fish invariably ends by disappearing in a cloud of his own ink. It shall suffice to have said thus much. These pages must now be suffered to go forth ; not without a hearty aspiration that a blessing may attend them from Him sine Quo nihil est validum, nihil sanctum ; and that what was intended for the strength and help of those who want helping and strengthening, (I am thinking particularly of what has been offered on the subject of Inspiration,) may not prove misleading or perplexing to any. Oriel, June 24th, 1861. CONTENTS. DEDICATION. PREFACE. I. Some account of the present Volume. II. Growth of irreligious Opinion. III. ' Essayists and Reviewers ' to he as ' freely-handled' as the Prophets, Evangelists, and Apostles of CHRIST. TABLE or CONTENTS. PRELIMINARY REMARKS ON " ESSAYS AND REVIEWS." PAGB I. Examination of the contribution of Rev. F. Temple, D.D. ii II. . . . Rev. Rowland Williams, D.D. . xxx III. . . . Rev. Professor Baden Powell, M.A. xlvi IV. . Rev. H. B. Wilson, M.A. . . Ixiv V. . . C. W. Goodwin, M.A. . . . Ixxxvi VI. . . Rev. Mark Pattison, B.D. . . cxii VII. . . . Rev. Professor Jowett, M.A. . . cxxxix In what sense Mr. Jowett's fundamental principle, (that " Scripture is to be interpreted like any other book,") may be cheerfully accepted ..... cxl Mr. Jowett's main assertion that " Scripture has one and only one true meaning," shewn to he founded on his assumption that the Bible is iminspired, " like any other hook " cxlii 1. Eight Characteristics of the Bible enumerated, which shew that it is unlike " any other book " . cl But the distinctive characteristic of the Bible, is, that it prof esses to be the work of the HOLT GHOST . clx Mr. Jowett's syllogism corrected, in consequence . . clxii 2. Mr. Jowett's proposal accepted, that we should " In- terpret Scripture from itself." Notion of Interpre- tation obtained from the volume of Inspiration . clxii 3. In addition to the testimony of Scripture, we have to consider the testimony of Antiquity . . . clxix Remarks on primitive Patristic Interpretation . . clxx This part of the subject misunderstood by Mr. Jowett . clxxiii xxxii CONTENTS. PAGE Remarks on primitive Tradition. The Creeds, the records of Primitive Christianity .... clxxvii This part of the subject also misunderstood by Mr. Jowett clxxix 4. Examination of some of Mr. Jowett' s reasons for rejecting that method of Interpretation which has been (a) Established by our LORD ; (/3) Employed by His Apostles ; (y) Universally adopted by the primi- tive Church ; and (8) Accepted by the most learned and judicious of modern Commentators . . . clxxxvi The peroration of Mr. Jowett's Essay examined and commented on . . . , . . ccvi Retrospect of the entire subject ..... ccxvi Conclusion . . . . . , . . ccxxvii SERMON I. ST. JOHN vi. 68. LORD, to whom shall we go ? Thou hast the words of Eternal Life. THE STUDY OF THE BIBLE RECOMMENDED; AND A METHOD OF STUDYING IT DESCRIBED. PAGE The Gospel, as a written message, meets with the same re- ception at the hands of the World now, as in the days of the Son of Man 1 Some points of analogy between the Written and the Incar- nate WORD . . . . . . . . . 2 Difficulties and seeming contradictions in the Gospel . . 3 Unattractive aspect. Union of the Human and Divine . . 4 The Bible is generally little read. Its preciousness . . 6 The age unlearned as well as unfaithful . . . . 7 Want of preparation for the Ministry. The question of pre- paration narrowed to the duty of studying the Bible . . 8 Conditions of successful Study : a fixed time for reading the Bible, and a fixed quantity to be read .... 9 Yigilance, and independent inquiry . . . . .10 Consecutive reading. The first chapter of Genesis . . .11 Nothing to be skipped. Result of such a method . . .12 The Bible is to be read, not in the same manner, but with at least the same attention, as a merely human work . .13 A caution ...... 14 Men not competent to make their own Religion out of the Bible 16 The advantages of such a study of the Bible as has been here recommended, explained . 17 CONTENTS. XXXlll SERMON II. HEBBEWS xi. 3. Through Faith, we understand that the worlds were framed by the Word of GOD. NATURAL SCIENCE AND THEOLOGICAL SCIENCE. PAOF. Special act of Faith assigned to ourselves in Hebrews xi. . 23 The first Chapter of Genesis considered : Verse 1 . .24 Province of Geology .... . .26 The Work of the First Day . . . .28 Second and the Third Day . . . .29 Fourth and the Fifth Day .... 30 Sixth Day 31 The Mosaic History of the Creation true . . . .33 Objections considered . . . . . . . .34 Speech ascribed to, GOD ....... 35 Adam's knowledge . .36 The first pair. The days of Creation real days . .37 Objections of pretenders to Natural Science . . . .39 The plea that the Bible is not a scientific book . . .40 The historical truth of the Bible insisted upon . . .44 Natural Science not undervalued . . . . . .46 The term " Science " not to be opposed to " Theology " . .47 Theology the Queen of Sciences . . . . .48 SERMON III. 2 TIM. iii. 16. All Scripture is given by inspiration of GOD. INSPIRATION OF SCRIPTURE. GOSPEL DIFFICULTIES. THE WORD OF GOD INFALLIBLE. OTHER SCIENCES SUBORDINATE TO THEOLOGICAL SCIENCE. PAGE The meaning of 2 Tim. iii. 16. . . .... 53 St. Paul nowhere disclaims Inspiration . . . . 54 Holy Scripture is attributed in Scripture to the HOLY GHOST . 56 Forms of unbelief concerning Inspiration . . . 57 Impertinence of the modern way of speaking of the Evangelists 60 Supposed inaccuracies, slips of memory, misstatements . . 61 The Gospels not four but One 62 A principle laid down for the reconcilement of all Gospel difficulties .-63 c xxxiv CONTENTS. FAOK Illustration from a supposed case of testimony . . 64 Computation of the hours in St. John's Gospel . 66 The accounts of the blind man restored to sight at Jericho, harmonized ..... 67 Characteristics of an Inspired narrative . . .68 The mention of "Jeremy the prophet," and of Cyrenius, considered . . .. . - . 70 Faultlessness of the Gospel .... .72 Absurdity of the common allegations against it . .73 The absolute Infallibility of Scripture maintained . 74 Every syllable of Holy Scripture inspired . . . .75 The nature of Inspiration illustrated . . . . .76 Theology, the noblest of the Sciences . . . . . 79 Insubordination in these last days of Physical Science . . 80 The infidel spirit of the Age, protested against . . . 81 Theological Science can never be called upon to give way before Physical Science 83 Kelations of Morals to Theology 84 Conscience and the Moral Sense have been informed afresh by Revelation ... 87 SERMON IV. ST. JOHN xvii. 17. Thy Word is Truth. THE PLENARY INSPIRATION OF EVERY PART OF THE BIBLE, VINDICATED AND EXPLAINED. NATURE OF INSPIRATION. THE TEXT OF SCRIPTURE. PAGE Cavils against the Bible . . . . . . .92 Absolute infallibility of every < jot' and every ' tittle' of Holy Scripture 94 The popular view of Inspiration stated . . . .95 No middle state between Inspiration and non-inspiration . 96 The popular theory applied and tested 96 A different view of the nature and office of Inspiration stated 100 Inspiration still the same, however diverse the subject-matter 102 What is meant by ' a Prophet' 104 The message still GOD'S, whatever its nature may be . .106 Note of Inspiration in the Historical Books of the Bible . 108 The Title on the Cross 109 Remonstrance . 110 CONTENTS. XXXV PAGE Theories of Inspiration to be rejected . . . < .115 Remarks on the nature of Inspiration 116 Proof that men generally hold that the words of Scripture are inspired . . . . . . . . . .117 Absolute irrelevancy of objections drawn from the state of the Text of Scripture 118 The Substance of Scripture inseparable from the Form . . 1 20 Antichristian spirit of the age . . . . . .121 The Study of Scripture in a childlike spirit recommended . 122 SUPPLEMENT TO SERMON IV. PAGE A favourite view of Inspiration stated . . . . .126 Vagueness of this theory . . . . . . .127 The theory practically tested, and found unmanageable . 128 Further examination of the theory . . . . .132 Our SAVIOUR'S reasoning as difficult as that of St. Paul . . 134 SERMON V. ST. MATTHEW iv. 4. It is written, Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of GOD. INTERPRETATION OF HOLY SCRIPTURE. INSPIRED INTERPRE- TATION. THE BIBLE IS NOT TO BE INTERPRETED LIKE ANY OTHER BOOK. GOD, (NOT MAN,) THE REAL AUTHOR OF THE BIBLE. PAGE Interpretation described . . . . . . .140 Three sources of Interpretation compared . . . ,141 Eusebius on "the Captain of the LORD'S Host" . . . 143 The principle must be ascertained, on which Inspiration is to be conducted ........ 144 How this is to be done . . . . . . . 145 This question may not be needlessly encumbered with difficulties 147 The HOLY SPIRIT'S method of Interpretation must be the true method ......... 148 Specimens of Inspired Interpretation . . . .149 The very narrative of Scripture mysterious . . . .152 Divine exposition of the history of Melchizedek . . .152 Further proofs of the mysterious texture of Holy Scripture . 156 Moses wrote concerning CHRIST . . . . . .157 XXXVI CONTENTS. PAGE Two propositions established by the foregoing inquiry : (1) That the Bible is not to be interpreted like any other book : (2) That the meaning of Scripture is not always only one . 160 Scripture to be interpreted literally . . . . .160 The story of Joseph and Potiphar's wife remarked upon . 162 The Bible is the Word of GOD . . . . . .163 Bishop Butler on Inspiration . . . . . .165 Unbelief remonstrated with from the analogy of Nature and of Providence 168 How the inspired writers may be supposed to have understood what they delivered 171 The question of Interpretation not be argued on a priori grounds 1 73 Interpretation would be hopeless, but that the fountain of Inspiration is one . . . . . . . .174 An apology for these Sermons . . . . . .177 Exhortation to transmit the Faith . . . . .180 SERMON VI. ROMANS x. 6 9. But the Righteousness which is of Faith speaJceth on this wise, f Say not in thine heart, Who shall ascend into Heaven T (that is, to bring CHRIST doivn from above :) or, ' Who shall descend into the deep T (that is, to bring up CHRIST again from the dead.} But what saith it ? ' The word is nigh thee, even in thy mouth, and in thine heart :' that is, the word of Faith, which we preach ; that if thou shalt confess with thy mouth the LORD JESUS, and shalt believe in thine heart that GOD hath raised Him from the dead, thou shalt be saved. THE DOCTRINE OF ARBITRARY SCRIPTURAL ACCOMMO- DATION CONSIDERED. PAGE Many insidious methods of denying the Inspiration of Scripture 1 84 The most subtle method of all, characterized . . .185 The term " Accommodation" not in itself objectionable . .187 Arbitrary Accommodation explained . . . . .188 Reasons for rejecting this theory . . . . . .189 Learned research proves that the theory is gratuitous . .190 St. Paul's exposition of a passage in Deuteronomy xxx, (Rom. x. 6 to 9,) proposed for examination . . . . .191 License of Inspired quotation . . . . . .194 How the phenomenon is to be regarded . . . .195 St. Paul's exposition examined by the light of unassisted Reason .... 198 CONTENTS. XXXVll PA01S Shewn not to be an instance of arbitrary Accommodation, but of genuine Interpretation . . . . . .211 The success or failure of such inquiries, unimportant . .212 No " Accommodation' ' when an inspired writer quotes Scripture 213 Remarks on Inspired Reasoning . . . . . .215 SERMON VII, ST. MARK xii. 24. Do ye not therefore err, because ye know not the Scriptures; neither the power of GOD. THE MARVELS OF HOLY SCRIPTURE, MORAL AND PHYSICAL. JAEL'S DEED DEFENDED. MIRACLES VINDICATED. PAGE Sadduceeism of the day 221 The Moral and Physical Marvels of Scripture proposed for consideration ......... 222 Moral Marvels : Jael. How her story is to be read . . 223 History of Jael. Her conduct explained and defended . . 224 Jacob, the Canaanites, Abraham, David . . . 230 Physical Marvels : The greatest of those in the Old Testa- ment are witnessed to in the New . . . . .232 Design of the quotations in Holy Scripture . . . .234 Dr. Arnold and the Book of Daniel 235 Miracles are not to be called violations, &c. of Nature . .237 Law in relation to GOD ....... 238 An objectionable Theory of Miracles exposed , . . 239 Eishop Butler on Miracles . 240 Miracles may be pared down, but cannot be explained away . 242 " Ideology " applied to the explanation of Miracles . . 243 Ideology explained and exposed 245 The Resurrection of CUEIST the foundation- truth of Christianity 248 False and true Charity * 250 A parting Exhortation . . . . . . .252 APPENDIX. PAGE A Bishop Horsley on the double sense of Prophecy . .257 B Bishop Pearson on Theological Science .... 258 C The Bible an instrument of Man's probation . . . 260 D St. Stephen's statement in Acts vii. 15, 16, explained . 261 XXXV111 CONTENTS. PAGE E The simplest view of Inspiration the truest and the best . 265 F The written and the Incarnate Word . . . .267 G The volume of the Old Testament Scriptures, indivisible . 268 I Remarks on Theories of Inspiration. The ' Human Element" 269 J How the Inspired Authors of the New Testament handle the writings of the Inspired Authors of the Old . .271 K Bishop Bull on Deuteronomy xxx. . . ^ .273 L Opinions of commentators concerning Accommodation . 277 PEELIMINAEY EEMAEKS ON A VOLUME ENTITLED "ESSAYS AND REVIEWS:" ADDRESSED TO THE UNDERGRADUATE MEMBERS OF ORIEL COLLEGE. IV/TY Friends, I have determined to address to yourselves the present remarks; their subject, a volume which has recently obtained such a degree of notoriety that it is almost superfluous even to specify it by name. With unfeigned reluctance do I mix myself up in this strife ; but the course of events, when I first took up my pen, left me almost without an alternative. Far more reluctant should I be to seem to make your- selves the arbiters of Theological controversy. But in truth nothing is further from my present intention. As a plain matter of fact, you are called upon weekly, at St. Mary's, to listen to Sermons which indicate plainly enough the troubled state of the religious atmosphere ; and which, of late, (too frequently alas !) have inevitably assumed a controversial aspect. The Sermons here published, (which form the constructive part of the present volume,) were preached expressly with an eye to your advantage, and were intended to warn you against (what I deemed) a very serious ii DR. TEMPLE'S ESSAY. [DR. danger. It is only natural therefore that I should de- sire to address to yourselves the present remarks like- wise. You are, naturally, objects of special solicitude to myself in this place, you, with whom I live as among friends, and for not a few of whom I entertain a sincere affection. And in addressing you, I am not by any means inviting you to exercise your own theo- logical judgment ; for that would indeed be an absurd proceeding. I am simply seeking to instruct you, and to guide you with mine. The case of " Essays and Ee views" is, in fact, altogether exceptional, whether the respectability of its authors, the wickedness of its contents, or the reception which it has met with, is considered. That volume embodies the infidel spirit of the present day. Turn where you will, you encounter some criticism upon it. No advertizing column but contains repeated mention of its name. To ignore so flagrant a scandal to the Church, is quite impossible. I have thought it better, therefore, to encounter the danger in this straightforward way; and I proceed, without further preamble, to remark briefly on each of the Seven " Essays and Ee views," in order. I. The feeblest essay in the volume is the first. It is not without grave concern that I transcribe the name of its amiable, and (in every relation of private life) truly excellent author, " FREDERICK TEMPLE, D.D., Chaplain in Ordinary to the Queen ; Head Master of Eugby School; Chaplain to the Earl of Denbigh." Under the imposing title of "THE EDUCATION OF THE WORLD," we are presented with a worthless allegory, which has all the faults of a schoolboy's theme, (in- correct grammar included;) and not one of the ex- cellencies which ought to characterize the product of TEMPLE.] THE EDUCATION OF THE WORLD. ill a ripened understanding, the work of a Doctor of Divinity in the English Church a , Dr. Temple's opening speculations are at once un- intelligible, irrelevant, and untrue. But they are immaterial ; and serve only to lug in, (not to intro- duce,) the assumption that the " power, whereby the present ever gathers into itself the results of the past, transforms the human race into a colossal man whose life reaches from the Creation to the day of Judg- ment. The successive generations of men are days in this man's life. The discoveries and inventions which characterize the different epochs of the world's history are his works. The creeds and doctrines, the opinions and principles of the successive ages, are his thoughts." [Alas, that the Creeds and Doctrines of the Church should be spoken of by a Professor of Divinity as the " thoughts " of men !] " The state of society at different times are (sic) his manners. I abstain from enumerating Dr. Temple's mistakes, for such things do not belong to the essence of a composition. And yet I must remark that it is hardly creditable in a Doctor of Divinity to write as he does. " In all (!) the doctrinal disputes of the fourth and fifth centuries, the decisive voice came from Rome. Every controversy was finally settled by her opinion, because she alone possessed the art of framing formulas" &c. (p. 16.) Would the learned writer favour us with a single warrant for this assertion ? ... At p. 9, Dr. Temple mistakes for Mean's, words spoken 700 years before by Balaam. At p. 10, he says that " Prayer, as a regular and necessary part of worship, first appears in the later books of the Old Testament." His account of the papacy is con- tained in the following words : " Law was the lesson which Rome was intended to teach the world. Hence (?) the Bishop of Rome soon became the Head of the Church. Rome was in fact the centre of the traditions which had once governed the world; and their spirit still remained; and the Roman Church developed into the papacy simply because a head was wanted (!), and no better one could be found." p. 16. At p. 10 we have a truly puerile mis- conception of the meaning of 1 Cor. xv. 56, &c., &c. b2 IV THE COLOSSAL MAN. [DR. He grows in knowledge, in self-control, in visible size, just as we do. And his education is in the same way and for the same reason precisely similar to ours. All this is no figure, but only a compendious state- ment of a very comprehensive fact." (p. 3.) " We may then," (he repeats,) " rightly speak of a childhood, a youth, and a manhood of the world." (p. 4.) And the process of this development of the colossal man, " cor- responds, stage by stage, with the process by which the infant is trained for youth, and the youth for manhood. This training has three stages. In child- hood, we are subject to positive rules which we can- not understand, but are bound implicitly to obey. In youth we are subject to the influence of example, and soon break loose from all rules, unless illustrated and enforced by the higher teaching which example im- parts. In manhood we are comparatively free from external restraints, and if we are to learn, must be our own instructors. First comes the Law, then the Son of Man, then the Gift of the Spirit. The world was once a child under tutors and governors until the time appointed by the Father. Then, when the fit season had arrived, the Example to which all ages should turn was sent to teach men what they ought to be. Then the human race was left to itself, to be guided by the teaching of the Spirit within." (p. 5.) So very weak an analogy, (where everything is assumed, and nothing proved,) singular to relate, is drawn out into distressing tenuity through no less than 49 pages. The ANSWER to all this is sufficiently obvious, as well as sufficiently damaging; and need not be de- layed for a minute. That the Human Eace has made considerable pro- gress in Knowledge, from first to last, is a mere TEMPLE.] PLAIN FACTS OF THE CASE. V truism. That, in the civilized world, one generation is the heir of the generations which went before it, is what no one requires to be told. Thus the discovery of the compass, of printing, and of the steam-engine, have been epochs in human knowledge from which a start was made by all civilized nations, without re- trogression. But such facts supply no warrant for transforming the whole Human Eace into one Colossal Man ; do not constitute any reason whatever why the 6000 years of recorded time should be divided into three periods corresponding with the Infancy, Boy- hood, and Manhood of an Individual. To this theory, however, Dr. Temple even ostenta- tiously commits himself. It is the purpose of his entire Essay, to establish the fanciful analogy already indicated, which is proclaimed to be " no figure" but a "fact." (p. 3.) But an educated man of ordinary intelligence, on reaching p. 7, (where the writer first discloses his view,) summons the known facts of His- tory to his recollection; and before he proceeds any further, reasons with himself somewhat as follows : The Human Eace had inhabited the Earth's surface for upwards of sixteen hundred years, when it was destroyed by the waters of the Flood. After that, the descendants of Noah peopled the earth's surface ; a transaction of which the sole authentic record is, to be found in the xth chapter of the Book of Genesis. Egypt first emerged into importance, as history and monuments conspire to prove ; having had a peculiar language and literature, Arts and Sciences, anterior to the period of the Exodus, viz. B.C. 1491. Meanwhile, the chart of History directs our attention to four great Empires : the Assyrian Empire, which was swallowed up by the Persian ; and the Persian, which was merged vi TRUE HISTORY OF THE WORLD'S EDUCATION. [DR. in the Grecian Empire. The Eoman Empire came last. [How Laiv can be considered to be the characteristic of all or any x part of this period, I am at a loss to discover. Neither do I see any indication of puling Infancy here.] These four great Empires of the world had run their course when our SAVIOUR CHRIST was born. GOD sent His own Eternal SON into the world; and lo, a change passed over the whole fabric of the world's polity. The old forms of social life became, as it were, dissolved; or rather, a new spirit had been breathed into them all. A new era had commenced ; and a new principle henceforth animated mankind. That peculiar system of Divine Laws which for 1500 years had separated the Hebrew race from all the nations of the earth, the Mosaic Law which had hitherto been the inheritance of a single family, isolated in Canaan, was explained and expanded by its Divine Author. The ancient pro- mises to Abraham and his posterity were declared in their application to be co-extensive with the whole race of Mankind by faith embracing them. Henceforth, the kingdoms of the world were proclaimed the king- doms of CHRIST, and Mankind became for the first time subject to a written LAW. The Laws of CHRIST'S King- dom, the doctrines of CHRIST'S Church, henceforth be- coine supreme. Thus, when a Christian Sovereign is crowned, the Bible is solemnly placed in his hands ; and it is required of him that he promise, on his oath, " to the utmost of his power, to maintain the Laws of GOD" " When you see this Orb set under this Cross," (says the Archbishop, on delivering those insignia of Eoyalty,) " remember that the whole World is subject to the power and empire of CHRIST our Eedeemer .... so that no man can reign happily, who .... directs TEMPLE.] THE JEWS NOT ALL MANKIND. VU not all his actions according to His Laws" . . . No further change in the order of things is anywhere in- timated. The Faith hath been a?ra, once and for ever, delivered to the Saints. Forsaken, it may be : by many, (alas !) it will be forsaken before the con- summation of all things : but it will not itself cease. Heaven and Earth -shall pass away; but CHRIST'S "Word, never. Not one jot nor one tittle of the Law shall fail. . . . Such, in brief outline, is the World's true history, past, present, future. Does it corre- spond with Dr. Temple's account ? That may be very soon seen. He calls the human race a Colossal Man ; and says that it passes through three stages, Infancy, Boyhood, Manhood : and that during those three stages, it is governed by three corresponding principles, Law, Example, Conscience. How does Dr. Temple establish the first ? The Jews, (he says,) were subject to Law from the period of the Exode to the coming of CHRIST. We listen to the statement of a familiar fact without sur- prise: but we are inclined to express some stronger feeling than surprise when we discover that this is the whole of the proof concerning the infancy of the Colossal Man ! Does this writer then mean to tell us that the Jews were all Mankind ? If they were not the Colossal Man, if, instead of being the whole Human Eace, they were one of the most inconsiderable and least known of the nations, an isolated family, in fact, in- habiting Canaan, what becomes of the analogy ? We really pause for an answer. . . . Such a theory might have been expected, and would have been excusable if it had proceeded from a Sunday-school-boy of fifteen, who had read the Bible indeed, but who was un- acquainted with any book besides ; and so, had jumped ABSURDITY OF THE ALLEGORY [DR. to the conclusion that the Jews were " the "World." But Dr. Temple is a Schoolmaster, and therefore must surely know better. If he is fanciful enough to re- gard Mankind as a Colossal Man; and unphiloso- phical enough to consider that History is capable of being divided into three periods, corresponding with Infancy, Boyhood, and Manhood ; and forgetful enough of the facts of the case to assume that mankind was sub- ject to Law until the coming of CHRIST, thenceforward to be emancipated therefrom : yet Dr. Temple ought not to be so unreasonable as to pretend that Canaan was coextensive with the "World, the descendants of Abraham with the posterity of Noah ! This amiable writer is inexcusable for excluding from the corporate entity of the Human Eace the four great Empires of the world, (to say nothing of primaeval Egypt and mysterious India;) and for the sake of elaborating a worthless allegory, identifying the least of all people with the Colossal Man, who, (according to his own account of the matter,) represents the aggregate of all the nations. Once more. The Mosaic Law was not given till B.C. 1491. But the world was then upwards of 2500 years old. Far more than one-third, therefore, of re- corded time had already elapsed. How does it happen that the theory under consideration gives no account of those 2500 years ; or rather, does not begin to be applicable, until they have rolled away? Other inconveniences await this silly speculation. Thus, the Colossal Man, (who was under Law from B.C. 1491 to the Christian sera,) proves to have been a marvellously precocious Infant. He wrote the Song of Moses in the year of his birth. Nay, he built pyra- mids, had a Literature, Arts, and Sciences, ages TEMPLE.] OF THE COLOSSAL MAN. ix before he was lorn / . . . "While yet an infant, he sang with Homer, and carved with Phidias, and philo- sophized with Aristotle, as none have ever sung, or carved, or philosophized since. Times and fashions have altered, truly ; but these three men are still our Masters in Philosophy, in Sculpture, and in Song. Awkward fact, that the colossal Infant should have lisped in a tongue which for copiousness of diction, and subtlety of expression, absolutely remains to this hour without a rival in the world ! Again. At this writer's dogmatic bidding, we force ourselves to think of Mankind as a Colossal Man, who has already gone through three ages, Infancy, Boy- hood, and Manhood. Old Age is therefore to come next. When, (if it is a fair question,) may it be expected that the sad period of senile decrepitude will set in ? What proof, in the mean time, is there, (we venture to ask,) that this period of decay has not begun already? Or does Dr. Temple perhaps imagine that the world is moving in cycles, (to adopt the grotesque speculation of his own first pages); and that after having run through the curriculum of Infancy, Boy- hood, and Manhood, the Colossal Man, (escaping, for some unexplained reason, the penalty of Old Age,) is to grow young again, shake his rattle and cut his teeth afresh? There is a childish vivaciousness, a juvenile recklessness, a skittish impatience of re- straint, in this amiable author's speculations, which powerfully corroborate such a view of the case. " The Childhood of the World was over when our LORD appeared on earth," (p. 20.) says Dr. Temple. But when at last he is compelled to introduce to our notice his Colossal Child (p. 9, bottom.} now developed into a Colossal Youth, he is painfully sensible that the x DR. TEMPLE'S [DR. Law and the Prophets, (his schoolmasters,) (p. 8.) have not done their work quite so well as was to have been desired and expected. Some apology is necessary, (p. 13, bottom^) Two great results however he claims for their discipline : " a settled national belief in the unity and spirituality of GOD, and an acknowledge- ment of the paramount importance of chastity as a point of morals." (p. 11.) Not however that the Law or the Prophets had taught them even this. (p. 10, top.) " It was in the Captivity, far from the temple and the sacrifices of the temple, that the Jewish people first learned that the spiritual part of worship could be separated from the ceremonial ; and that of the two the spiritual was far the higher." (p. 10.) At Baby- lon also the Jews first distinctly learned the doctrine of the immortality of the soul. (p. 19.) The Law, to be sure, had emphatically said, " Hear, Israel, the LORD thy GOD is one GOD*." The prophets, to be sure, had protested, " Behold, to obey is better than sacrifice .' 7 The Law and the Prophets, to be sure, are full of intimations that " mercy and not sacrifice d " is acceptable to the GOD of Heaven, and that GOD'S Saints well understood the Doctrine 6 ; as well as that a belief in the soul's immortality was a part of the instruction of the Jewish people. But what is all this to one who has an allegory to establish ? . . . The facts of the case, in the meantime, sorely per- plex the truth-loving writer. " For it is undeniable that, in the time of our LORD, the Sadducees had lost b Deut. vi. 4. c 1 Sam. xv. 22, where see the places in the margin. d Hos. vi. 6, quoted by our LORD, St. Matth. ix. 13 : xii. 7. e Consider Ps. xxvi. 6: 1. 13, 14: li. 16, 17: cxvi. 15: cxix. 108: cxli. 2, &c. TEMPLE.] COLOSSAL CHILD. XI all depth of spiritual feeling, whilst the Pharisees had succeeded in converting the Mosaic system into a mischievous idolatry of forms." (p. 10.) " In short, the Jewish nation had lost very much when John the Baptist came." (p. 11.) The hopelessly corrupt moral state of the youthful Colossus, described with such sickening force and power by the great Apostle in the first chapter of the Epistle to the Eomans, cannot have occurred to Dr. Temple's remembrance, for he says nothing about it. Certain withering denun- ciations of "a wicked and adulterous generation f ;" of " adulterers and adulteresses g ;" " serpents," a " generation of vipers," which should hardly " escape the damnation of Hell h ;" ought to have reached him with a reproachful echo ; but he is silent about them all. Still less would it have suited the amiable alle- gorizer to state that just midway in the educational process, his Colossal Youth, " as if" the sins of Samaria and of Sodom " were a very little thing," " was cor- rupted more than they in all his ways. As I live, saith the LORD GOD," (apostrophizing Dr. Temple's Colossal Youth, in allusion to his character and conduct in the middle of his infant career,) " Sodom thy sister hath not done as thou hast done : . . . neither hath Samaria com- mitted half thy sins ; but thou hast multiplied thine abo- minations more than they. . . . Bear thine own shame for thy sins that thou hast committed more abominable than they. They are more righteous than thou 1 !" " Ah sinful nation, laden with iniquity, a seed of evil- doers, children that are corrupters ! . . . From the sole f St. Matth. xvi. 4: xii. 39. Compare St. Mark viii. 38. * St. James iv. 4. h St. Matth. xxiii. 33. 1 Ezek. xvi. 4752. Xll THE COLOSSAL CHILD. [DR. of the foot even unto the head," [these words, re- member, are addressed to the Colossal Infant just mid- way in his career ; and Heaven and Earth are called upon to give ear, " for the LORD hath spoken !" . . . From the sole to the crown,] " there is no soundness in it ; but wounds, and bruises, and putrifying sores. . . . Your hands are full of blood k !" . . . About all this hideous retrospect of what was going on at school, Dr. Temple is silent. In like manner, the great fact that our EEDEEMER came to republish His own two primaeval ordinances, the spiritual observance of the Sabbath and the sanctity of Marriage, is quietly ignored. A youth utterly degraded by sensuality \ and blinded by un- belief m , is a terrible picture truly. Dr. Temple there- fore boldly gives the lie direct to History, sacred and profane ; and insists that " side by side with freedom from idolatry, there had grown up in the Jewish mind a chaster morality than was to he found elsewhere in the world:" (p. 12:) that "in chastity the Hebrews stood alone; and this virtue, which had grown up with them from their earliest days (!!!) was still in the vigour of fresh life when they were commissioned to give the Gospel to the nations" (p. 13.) k Is. i. 4, 6, 15. 1 St. John viii. 9. " I cannot but speak my mind," (says Jose- phus, after taking a survey of the extreme wickedness of his coun- trymen, in connexion with the horrors of the siege of Jerusalem,) " and it is this : I suppose th.it if the Romans had delayed to come against these sinners, either the earth would have swallowed them up ; or the city would have been swept away by another Flood ; or it would have been consumed, like a second Sodom, by fire from Heaven." m S. John xii. 3840. " They have blinded their eyes," &c. (See the place in the LXX. :) sc. 6 \abs euros. TEMPLE.] THE COLOSSAL YOUTH. Behold the Colossal Child therefore, now grown into a Colossal " Youth too old for discipline." (p. 20, bottom.) "The tutors and governors have done their work ;" (p. 20 ;) and he is now to go through a distinct process of training. Three tutors are now brought in to give the finishing touches to the youth's education, and to inaugurate his new career. Eome, Greece, and Asia, which for some unexplained reason never become (according to Dr. Temple) any part of the Colossal Man at all, now come in ; " Eome to discipline the human will ; Greece, the reason and taste; Asia, the spiritual imagination." (p. 19.) The Law and the Prophets had disciplined the Colossal Child's conscience, with what success we have seen. At all events, Moses and Isaiah are for infants : we have passed the age for such helps as they could supply. In a word, " The childhood of the world was over when our LORD appeared on earth." (p. 20.) It was " just the meeting-point of the Child and the Man ; the brief interval which separates restraint from liberty." (p. 22.) "It was time that the second teacher of the Human Eace should begin his labours. The second teacher is EXAMPLE :" (p. 20 :) and " the period of youth in the history of the world, when the human race was, as it were, put under the teaching of example, corresponds, of course, to the meeting point of the Law and the Gospel. The second stage therefore in the education of man was the presence of our LORD upon earth." (p. 24.) Let not this stage of Dr. Temple's allegory suffer by being stated in any language besides his own. " The world" had been a Colossal Child for 1490 years. It was to be a Youth for almost 100. " The whole period from the closing of the Old Testament XIV THE COLOSSAL MAN. [DR. to the close of the New was the period of the world's youth, the age of examples : and our LORD'S presence was not the only influence of that kind which has acted upon the human race. " Three companions were appointed by Providence to give their society to this creature whom GOD was educating, Greece, Eome, and the Early Church." (p. 26.) Behold then, our Blessed Eedeemer with His " three companions." (I repro- duce this blasphemous speculation with shame and sorrow.) What kind of Example He was, Dr. Temple omits to inform us. But Greece was "the brilliant social companion ;" Eome, " the bold and clever leader;" the Early Church was "the earnest, hea- venly-minded friend." (p. 26.) "We are warned there- fore against supposing that " our LORD'S presence was the only influence of that kind " (i.e. example,) appointed by Providence for the creature whom GOD was edu- cating. In a word : " The world was now grown old enough to be taught by seeing the lives of Saints, better than ty hearing the words of Prophets" (pp. 28-9.) We come now to the conclusion of the allegory; and Dr. Temple shall again speak for himself. " The age of reflection begins. From the storehouse of his youthful experience the Man begins to draw the prin- ciples of his life. The spirit or conscience comes to full strength and assumes the throne intended for him in the soul. As an accredited judge, invested with full powers, he sits in the tribunal of our inner king- dom, decides upon the past, and legislates upon the future without appeal except to himself. He decides not by what is beautiful, or noble, or soul- inspiring, but by what is right. Gradually he frames his code of laws, revising, adding, abrogating, as a wider and TEMPLE.] DR. TEMPLED ESSAY. XV deeper experience gives him clearer light. He is the third great teacher and the last." (p. 31.) And now, it will reasonably be asked, May not the head-master of Eugby write a weak and foolish Essay on a subject which he evidently does not un- derstand, without incurring so much not only of public ridicule, but of public obloquy also ? If his own sixth- form boys do not laugh at him, need the Church feel aggrieved at what he has written ? Where is the spe- cial irreligion in all this ? I answer, The offence is of the very gravest cha- racter ; and in the course of what follows, it will ap- pear with sufficient plainness wherein it consists. For the moment, singly considered, it is my painful duty to condemn Dr. Temple's Essay on the following grounds. "Whereas the Church inculcates the paramount ne- cessity of an external authoritative Law to guide all her members; Creeds to define the foundation of their Faith, a Catechism to teach them the necessary elements of Christian Doctrine, the several forms of Prayer contained in the Prayer Book to instruct them further in Eeligion, as well as to prescribe their exact mode of worshipping ALMIGHTY GOD : whereas too the Church requires of her ministers subscription to Articles "for the avoiding of Diversities of Opinions, and for the establishing of Consent concerning true Eeligion;" above all, since all Christian men alike are taught to acknowledge the external guidance of the Divine Law itself contained in Holy Scripture, and every Minister of the Church of England is fur- ther called upon to admit the authority of that Divine Law as it is by the Church systematized, explained, up- held, enforced : notwithstanding all this, Dr. Temple, Xvi GOD DETHRONED BY THIS WRITER. [DR. who has solemnly taken the vows of a minister of the Church of England, and writes after his name that he is Sacrce Theologice Professor, in his present Essay more than insinuates, he openly teaches that Man "draws the principles of his life" (not from Beve- lation, but) "from the storehouse of experience:" that we live in an age when " the spirit or conscience hav- ing come to full strength, assumes the throne intended for him in the soul." This " spirit or conscience " " legislates without appeal except to himself" "He is the third great teacher and the last." (p. 31.) The world, in the days of its youth, could not "walk by reason and conscience alone :" (p. 21 :) but it is not so with us, in these, the days of the world's manhood. " The spiritual power within us ... must be the right- ful monarch of our lives." (p. 14.) We, (he says,) "walk by reason and conscience alone" (p. 21.) Now this is none other than a deliberate dethroning of GOD; and a setting up of Self in His place. "A revelation speaking from without and not from within, is an external Law, and not a spirit," (p. 36,) says Dr. Temple. But I answer, A revelation speaking from within, and not from without, is no revelation at all. " The thought of building a tower high enough to escape GOD'S wrath, could enter into no man's dreams," (p. 7,) says Dr. Temple in the beginning of his Essay, in derision of the Old World. But he has carried out into act the very self-same thought, him- self; and his "dreams" occupy the foremost place in ' Essays and Eeviews.' He teaches, openly, that henceforth Man must learn by " obedience to the rules of his own mind." (p. 34.) He is express in declaring that "an external law" is for the age which is past, (pp. 34-5.) Ours is "an internal law;" "which bids TEMPLE.] GOD EXCLUDED FROM HIS OWN WORLD. xvii us yield," not to the revealed Will of GOD, " but, to the majesty of truth and justice ; a law which is not imposed upon us ly another power, but ly our own en- lightened will." (p. 35.) In this, the last stage of the Colossal Man's progress, Dr. Temple gives him four avenues of learning : (1) Experience, (2) Beflection, (3) Mistakes, (4) Contradiction. By withholding from this enumeration the Revealed Will of GOD, and the known sanctions of the Divine Law, he thrusts out GOD from every part of his scheme ; denies that He is even one of the present teachers of the Human Eace, ex- plaining that the time has even gone by when CHRIST could teach by example 11 , "for the faculty of Faith n " Had the revelation of CHRIST been delayed till now, assuredly it would have been hard for us to recognize His Divinity. . . . We, of course, have in our turn counterbalancing advantages. (!) If we have lost that freshness of faith which would be the first (sic) to say to a poor carpenter, Thou art the CHRIST, the SON of the living GOD, yet we possess in the greater cultivation of our religious understanding, that which perhaps we ought not to be willing to give in exchange (!).... They had not the same clearness of under- standing as we ; the same recognition that it is GOD and not the Devil who rules the "World ; the same power of discrimination be- tween different kinds of truth. . . . Had our LORD come later, He would have come to mankind already beginning to stiffen into the fixedness of maturity. . . . The truth of His Divine Nature would not have been recognized." (pp. 24-5.) Is this meant for bitter satire on the age we live in ; or for disparagement of the Incarnate WORD ? . . . But in the face of such anticipations, the keenest satire of all is contained in the author's claim to a "religious under- standing, cultivated" to a degree unknown to the best ages of the Church; as well as to surpassing "clearness of understanding," and " powers of discrimination." Lamentable in any quarter, how deplorable is such conceit in one who shews himself unacquainted with the first principles of Theological Science ; and who puts forth an Essay on the Education of the World, which would have been discreditable to an advanced school-boy ! C XVl'ii THE BIBLE. [DR. has turned inwards, and cannot now accept any outer manifestations of the truth of GOD ." (p. 24.) By this Essay, Dr. Temple comes forward as the open abettor of the most boundless scepticism. "Whether or no his statements be such as Ecclesiastical Courts take cognizance of, is to me a matter of profound unim- portance. In the estimation of the whole Church, it can be entitled to but one sentence. " We use the Bible," (he tells us,) "not to override, but to evoke the voice of conscience." (p. 44.) " The current is all one way, it evidently points to the identification of the Bible with the voice of conscience. The Bible, in fact, is hindered by its form from exercising a des- potism (!) over the human spirit ; if it could do that, it would become an outer law at once." (p. 45.) Even if men " could appeal to a revelation from Heaven, they would still be under the Law (!!!); for a Eeve- lation speaking from without, and not from within, is an external Law, and not a Spirit." (p. 36.) " The principle of private judgment puts conscience between Quite ineffectual, at the very close of this unhappy composi- tion, as a set off to the compacted and often repeated asseverations of his earlier pages, is the amiable author's plaintive plea for "even the perverted use of the Bible;" adding, "And meanwhile, how utterly impossible it would be in the manhood of the world to imagine any other instructor of mankind!" (p. 47.) It is one of the favourite devices of these seven writers, side by side with their most objectionable statements, to insert isolated passages of admitted truth, and occasionally even of considerable beauty: which how- ever are utterly meaningless and out of place where they stand; and (like the sentence above written,) powerless to undo the cir- cumstantial wickedness of what went before. I repeat, that the words above- written are meaningless where they stand : for if Dr. Temple really means that it is " utterly impossible in the manhood of the world to IMAGINE any other instructor of mankind" than THE BIBLE y what becomes of his Essay ? TEMPLE.] DISINGENUOUSNESS. XIX us and the Bible ; making conscience the supreme in- terpreter, whom it may be a duty to enlighten, but whom it can never be a duty to disobey." (Ibid.) Even those who look upon the observance of Sunday "as enjoined by an absolutely binding decree," are reproached as " thus at once putting themselves under a law." (p. 44.) .... Dr. Temple has written an Essay which he calls "an argument," and for which he claims "a drift." (p. 31.) That argument is neither more nor less than a direct assault on the Faith of Christian men ; and carried out to its lawful results, can lead to nothing but open Infidelity ; which makes it a very solemn consideration that the author, (whose private worth is known to all,) should be a teacher of the youth of Christian England. That drift I de- plore and condemn ; and no considerations of private friendship, no sincere regard for the writer's private worth, shall deter me from recording my delibe- rate conviction that it is wholly incompatible with his Ordination vows. I forbear to dive into the depth of irreligion and unbelief implied in what is contained from p. 37 to p. 40, and other parts of the present Essay : but I cannot abstain from asking why does this author, who, in all the intercourse of private life, is so manly a character, fall into the zwmanly trick of his bro- ther-Essayists, of insinuating what they dare not openly avow ? The great master of this cloudy shuf- fling art is Mr. Jowett. Even where he and his asso- ciates in " free handling," are express and definite in their statements, yet, as their rule is prudently to ab- stain from adducing a single example of their mean- ing, it is only by their disingenuous reticence that they escape punishment or exposure. Thus, Dr. Temple c2 XX POPERY AND THE REFORMATION. [DR. speaks of "many of the doctrinal statements of the early Church " being " plainly unfitted for permanent use ;" (p. 41 ;) but he prudently abstains from ex- plaining which of those " doctrinal statements " he means. He goes on to remark: "In fact, the Church of the Fathers claimed to do what not even the Apostles had claimed, namely, not only to teach the Truth, but to clothe it in logical statements .... for all succeeding time." He is evidently alluding to " the forms in which the first ages of the Church defined the Truth;" [i.e. to the Creeds;] of which he says, we "yet refuse to be bound ly them?"* (p. 44.) He goes on, "It belongs to a later epoch to see 4 the law within the law 5 which absorbs such state- ments into something higher than themselves" (p. 41.) But the writer of that sentence ought to have had the manliness to explain what that "higher some- thing" is. Dr. Temple's estimate of the corruptions of the Papacy is of a piece with the rest of what I must be excused for calling a most unworthy performance. " Purgatory," &c. (he says) " was in fact, neither mcfre nor less than the old schoolmaster come back to bring some new scholars to CHRIST." (p. 42.) (Is the Eomish fable of Purgatory then to be put on the same footing as the Divine Eevelation to Moses on Sinai ?) It follows, " When the work was done, men began to discover that the Law was no longer neces- sary." (Ibid.) (Is it thus that the head-master of Eugby accounts for, and explains the Eeformation ?) " The time was come when it was fit to trust to the con- science as the supreme guide." (Ibid.) "At the Eefor- mation, it might have seemed at first as if the study of theology were about to return. But in reality an TEMPLE.] FALSE PRINCIPLES. XXI entirely new lesson commenced, the lesson of tole- ration. Toleration is the very opposite of dogmatism." (p. 43.) "Its tendency is to modify the early dog- matism by substituting the spirit for the letter, and practical religion for precise definitions of truth." (Ibid.) " The mature mind of our race is beginning to modify and soften the hardness and severity of the principles which its early manhood had elevated into immutable statements of truth. Men are beginning to take a wider view than they did. Physical science, researches into history, a more thorough knowledge of the world they inhabit, have enlarged our philo- sophy beyond the limits which bounded that of the Church of the Fathers. And all these have an influ- ence, whether we will or no, on our determinations of religious truth. There are found to be more things in heaven and earth than were dreamt of in patristic theology. GOD'S creation is a new book to be read by the side of His revelation, and to be interpreted as coming from Him. We can acknowledge the great value of the forms in which the first ages of the Church defined the truth, and yet refuse to be bound by them." (p. 43-4.) . . . Who so unacquainted with the method of a certain school as not to understand the fatal meaning of generalities, false and foul as these ? It may occur to some persons to inquire whether St. Paul, in a well-known place, does not affirm, (some- what as it is affirmed in this Essay,) that " the heir, as long as he is a child, ... is under tutors and go- vernors until the time appointed of the father ?" And that, "Even so we, when we were children, were in bondage under the elements of the world : but when XXli MEANING OF ST. PAUL IN THE [DR. the fulness of time was come, GOD sent forth His SON .... to redeem them that were under the Law, that we might receive the adoption of sons?" Does not St. Paul also go on to reproach men for " turning again to the weak and beggarly elements, whereunto they desired to be again in bondage?" saying, "ye observe 5 days, and months, and times, and years q ." It is quite true that St. Paul says all this : and I would fain believe that a puerile misconception of the Apostle's meaning has betrayed the misguided author of the present Essay into a notion that he enjoys a species of Divine sanction for what he has written concerning "the Education of the World." I may add that St. Paul also declares, (in the same Epistle,) that "the Law was our pcedagogus to bring us to CHRIST. . . . But after faith is come, we are no longer under a pcedagogus*." He further adds an exhorta- tion to the Galatians, (for it is still them whom he is addressing,) " Stand fast therefore in the liberty wherewith CHRIST hath made us free, and be not en- tangled again with the yoke of bondage s ." St. John moreover, in many places, insists upon the spiritual powers and privileges of believers, in a very remark- able manner, the same St. John, the same < Apostle of Love,' who says of a certain Doctrine which l Essay- ists and Eeviewers' write as if they disbelieved, " If there come any unto you, and bring not this doc- trine, receive him not into your house, neither bid him GOD speed : for he that biddeth him GOD speed is partaker of his evil deeds V But it does not require much knowledge of Divinity P Trapa TTjpelo-Oe: i.e. "ye w^observe," "keep in a wrong way" * Gal. iv. 110. * Gal. iii. 24, 25. 8 Gal. v. 1. * 2 St. John v. 10, 11. TEMPLE.] EPISTLE TO THE GALATIANS. XXlil to make a man aware that St. Paul's meaning and intention is as widely removed from Dr. Temple's, as Truth is removed from falsehood : or rather, that the Apostle is flatly against him. St. Paul is not bent on explaining what has been the Education of the World, but on pointing out in what relation the Gospel of CHRIST stands to the Law of Moses. He is reproving men who, having been converted to Christianity, were for lapsing into Judaism. Certain of the Circumcision had been striving, in St. Paul's absence, to bring his Galatian converts under the bondage of the Levitical Law; assuring them that the Gospel would avail them nothing unless they were circumcised and obe- dient to the Jewish ritual. Hence the Apostle's vehemence, and the peculiar form which his instruc- tion assumes. The Christian dispensation, (the scheme of Man's Justification by Faith in CHRIST,) is the fulfilment, (St. Paul says,) of the covenant which GOD once so- lemnly made with Abraham. The Mosaic Law, (which was not given till 430 years after the time of Abra- ham,) is powerless to cancel that earlier covenant of Faith. What was the use of the Law, then? some one may ask. It was a supplementary, parenthetical, superadded thing, which came in, as it were, acci- dentally, for certain assignable purposes. But now that the original covenant of Faith has at length found fulfilment in the person of CHRIST, it were monstrous (argues the Apostle) to revert to Judaism : which was a species of prison-house where we suffered bondage until MESSIAH came to set us free. We were as prisoners, says the Apostle. We were also as chil- dren, (who, anciently, from the age of six to fourteen, used to be consigned by their father to the care of XXIV THE -LAW BROUGHT MEN TO SCHOOL. [DR. a slave called a ' paedagogus ;' who was neither quali- fied nor allowed to teach them anything ; but whose office it was to conduct them to school.) So brought to the School of CHRIST, where learning comes by Faith, (such is his argument,) let men beware how they revert to the carnal ordinances of the Jewish Law. How different a view of our true state is thus dis- covered, from that which Dr. Temple describes ! A glorious liberty is in reserve for us indeed* : a pre- cious freedom is ours already. But it bears no resem- blance whatever to that lawlessness (dvofjiia) with which Dr. Temple seems to be enamoured. It is the correla- tion of slavery, not of obedience. It implies emanci- pation from the Levitical Law, not from the sanctions, however strict, of the Christian Church. The Doc- trines of CHRIST'S kingdom are the Christian's crown and joy. His "service is perfect freedom," and im- parts to life all its sweetness. Not only, therefore, (according to St. Paul's view of the matter,) were men no t released from school at u the meeting point of the Law and the Gospel," (p. 24,) but they only began to go to School then* ! How different a view of the Education of the World does the HOLY SPIRIT, does our LORD Himself fur- nish, from that which Dr. Temple here advocates ! . . . Fallen, in the person of Adam, and made subject to the penalty of eternal death, behold Mankind from 11 Rom. viii. 21. T It is presumed that the article in the Diet, of Antiquities will be held unexceptionable authority as to the office of the iraidayvyos. -" Rex filio paedagogum constituit, et singulis diebus ad eum in- visit, interrogans eum : Kum comedit films meus ? num in scholam abiit ? num ex schold rediit ?" "Wetstein, in loc. So Plato Lysis, p. 118. TEMPLE.] CHRIST OUR TEACHER. XXV the very first taught to believe that they should be ultimately redeemed by One born of woman. Under the image of a son who remained in his father's house, the favoured descendants of Abraham are set before us : while the rest of the world is pourtrayed in the person of another son, who goes into a far country, and there wastes his substance with riotous living. Not when grown into a colossal " youth too old for discipline," (p. 20, bottom,) but in the day of his dire necessity, and when he begins to be sensible of his utter need, behold the heathen nations, (in the person of the poor prodigal,) arising, and going to their true Father, and in the fulness of their misery asking for a hired servant's place in the household. Behold too GOD'S mercies in CHRIST set forth by " the first robe," (that robe of innocence which when Adam lost he knew that he was naked !) and the ring, and the shoes, and the fatted calf! Lastly, in the embrace which the Father, (while yet the offending but re- pentant son is a long way off,) runs to bestow, be- hold how GOD loved the World ! But Dr. Temple may say, My parable relates to one person : that which you have quoted pourtrays two, and thus all parallelism is lost. (In other words, our LORVS picture of " the Education of the "World" is altogether unlike Dr. Temple's /) Take, however, a parable which ought to suit exactly ; for in it man- kind are exhibited in the person of " a certain man." This individual is represented as one who, as he travels, is by thieves stripped, wounded, and left half dead. Such then, by nature, is the state of the hu- man race! Priest and Levite, who "look on him," but "pass by on the other side," set forth the Educa- tion of the World (!) until CHRIST came. A certain CHRIST OUR EXAMPLE FOR EVER. [DR. Samaritan, who lias compassion on the naked and wounded wretch, goes to him, binds up his wounds, pours in oil and wine, sets him on his own beast, brings him to the inn, and takes care of him : this one is CHRIST. The stranger's pence, and his promise to repay at his second coming what shall have been over-expended, set forth, I suppose, that ministra- tion of CHRIST'S Word and Sacraments which Dr. Temple exercises .... Let me dismiss the subject by remarking that I find no countenance given by Holy Scripture to Dr. Temple's monstrous notions concern- ing the Infancy, the Youth, and the Manhood of the Colossal Man. Our SAVIOUR CHRIST is indeed set before us in Scripture as our great Exemplar 3 " ; and St. Paul calls upon us to be followers, or rather imitators, (/LU/Ai/rof), of himself; even as he was of CHRIST y . But this walking by example, did not supersede the walking by precept ; neither was it to endure, (GoD forbid !) (as Dr. Temple emphatically says it was), (pp. 26 : 28-9,) only for about a hundred years : still less was " Example," (the second Teacher of the Human Race,) straightway to find itself supplanted by " the Spirit or Conscience" of Man, " the third great Teacher, and the last." What need to say that until His Second Coming to judge the world, we shall have no Teacher but CHRIST, no other way proposed to us to walk in, but that which the Gospel discloses ? Neither is it true that the world has been old enough, for the last 1800 years, to be taught by " see- 1 St. Peter ii. 21. Comp. St. James v. 10. y 1 Cor. xi. 1 : iv. 16. Phil. iii. 17. 2 Thess, iii. 9. Heb. xiii. 7, &c. TEMPLE.] NEED OF SOUND DOCTRINE. XXVli ing the lives of Saints" (a sentiment worthy of the weakest of Eomanists !) " letter than by hearing the words of Prophets." (pp. 28-9.) The Church of CHRIST will for ever listen to the blessed accents of that " goodly fellowship," until she beholds Him by whose Spirit they spake 2 , coming again to judgment. True that the object with which she will all along inform her children, will ever be that they may become conformed to the model of her Divine LORD. But " sound doc- trine a ," embodied in a "form of sound words b ," constitutes that TrapaKaraOrjKri, or " deposit," which is her proudest inheritance and her greatest treasure 6 : and impatience of it is a note of evil men, and of a season at which Prophecy points her awful finger d . . . . . " Lawlessness," (avo/jLiaJ is discoursed of by the SPIRIT with a mysterious earnestness which it seems to me impossible to survey without mingled awe and terror lest one may become oneself involved in the threatened condemnation. I allude of course especially to what St. Paul says in his second Epistle to the Thessalonians ; the language of which, to be under- stood, must be studied in the original 6 . Conscience has her office, doubtless ; and a most important one it is. Conscience is the very candle of the LORD within us. But, (as I have elsewhere shewn,) it were base treason to speak of conscience as Essayists and Eeviewers speak of it. With them, it is indeed impossible to argue. They must first with- 1 St. Pet. i. 11. 1 Tim. i. 10: iv. 6, Tit. i. 9 : ii. 1. Comp. 2 St. John v. 10. b 2 Tim. i. 13. c 2 Tim. i. 13, 14 : ii. 2. Also 1 Tim. vi. 20. On both places, Dr. Wordsworth's Notes may be consulted with advantage, d 2 Tim. iv. 3. e 2 Thess. ii. 7, 8, &c. CONSCIENCE SELF-INFORMED [DR. draw from the cause which they have betrayed ; cease to profess the teaching which they disbelieve ; resign their commission in a Church to whose Doctrine and Discipline they openly proclaim themselves to be opposed. I will not argue with them, while they pre- sume to write B.D. and D.D. after their names, hold Chaplaincies, preside over Schools and Colleges, profess to lecture in Divinity, officiate at the altars of the Church of England, by virtue of their sacred office, and ly virtue of that only, are instructors of youth. They cannot, (if they are in the full enjoy- ment of their faculties,) they cannot imagine, for a moment, that, as honest men, they can remain where they are ! They must either recal their words or resign their stations ! But speaking to others, it will abundantly suffice to point out that such principles as the present Essay advocates are incompatible with the profession of Christianity in any country, and in any age. If the spirit or conscience of Man is to legislate " without appeal except to himself ;" (p. 31 ;) if men are to " re- fuse to be lound" (p. 44.) by the Creeds of the Church ; if the very Bible is not to be looked upon as " an outer law :" (p. 45 :) how is sentence ever to be pro- nounced with authority ? how are men to know what they have to believe ? how are we to enjoy the guid- ance of any " outer law" at all ? I do not ask these questions as a clergyman; neither am I addressing those exclusively who have been admitted to the Chris- tian priesthood. Common sense, ordinary piety, natural reverence, seem to cry out, and ask, If the Church have no "authority in controversies of Faith f ;" if the three Creeds ought not " thoroughly to be received and f Art. XX. TEMPLE.] AN INSUFFICIENT GUIDE. believed* ;" if the Bible is not " an outer Law ;" where is Authority in things Divine to be sought for ? What can be worthy of credit ? Where are we to look for external guidance on this side the grave ? . . . Surely, surely, common sense is outraged when she hears it insisted that the written Bible is a Eevelation speak- ing NOT "from without," but "from within!" (pp. 36 and 45.) Surely it must be admitted that it were mere atheism to pretend that Man's " spirit or con- science, without appeal except to himself" shall hence- forth be the governing principle of Mankind ! Let me in conclusion do this writer an act of justice, (for which he will not perhaps altogether thank me,) even while with shame and sorrow I now dismiss his Essay. Unpardonable as he is for having written thus ; and wholly without excuse for having suffered nine editions of his blasphemous allegory to go forth to the world without apology, explanation, or retractation of any kind, although he labours under a weight of competent censure without a parallel, I believe, in the annals of the English Church h : notwithstanding all this, I am bound to say that if the unbelievers of this generation think they have an ally in the man, Frederick Temple, they are very much mistaken. That so pure a heart, and earnest a spirit, will never work itself free of its present bondage, I should be sorry indeed to think. (But the mischief which the head-master of Eugby School will have done in the meantime !) His misfortune (or rather fault) it has been, that he has really never studied Divinity ; * Art. VIII. h I allude especially to the terrible castigation lie has indi- vidually received at the hands of the Bishop of Exeter. See the Times, of March 4th, 1861. XXX DR. WILLIAMS IN ]jDR. nor, in fact, knows anything at all about it, as a volume of his, lately published, sufficiently shews. Apart from his opinions (!), he is a thoroughly amiable man ; and (with the same proviso !) an excellent school- master ; but when he ventures upon the province of Theology, he shews himself something infinitely worse than a very lad Divine. II. On turning the first page of the review which follows, " by BOWLAND WILLIAMS, D.D. Vice-Principal and Professor of Hebrew, St. David's College, Lam- peter; Yicar of Broad Chalke, Wilts," we are made sensible that we are in company of a writer consider- ably in advance of Dr. Temple, though altogether of the same school. In fact, if Dr. Williams had not been Vice-Principal of a Theological College, and a Doctor of Divinity, one would have supposed him to be a complete infidel, who found it convenient to vent his own unbelief in a highly laudatory review of the principles of the late Baron Bunsen. Hear him : " When Bunsen asks t How long shall we bear this fiction of an external Bevelation,' that is, of one violating the heart and conscience, instead of express- ing itself through them ; or when he says, l All this is delusion for those who believe it ; but what is it in the mouths of those who teach it ?' Or when he ex- claims, ' Oh the fools ! who, if they do see the im- minent perils of this age, think to ward them off by narrow-minded persecution' ! and when he repeats, < Is it not time, in truth, to withdraw the veil from our misery? to tear off the mask from hypocrisy, and destroy that sham which is undermining all real ground under our feet ? to point out the dangers WILLIAMS.] ESSAYS AND REVIEWS. which surround, nay, threaten already to engulf us ?' there will be some who think his language too vehement for good taste. Others will think burning words needed by the disease of our time. These will not quarrel on points of taste with a man who in our darkest perplexity has reared again the banner of Truth, and uttered thoughts which gave courage to the weak and sight to the blind. If Protestant Europe is to escape those shadows of the twelfth century which with ominous recurrence are closing around us, to Baron Bunsen will belong a foremost place among the champions of light and right." (pp. 92-3.) But even the Prussian infidel is not advanced enough for the Vicar of Broad Chalke. Bunsen, it seems, was weak enough to believe that the prophet Jonah was a real personage. This evokes the follow- ing singular burst of critical indignation from the Eeverend author of the present Essay : "It provokes a smile on serious topics," (a kind of impropriety which the Yice-Principal of Lampeter will not commit except under protest and with an apology!) "to observe the zeal with which our critic vindicates the personality of Jonah, and the originality of his hymn, (the latter being generally thought doubtful), while he proceeds to explain that the narrative of our book in which the hymn is imbedded, contains a late le- gend founded on misconception. One can imagine the cheers which the opening of such an essay might evoke in some of our circles, changing into indigna- tion (!) as the distinguished foreigner developed his views. After this he might speak more gently of mythical theories." (p. 77.) For the most part, however, the Yicar of Broad Chalke is able to cite the opinions of Bunsen with XXxii GENESIS. EXODUS. 2 SAMUEL. [DR. admiration and approval. They are both agreed that the Deluge " was but a prolonged play of the forces of fire and water rendering the primaeval regions of North Asia uninhabitable, and urging the nations to new abodes." (Of what nature this " prolonged play* ? was, is however left unexplained : while " the forces of fire and water rendering primeval regions uninhabit- able," and " urging nations to new abodes," has alto- gether a Herodotean sound.) "We learn approxi- mately its antiquity, and infer limitation in its range from finding it recorded in the traditions of Iran and Palestine, (or of Japheth and Shem), but unknown to the Egyptians and Mongolians." (p. 56.) (A delight- ful method truly of attaining historical precision in a matter of this nature !)...." In the half ideal, half traditional notices of the beginnings of our race com- piled in Genesis, we are bid notice the combina- tion of documents and the recurrence of barely con- sistent Genealogies." (Ibid.} Praise is at hand for " the firmness with which Bunsen relegates the long lives of the first patriarchs to the domain of legend, or of symbolical cycle." (p. 57.) " The historical portion begins with Abraham." (Ibid.) After this ad- mission, it is instructive to observe how the learned writer deals with the narrative. The Exode was "a struggle conducted by human means." (p. 59.) " Thus, as the pestilence of the Book of Kings be- comes in Chronicles the more visible angel, so the avenger who slew the firstborn may have been the Bedouin host, (!) akin nearly to Jethro, and more re- motely to Israel." (Ibid.) (It is really hardly worth stopping to point out that by ' Kings' the Reverend writer means < the second Book of Samuel :' and to remind the reader that the Angel is mentioned as ex- WILLIAMS.] SCRIPTURE EXPLAINED AWAY. XXXlil pressly in Samuel as in Chronicles' 1 . Also, to ask what 1 the Bedouin host' could have been doing in Egypt previous to the Exode ?) " The passage of the Eed Sea may be interpreted with the latitude of poetry." (Ibid.) " Moses would gladly have founded a free religious society, . . . but the rudeness or hardness of his people's heart compelled him to a sacerdotal system and formal tablets of stone." (p. 62.) Nay, Abraham's intended sacrifice of Isaac was an act of obedience to "the fierce ritual of Syria, with the awe of a Divine voice :" (p. 61 :) while the Divine com- mand, in conformity with which Abraham spared to slay his son, is resolved into an allegory. " He trusted that the FATHER, whose voice from Heaven he heard at heart, was better pleased with mercy than with sacrifice, and this trust was his righteousness." (p. 61.) Dr. "Williams straightway shews us how we may tread in the steps of faithful Abraham. The perpetual re- sponse of our hearts, (he says,) to principles of Eeason and Eight of our own tracing, is a truer sign of faith than deference to a supposed external authority, (p. 61.) .... According to this writer, therefore, Genesis and Exodus are pure fable ! The whole of Scripture, in the hands of this Doctor of Divinity, undergoes corresponding treatment. They who " twist Prophecy into harmony with the details 1 " And when the Angel stretched out his hand upon Jerusalem to destroy it, the LOBD . . . said to the Angel that destroyed the people," &c. " And the Angel of the LOED was by the threshing- place of Araunah the Jebusite." 2 Sam. xxiv. 16. " The Angel of the LORD stood by the threshing-floor of Oman the Jebusite. And David lifted up his eyes, and saw the Angel of the LOBD stand between the Earth and the Heaven, having a drawn sword in his hand stretched out over Jerusalem." 1 Chron. xxi. 15, 16. d XXxiv FREE-HANDLING OF PROPHECY. [DR. of Gospel history, fall into inextricable contradictions." (pp. 64-5.) " The Book of Isaiah, as composed of ele- ments of different eras," can only be accepted with a " modified theory of authorship and of prediction." (p. 68.) In the prophecy of Zechariah are " three dis- tinct styles and aspects of affairs." (Ibid.) "The cursing Psalms," (!!!) he informs us, were not " evan- gelically inspired ;" (p. 63 ;) and yet we are constrained to remember that the cixth Psalm (specially alluded to) is evangelically interpreted by St. Peter k . The true translation of Psalm xxii. 17, (learnedly discussed, long since, by Bishop Pearson,) is not "they pierced My hands and My feet," but " like a lion ;" (not- withstanding that Pearson has shewn that the sub- stitution of vau for yod in this place is one of the eighteen instances where the Scribes have tampered with the text 1 ; and notwithstanding that this mo- dern corruption of the Hebrew, as every one must see, makes the place almost nonsense m .) Is. vii. 14 does not refer to the miraculous birth of CHRIST, (p. 69,) (although St. Matthew is express in his assertion that it does.) There is, it seems, an elder and a later Isaiah, (p. 71.) The famous liiird chapter does not refer to CHRIST ; but either to Jeremiah or to " the collective Israel," (p. 73,) (although it is at least .seven times quoted, and expressly applied to our SAVIOUR, in the New Testament 11 .) Daniel, we are k Acts i. 20. 1 On the Creed, Art. iv. p. 244, notes (u) and (#). m " It would take no great space," (says Dr. Pusey,) "to shew that the rendering 'as a lion,' is unmeaning, without authority, against authority ; while the rendering * they pierced' is borne out alike by authority and language." a Ver. 1, St. John xii. 38. Bom. x. 16. Ver. 4, St. Matth. WILLIAMS.] FREE-HANDLING OF PROPHECY. XXXV assured, belongs to different ages ; and it is " certain, beyond fair doubt . . . that those portions of the book, supposed to be specially predictive, are . . a history of past occurrences." (p. 69.) That "the book contains no predictions, except by analogy and type, can hardly be gainsaid." (pp. 76-7.) . . . . (If any of us had dog- matized as to Truth as these men do as to error, (remarks Dr. Pusey,) what scorn we should be held up to !).... The Keverend author insolently adds, " It is time for divines to recognize these things, since with their opportunities of study, the current error is as discreditable to them, as for the well-meaning crowd, who are taught to identify it with their creed, it is a matter of grave compassion." (p. 77.) " When so vast an induction on the destructive side has been gone through, it avails little that some passages may be doubtful ; one perhaps in Zechariah, and one in Isaiah, capable of being made directly Messianic ; and a chapter possibly in Deuteronomy foreshadowing the final fall of Jerusalem. Even these few cases, the remnant of so much confident rhetoric, tend to melt, if they are not already melted, in the crucible of searching enquiry." (pp. 69-70.) Our Doctor of Divinity, having reduced the prophecies " capable of being made" Messianic, to two, breaks out into a strain of refined banter which is altogether his own, and which we presume is intended to stand in the place of argument. " If our German, [viz. Bunsen,] had ignored all that the masters of philology have proved on these subjects, his countrymen would have raised a storm of ridicule, at which he must have drowned him- self in the Neckar." (p. 70.) A catastrophe so fatal to viii. 17. Yer. 4 to 11, 1 St. Pet. ii. 24, 25. Yer. 7 and 8, Acts viii. 32. Yer. 12, St. Mark xv. 28. St. Luke xxii. 37. d2 XXX vi FREE-HANDLING OF PROPHECY. [DR. the cause of true Eeligion and sound learning may well point a paragraph ! . . . . But we must write gravely. The absolute worthlessness of unsupported dicta such as these, ought to be apparent to all. It is use- less to reason with a madman. We desiderate nothing so much as " searching enquiry, '' (p. 69,) but we are presented instead with something worse than random assertion. If the writer would state a single case, with its evidence, we should know how to deal with him. We should examine his arguments seriatim ; and either refute them, or admit their validity. From such " free handling," the cause of sacred Truth can never suffer. But when, in place of argument and evidence, we have merely bluster, what is to be said ? Pity and disregard are the only reply we can bestow ; or our answers must be as brief as the calumny which provokes them. " How," (asks the Eegius Professor of Hebrew,) "can such an undigested heap of errors receive a systematic answer in brief space, or in any one treatise or volume ?" " If any sincere Christian now asks, is not then our SAVIOUR spoken of in Isaiah ; let him open his New Testament, and ask therewith John the Baptist, whe- ther he was Elias ? If he finds the Baptist answering / am not, yet our LORD testifies that in spirit and power this was Elias ; a little reflexion will shew how the historical representation in Isaiah liii. is of some suffering prophet or remnant, yet the truth and patience, the grief and triumph, have their highest fulfilment in Him who said, ' FATHER, not My will but Thine.' " (p. 74.). I have transcribed this passage to illustrate the miserable sophistry of the author. It is foretold by Malachi that before the great and ter- rible day of the LORD, Elijah is to come back to WILLIAMS.] FREE-HANDLING OF PROPHECY. XXXvii Earth . John Baptist came in his " spirit and power p ," but was not Elijah himself. How does it follow from this that Isaiah may have prophesied merely of quali- ties and not of a person ? The only logical inference from his words would surely be, that Elijah is yet to come q ! Dr. Williams adds, "We must not distort the prophets to prove the Divine WORD incarnate, and then from the Incarnation reason back to the sense of prophecy." (p. 74.) Was not then the Divine WORD incarnate? The theory of one who writes like an open un- believer concerning Divine things is really not worth developing: and yet, as I am examining an Essay which seems to be entirely built upon such a theory, it may be desirable, in this instance, that the de- formity of the writer should be uncovered : especially since Dr. Williams writes such very dark English, that, until some of his sentences are translated, they are barely intelligible. Anticipating that his doctrines may " alarm those who think that, apart from Omniscience belonging to the Jews, (!) the proper conclusion of reason is Athe- ism ;" (in other words, that the rejection of a belief in the inspiration of Prophecy will eventually conduct a man to the rejection of GOD Himself;) the Re- verend writer declares that "it is not inconsistent with the idea that ALMIGHTY GOD has been pleased to educate men and nations, employing imagination no less than conscience, and suffering His lessons to play freely within the limits of humanity and its short- comings." (p. 77.) (In other words, that what Scrip- Mai. iv. 5. p St. Luke i. 17. 1 As the Fathers generally teach. . See Brown's Ordo Saclorum, pp. 702-3, &c., &c. XXXViil FREE-HANDLING OF THE BIBLE. [DR. ture emphatically declares, and what .men have for thousands of years believed to be inspired predictions of future events, are none other than the effusions of a lively imagination, or the suggestions of a well- informed conscience.) " The prophetical disquisi- tions," (p. 77,) therefore, are subject to error of every imaginable description; and possess no higher attri- butes than belong to any ordinary human work by "a master's hand." (p. 77.) "The Sacred Writers acknowledge themselves men of like passions with ourselves, and we are promised illumination from the Spirit which dwelt in them." (p. 78.) We may not think of the Sacred Writers as " passionless machines, and call Luther and Milton ' uninspired.' " (Ibid.) "The great result is to vindicate the work of the Eternal Spirit; that abiding influence which under- lies all others, and in which converge all images of old time and means of grace now : temple, Scripture, finger, and Hand of GOD ; and again, preaching, sacraments, waters which comfort, and flame which burns." (p. 78.) It follows," If such a Spirit did not dwell in the Church, the Bible would not be inspired, for the Bible is, before all things, the written voice of the congregation." (p. 78.) Offended Eeason, (for Piety has no place here,) has not time to reclaim against so preposterous a statement; for it follows immediately, "Bold as such a theory of Inspira- tion (!) may sound, it was the earliest creed of the Church, and it is the only one to which the facts of Scripture answer." (p. 78.) . . . What reply can be offered to such an outrageous statement, but flat con- tradiction? What more effectual refutation of such a < theory' (?) concerning Scripture, than simply to state it ? WILLIAMS.] FREE-HANDLING OF THE BIBLE. Let this miserable but conceited man yet further map out the nature of his own delusion respecting Prophecy. He applauds the wisdom of one who " accepts freely the belief of scholars, and yet does not despair of Hebrew Prophecy as a witness to the King- dom of God:" (p. 70:) (that is, of one who, like Bunsen, altogether disbelieves in prophecy as prophecy^ and yet is bent on finding something of an Evan- gelical character in the prophetic writings.) "The way of doing so left open to him, was to shew per- vading the Prophets those deep truths which lie at the heart of Christianity, and to trace the growth of such ideas, the belief in a righteous GOD, and the nearness of Man to GTOD, the power of prayer, and .the victory of self-sacrificing patience, ever expanding in men's hearts, until the fulness of time came, and the ideal of the Divine thought was fulfilled in the Son of Man." (p. 70.) In other words, CHRIST was nothing more than the fullest development and im- personation of the best thoughts and feelings of the (so-called) prophets ! He " fulfilled in His own person the highest aspiration of Hebrew seers and of man- kind, thereby lifting the ancient words, so to speak, into a new and higher power; and therefore was recognized as having eminently the unction of a pro- phet whose words die not, of a priest in a temple not made with hands, and of a king in the realm of thought, delivering his people from a bondage of moral evil, worse than Egypt or Babylon." (pp. 74-5.) " A notion of foresight by vision of particular s, or a kind of clairvoyance," (p. 70,) (such is this Doctor of Divi- nity's notion of the gift of prophecy !) he deems in- admissible. " Literal prognostication" (p. 65,) is his abhorrence. He would eliminate the Messianic pas- xl FREE-HANDLING OF PROPHECY, [DR. sages altogether, (pp. 65-6.) That Prophecy was mi- raculous, was a dream of the Fathers, (p. 66.) Even the notion that Prophecy is " a natural gift, consistent with fallibility," (p. 70,) Dr. Williams rejects as an unwarrantable addition to the " moral and metaphy- sical basis of Prophecy." (p. 70.) Bunsen was for ad- mitting that addition. " One would wish," (says the Vicar of Broad Chalke,) " he might have intended only the power of seeing the ideal in the actual ', or of tracing the Divine Government in the movements of men. He seems to mean move than presentiment or saga- city : and this element in his system requires proof." (pp. 70-1.) . . . This, from a Doctor of Divinity ! a Professor of Hebrew ! the Yice-Principal of a Theo- logical College ! a shepherd of souls ! We are left to infer that " the Fall of Adam repre- sents ideally the circumscription of our spirits in limits of flesh and time :" (p. 88 :) that CHRIST is "the moral Saviour of mankind;" (p. 80;) and. that Salvation from evil is to be attained by the conformity of our souls to a u religious idea" which was "brought to perfection" in CHRIST, (p. 80.) This "religious idea" "is the thought of the Eternal." (Ibid.} In other words, "Salvation from evil" is "through sharing the SAVIOUR'S Spirit." (p. 87.) We are fur- ther left to infer that "Justification by faith means the peace of mind, or sense of Divine approval, which comes of trust in a righteous GOD :" (p. 80 :) that " Eegeneration is a correspondent giving of insight, or an awakening of forces of the soul : Eesurrection, a spiritual quickening : Salvation, our deliverance, not from the life-giving GOD, but from evil and dark- ness." (p. 81.) ... And this from a Clergyman who has just subscribed, " willingly and ex animo" the three WILLIAMS.] AND OF CATHOLIC DOCTRINE. xll Articles in the 36th Canon ! . . . After such specimens of Divinity, we are scarcely surprised to find that the fires of Hell (yievva) " may serve as images of distracted remorse :" (p. 81 :) that " Heaven is not a place r , so much as a fulfilment of the love of GOD." (pp. 81-2.) The very Incarnation, (which he calls " the embodiment of the Eternal Mind,") (p. 82.) is spoken of as if it were a myth. " It becomes with our author as purely spiritual as it was with St. Paul. The Son of David by birth is the SON of GOD ly the spirit of holiness. "What is flesh, is born of flesh ; and what is spirit, is born of Spirit." (p. 82.) Eom. i. 1 3 is quoted in support of this, which I cannot but regard as blasphemy : for if it does not mean that our SAVIOUR was not, in a true and literal sense, the SON of GOD at all, it is hard to see what it can mean. As for the following account of the mystery of the Blessed Tri- nity, it shall only be said that it sounds like a denial of the Catholic doctrine altogether. " Being, becom- ing, and animating ; or substance, thinking, and con- scious life, are expressions of a Triad which may be also represented as will, wisdom, and love ; as light, radiance, and warmth ; as fountain, stream, and united flow ; as mind, thought, and consciousness ; as person, word, and life ; as FATHER, SON, and SPIRIT." (p. 88.) The nebulous is a striking peculiarity of the style of the Yicar of Broad Chalke 8 . He informs us that " in virtue of the identity of Thought with Being the primitive Trinity represented neither three originant principles nor three transient phases, but three eternal subsistencies in one Divine Mind. . . . The Divine Consciousness or Wisdom, consubstantial with the r And yet, " I go to prepare a place for you !" St. John xiv. 2. See, for example, p. 60, (lower half,) p. 62, (middle,) &c. xlli FREE-HANDLING OF REVEALED TRUTH. [DR. Eternal Will, becoming personal in the Son of Man, is the express image of the FATHER; and JESUS ac- tually, but also Mankind ideally, is the SON of GOD." (pp. 88-9.) Since this has "almost a Brahmanical sound" (p. 89.) even to the Yicar of Broad Chalke, we are content to pass it by in mute astonishment. He proceeds: "Both spiritual affection and meta- physical reasoning forbid us to confine Eevelations like those of CHRIST to the first half century of our era ; but shew at least affinities of our faith existing in men's minds, anterior to Christianity, and renewed with deep echo from living hearts in many a gene- ration." (p. 82.) Was our SAVIOUR then a fabulous personage, a virtuous principle, and not a Man ? . . . " Again. We find the evidences of our canonical books and of the patristic authors nearest to them, are suffi- cient to prove illustrationjn outward act of principles perpetually true, but not adequate to guarantee nar- ratives inherently incredible or precepts evidently wrong." (pp. 82-3.) Are then the sacred "narratives" "inherently incredible?" or the Divine "precepts" "evidently wrong?" These are, we presume, among the " traditional fictions about our Canon" (p. 83.) at which the Theological Professor sneers. "Hence we are obliged to assume in ourselves a verifying faculty," (p. 83,) and so, Dr. Williams and Dr. Temple shake hands*. An instance of the exercise of this faculty is immediately subjoined. " The verse * And no man hath ascended up to Heaven, but he that came down,' is intelligible as a free comment near the end of the first century ; but has no meaning in our LORD'S mouth at a time when the Ascension had not been heard of." (p. 84.) " The Apocalypse" * Comp. p. 45. WILLIAMS.] FREE-HANDLING OF REVEALED TRUTH. xlili in like manner, to " cease to be a riddle," must be " taken as a series of poetical visions which represent the outpouring of the vials of wrath upon the City where our LORD was slain." (p. 84.) ... (Is it possible that a Minister of the Gospel of CHRIST can speak thus concerning the Divine record?) . . . " The second of the Petrine Epistles, having alike external and internal evidence against its genuineness, is necessarily sur- rendered as a whole." (p. 84.) (Can a man solemnly sign the vith Article, and yet so write?) " A philo- sophical view [of the doctrine of the Trinity] recom- mends itself as easiest to believe." (p. 87.) The 1 f view" expressed in the Athanasian Creed is we presume that which is stigmatized as " one felt to be so irrational, that it calls in the aid of terror." (p. 87.) The Eeverend writer does not name the Athanasian Creed, indeed. It is not the general fashion of Essay- ists and Eeviewers, from Dr. Temple to Professor Jowett, to speak plainly. But common sense asks, If Dr. Williams does not allude to the Creed in question, what does he allude to? And common honesty adds, How is such an allusion to that for- mula consistent with subscription to Art. viii. ? The Sacrament of Baptism, (he says,) has "dege- nerated into a magical form," (p. 86,) since it has " become twisted into a false analogy with circum- cision," (twisted, at all events, by St. Paul 11 !) and it is merely an "Augustinian notion" that "a curse is inherited by Infants." How, one humbly asks, does the Eeverend writer reconcile it to his conscience not only to have signed the ixth Article, but to em- ploy the Baptismal Service, and to teach the little ones of the flock their Catechism ? u Col. ii. 11, 12. Rom. ii. 29. Phil. iii. 3, &c. xliv DR. WILLIAMS' STYLE. [DR. On reaching the last page of the present Essay, one is irresistibly led to remark that if a single word could convey an adequate notion of the author's manner, that word would be Insolence. When Dr. "Williams would express difference of opinion, he has recourse to violence and bluster : when he would patronize, he is sure to make himself unspeakably offensive. But he seldom agrees with anybody, even with disciples of the same school with himself, as Messrs. Bunsen and Arnold, Coleridge and Francis Newman. Pro- fessor Mansel is "a mere gladiator hitting in the dark," whose " blows fall heaviest on what it was his duty to defend." (p. 67.) Dr. Pusey receives a me- nacing intimation of what his Commentary must not be. Davison's reasoning labours under the inconve- nient defect of an unproved minor premiss, (p. 66.) The majestic memory of Bp. Pearson is insulted by this vulgar man, and the fairness of his citations are impeached, (p. 72.) Bp. Butler is declared to have turned aside from an unwelcome idea (!), literature not being his strong point (!) (p. 65.) Justin, (p. 64,) Augustine, (p. 65,) Jerome, (pp. 65, 71,) Anselm, (p. 67,) all come in for a share of the Vice-Principal of Lampeter's contempt. Even the Apologist of Es- says and Reviews is constrained to admit that " any- thing more" ^becoming " than some of Dr. Williams' s remarks we have never read, in writings professing to be written seriously v ." But faults of mind and manner, however gross, do but disqualify a writer for being the associate of men of taste and good breeding; and blemishes of style are, at least, venial. Not so easily to be excused is the deplorable spectacle of a Minister of the Gospel, v Edinburgh Review, (Ap. 1861,) p. 429. WILLIAMS.] a Doctor of Divinity and Yice-Principal of a Theolo- gical College, lending all his critical powers, (which yet seem to be of the most indifferent description,) in order to undermine the authority of GOD'S Word. He has been asked, "Do you unfeignedly believe all the Canonical Scriptures of the Old and New Tes- tament ?" and he has answered, " I do believe them." He has been asked, " Will you be ready, with all dili- gence, to banish and drive away all erroneous and strange doctrines contrary to GOD'S Word?" and he has made reply, " I will, the LORD being my helper." He has solemnly declared his trust that he was " in- wardly moved ~by the HOLY GHOST to take upon himself this office and ministration" Yet this is the man who explains away Miracles, denies Prophecy, and idealizes Scripture; the man who disparages the formulae he uses daily, mutilates the Canon, and evacuates the most solemn doctrines of the Church ! I have now said as much as I think necessary con- cerning Dr. Williams's Essay. The entire refutation of such a tissue of groundless assertions and unfounded statements, and unscholarlike criticisms, and unphi- losophical views, would fill many volumes. It is to be feared also that, to him, the result would not be convincing after all. To have stated in brief outline, as I have already done, the leading positions to which he commits himself, ought to suffice. The mere ex- hibition of such principles (?) ought to be their own abundant refutation. . . . GOD give the unhappy author repentance of his errors ! And will not men believe that in the pages of the present Essay is to be seen the lawful development, and inevitable result of the opinions advocated in every other part of the present volume? I perceive scarcely any essential difference between the views of any of these seven writers. All MR. BADEN POWELI/S ESSAY. [PROF. are moving along the same fatal road ; and are sim- ply at different stages of the journey. But they conduct themselves wondrous differently in their progress, certainly ; Dr. Williams being immeasur- ably the most offensive of the seven, the only one who, besides seeming blasphemous, can truly be called vulgar. III. The third Essay in the present volume is by "the REV. BADEN POWELL, M.A., F.B.S., Savilian Professor of Geometry in the University of Oxford," a gentleman with whose labours I shall deal briefly and gently for two reasons. His assertions admit of summary refutation ; and he has already, (alas !) passed beyond the limit of earthly Criticism. I de- sire to add concerning him, that in the private re- lations of life he was a friendly and amiable person. The solemn circumstance already adverted to, would have kept me silent altogether. "When a writer is no longer able to defend himself, it is ungenerous to at- tack him : and at a time when he knows far more wonders than are dreamed of by any one on the Earth's surface, it seems unbecoming to stand reasoning over his grave about an u antecedent probability." But I am addressing not the dead, but the living, -to whom, in the pages of ' Essays and Ee views, 7 Professor Powell "being dead yet speaketh." He entitles his contribution, " On the Study of the Evidences of Christianity :" but, as often happens with performances of the like nature, the title of his Essay gives a wrong notion of its contents. It ought to have been called " The Validity of THE EVIDENCE FROM MIRACLES considered," or rather " denied." There is nothing new in the present attack on the Miracles of Scripture. The author disposes of them POWELL.] DENIAL OF MIRACLES. by a single assertion. " What is alleged," (he says,) " is a case of the supernatural. But no testimony can reach to the supernatural." (p. 107.) The inference is obvious. Again : " an event may be so incredible intrinsically as to set aside any degree of testimony" (p. 106.) Such an event he declares a Miracle to be ; and explains that "from the nature of our antecedent convictions, the probability of some kind of mistake or deception somewhere, though we know not where, is greater than the probability of the event really happening in the way, and from the causes assigned." (pp. 106-7.) This merely amounts to asserting that the antecedent improbability of Miracles is so great as to make them incredible. The writer does not attempt to establish this point. "The present dis- cussion," (he says,) "is not intended to be of a con- troversial kind ; it is purely contemplative and theo- retical." (p. 100.) And yet, he cannot suppose that the Universal Church will surrender its convictions and reverse its deliberate judgment, at the merely " contemplative and theoretical " suggestions of an individual, however respectable he may happen to be. Against his mere assertion, we claim a right to set the result of Bp. Butler's careful investigation of the same subject : " That there certainly is no such pre- sumption against Miracles, as to render them in any wise incredible: that, on the contrary, our being able to discern reasons for them, gives a positive credibility to the history of them, in cases where those reasons hold : and that it is by no means certain that there is any peculiar presumption at all, from analogy, even in the lowest degree, against Miracles, as distinguished from other extraordinary phenomena x ." x Analogy, P. n. ch. ii., ad Jin. Xlviii OBJECTIONS OF HUME AND SPINOZA. [PROF. Professor Powell's objection against Miracles is, in fact, practically that of the infidel Hume; who asserted "that no testimony for any kind of Mi- racle can ever possibly amount to a probability, much less to a proof." He argued that Miracles, being contrary to general experience, are incapa- ble of proof. He maintained also, (with Spinoza,) that Miracles, being contrary to the established laws of Nature, imply, in the very character of them, a palpable contradiction. This latter position seems to be identical with that adopted by Pro- fessor Powell. In a certain place, this author finds fault with " the too frequent assumption ... of the part of the .... Advocate, when the character to be sustained should be rather that of the unbiassed Judge" (p. 95.) But what are we to think of the judicial fairness of one who is not only Advocate and Judge in his own cause ; but who even turns the "Witnesses out of Court ; and will listen to no evidence, on the plea that it cannot be trustworthy ; or at least, that it shall be unavail- ing? "I express myself with caution," (says Bp. Butler, with reference to arguments against the cre- dibility of Eevelation,) " lest I should be mistaken to vilify Eeason ; which is indeed the only faculty we have wherewith to judge concerning anything, even Revelation itself : or be misunderstood to assert that a supposed revelation cannot be proved false, from internal characters. For it may contain clear immo- ralities, or contradictions ; and either of these would prove it false. Nor will I take upon me to affirm, that nothing else can possibly render any supposed revelation incredible. Yet still the observation is, I think, true beyond doubt ; that objections against POWELL.] ANTECEDENT CONVICTIONS. xlix Christianity ', as distinguished from objections against its evidence, are frivolous y ." That a certain occurrence or phenomenon " is due to supernatural causes," Professor Powell maintains is " entirely dependent on the previous belief and as- sumptions of the parties." (p. 107.) He forgets that he grounds his own denial of the possibility of a Miracle, on nothing stronger than "the nature of" his own "antecedent convictions." Thus, the ques- tion becomes merely a personal one between Mr. Baden Powell and the Apostles of CHRIST. The reasonable- ness of the "antecedent convictions" in the one case have to be set against the reasonableness of the "an- tecedent convictions" in the other. Either party, (ac- cording to this view,) has its own "previous belief and assumptions ;" which, in the one case, are known to have produced conviction; in the other, they are unhappily found to have resulted in a rejection of Miracles. But then it happens, unfortunately, that in the case of the Apostles and others, conviction of the truth of our LORD'S Miracles was based on know- ledge, and experience of a matter of fact : in the case of Professor Powell, disbelief is founded on certain " an- tecedent convictions" only: namely, "the inconceiv- ableness of imagined interruptions of natural Order, or supposed suspensions of the Laws of matter." (p. 110.) He is never tired of repeating that "in an age of physical research like the present, all highly cul- tivated minds and duly advanced intellects (!) have imbibed, more or less, the lessons of the Induc- tive Philosophy ; and have, at least in some measure, learned to appreciate the grand foundation conception of universal Law:" (p. 133:) that "the entire range y Analogy, P. u. ch. iii., ad init. 1 VAN MILDERT ON THE SUPPOSED [PROF. of the Inductive Philosophy is at once based upon, and in every instance tends to confirm, by immense accumulation of evidence, the grand truth of the universal Order and constancy of natural causes, as a primary law of belief; so strongly entertained and fixed in the mind of every truly inductive inquirer, that he cannot even conceive the possibility of its failure." (p. 109.) I gladly avail myself of a page from the writings of a thoughtful writer of our own, who, half a century ago, reviewed the very errors which are being so in- dustriously reproduced among ourselves at this day, certainly not with more ability than of old : " Let us examine a little farther into the weight of the argu- ment derived from the supposed immutability of the Laws of Nature. It has constantly been the theme of modern Unbelievers, that the course of Nature is fixed, eternal, unalterable; and that nothing which is supposed to violate it can possibly take place. Now, we may readily allow, that the course of Nature is un- alterable by human power ; nay, even by the power of any created being whatsoever. But the question is, Are these Laws unalterable ly Him who made them ? Proof of this is requisite, before the argument from the immutability of the Laws of Nature can have the least force. We may safely assert, however, that proof of this is absolutely impossible. ' Facts,' it may be said, 1 daily passing before us, warrant us in supposing its laws to be unchangeable.' Perhaps so. But if a thou- sand or more facts have occurred, since the Creation of the "World, in which those Laws appear to have been over-ruled, or suspended, is such a conclusion then warrantable ? Even if there had never been a single instance of a Miracle recorded, since the POWELL.] IMMUTABILITY OF THE LAWS OF NATURE. 11 Creation; yet the conclusion would not be just or logical, that no such thing is possible. But with such a multiplicity of instances to the contrary as are already on record, it is no better than a shameless assertion, in direct opposition to the evidence of men's senses and experience. Nay, more ; the argument is atheistical. For, either GOD made and ordained these Laws of Nature ; and may, consequently, at His plea- sure, unmake or suspend them : or else, these laws are self-framed, and Nature is independent of the GOD of Nature ; which is saying, in other words, that the material Universe is not governed by any Supreme Intelligence. " This latter opinion appears, indeed, to be the tenet of all who resort to arguments of this kind, in opposition to the credibility of Miracles. Thus it is said, [by Hume,] that every effect must have a cause ; and that, therefore, a Miracle must have a cause in Nature ; otherwise, it cannot be effected. But, is not the Will of GOD, without any other agency, or pre- disposing cause, sufficient for the purpose? When GOD created the "World out of nothing, what pre- existing cause was there, except His own omnipotent Will to produce the effect? Why then is not the same Will sufficient to work Miracles ? " < But,' says another Sophist, [Spinoza,] < GOD is the Author of the Laws of Nature ; so that whatever opposes those Laws, is necessarily repugnant to the Divine nature : if, therefore, we believe that GOD may act in a manner contrary to those laws, we, in effect, believe that He may do what is contrary to His own nature ; which is absurd and impossible.' "The reasoning turns upon the supposition that GOD is actuated by an absolute necessity of His Nature, e2 Hi MIRACLES NOT INCONCEIVABLE. [PROF. and not by his Will : or, rather, that He hath neither Will, nor Intellect. Otherwise, it were easy to per- ceive, that in suspending the operation of His own Laws, GOD cannot be charged with doing anything contradictory to His own nature ; since He may justly be supposed to have as good reasons for departing from those Laws, as for framing them : and as we know not why He framed them in such a manner, and no other- wise ; so He may have the best and wisest reasons for the suspension of them, which it is not for us to call in question. To speak of the Supreme Being as actuated by a kind of physical necessity, and not by His Will, is to confound the GOD of Nature with Nature itself; which is the very essence of Atheism, and never can be reconciled with any just notions of the Deity, as a Being of intellectual and moral perfections 2 ." It is ly no means inconceivable, therefore, that the great Cause of Creation, and first Author of Law should interfere at any given time in the established Order of Nature. Moreover, it is irrational, on suffi- cient testimony, to disbelieve that He has sometimes so interposed. To deny that this is conceivable, is to make GOD inferior to His own decree ; to pronounce it incredible that the Lawgiver should be superior to His own Laws. " The universal subordination of causation," (p. 134,) we as freely admit as the Pro- fessor himself: but then we contend that everything else must be subordinate to the First great Cause of all. "Worse than unphilosophical is it to argue as the Pro- fessor presumes to do, concerning the MOST HIGH; but unphilosophical in the strictest sense it is. For it is to reason about Him, (the finite concerning the z Van Mildert's Historical View of the Rise and Progress of Infidelity, &c. Serm. xxi., (ed. 1806,) vol. ii. pp. 313-17. POWELL.] CONCEIT OF INTELLECTUAL PROGRESS. liii Infinite !) as if we understood Him ; we, who can barely decipher a little part of His works ! A few more remarks on this subject will be found in my viith Sermon. We are anxious to know if the whole of the case is really before us. A few more extracts from Professor Powell's Essay seem necessary to do full justice to his view of the matter : " All moral evidence must essen- tially have respect to the parties to be convinced. ' Signs 7 might be adapted peculiarly to the state of moral or intellectual progress of one age, or one class of persons, and not be suited to that of others. . . . And it is to the entire difference in the ideas, prepossessions, modes, and grounds of belief in those times, that we may trace the reason why Miracles, which would be incredible now, were not so in the age, and under the circumstances, in which they are stated to have oc- curred." (p. 117.) ..." An evidential appeal which in a long past age was convincing, as made to the state of knowledge in that age*, might have not only no effect, but even an injurious tendency, if urged in the pre- sent, and referring to what is at variance with existing scientific conceptions ; just as the arguments of the present age would have been unintelligible to a former." "In a period of advanced physical knowledge, the reference to what was believed in past times, if at variance with principles now acknowledged, could af- ford little ground of appeal : in fact, would damage the argument rather than assist it." (p. 126.) " It becomes imperatively necessary, that such views should be suggested as may be really suitable to " Columbus' prediction of the eclipse to the native islanders, was as true an argument to them as if the event had really been supernatural." p. 115. liv CERTAIN OF OUR LORD*S MIRACLES [PROF. better informed minds, and may meet the increasing demands of an age 'pretending at least to greater en- lightenment." (p. 126.) There is nothing in the additional suggestions thus thrown out which in reality affects the question at issue. Certain antecedent considerations were before insisted on, which (it was said) " must be paramount to all attestation." (p. 107.) These have been dis- posed of. The writer now tells us that he does not question " the honesty or veracity of the testimony, or the reality of the impressions on the minds of the witnesses." (p. 106.) It remains to inquire therefore to what natural causes, events which were once thought miraculous, may reasonably be referred ; since the so- called Miracles of the imperfectly- informed age of our LORD and His Apostles will not endure the scrutiny of the present age of scientific enlightenment. But this, unless it be a proposal to open the whole question afresh, to examine the Miracles themselves, to consider them one by one, to inquire into their exact nature, and to investigate their attendant cir- cumstances, is unmeaning. For we cannot, as reason- able men, dismiss a vast body of august events, differ- ing so considerably one from another, with a vague inuendo that there was probably " some kind of mis- take or deception somewhere, though we do not know where :" (p. 106 :) a hint that natural events may have been regarded as supernatural by an unscientific age, (which I believe was Schleiermacher's view :) and so forth. The two miraculous Draughts of fishes, the Stater found in the fish's mouth, the stilling of the Storm, might perhaps, by a little rhetorical sophis- try, in unscrupulous hands, be so disposed of. But the Creative Power displayed on the two occasions of POWELL.] CANNOT BE EXPLAINED AWAY. Iv a miraculous feeding of thousands, the giving of sight to a man born blind, the calling of Lazarus out of the grave where he had been for four days buried ; these are transactions which resist every attempt of the enemy to explain away, as unscientific miscon- ceptions. They may be powerless to produce con- viction in some now, as they were powerless to pro- duce conviction in some then : but they cannot be set aside by an insinuation. There could not have been any mistake when the Five Thousand were fed with five loaves, and twelve baskets full were gathered up ; or when the Four Thousand were fed with seven loaves, and fragments enough to fill seven baskets remained over b . There was no room for deception in the case of the man born blind ; for that case imme- diately underwent a judicial scrutiny . Lazarus bound hand and foot with grave-clothes required that the bystanders should " loose him and let him go d :" but from that moment, neither supposed scientific neces- sity, nor antecedent considerations, nor the ordinary course of Nature, nor any other creature, will avail to bind him any more ! This may suffice on the subject of Professor Powell's Essay. On the great question itself, I have said something in my Seventh Sermon, to which the reader is requested to refer. The performance now under consideration abounds in incorrect statements, while it revives not a few exploded objections ; but I have considered the only points in it which are material. Thus the author assumes " that, unlike the essential Doctrines of Christianity, ' the same yesterday, to- b St. Mark viii. 19, 20. c St. John ix. d St. John xi. 44. Ivi MIRACLES IRRESPECTIVE OF INTELLECTUAL [PROF. day, and for ever,' these external accessories, [Miracles, for example,] constitute a subject which of necessity is perpetually taking somewhat at least of a new form, with the successive phases of opinion and knowledge." (p. 94.) But, (waiving for the moment the impos- sibility of severing the Doctrines of the Gospel from the miraculous evidence that our LORD was a Teacher sent from Heaven e , it requires no ability to perceive that although " opinion" should alter daily, and " knowledge" increase ever so much, yet, events pro- fessing to be miraculous, being plain matters of fact, are to-day exactly what and where they were many centuries ago. Physical Science may pretend (with Paulus) to explain them on natural principles, truly ; and while she does so, the ^orid is sure to give her a patient, even an indulgent hearing. But then she must let it be known what she proposes to explain, and how she proposes to explain it. She must be so indulgent also, as to listen while we, in turn, shew her on what grounds we find it impossible to accept her Theory. " The inevitable progress of research," (says this author,) " must, within a longer or shorter period, unravel all that seems most marvellous ; and what is at present least understood will become as familiarly known to the Science of the future, as those points which a few centuries ago, were involved in equal obscurity, but are now thoroughly understood." (p. 109.) Such a vaticination as regards Miracles, is, to say the least, premature ; and until it can ap- peal to incipient accomplishment, it must be regarded e Consider St. John iii. 2, (referring to ii. 23 and iv. 45.) So ix. 16: x. 21 and 38: xiv. 10, 11. Also xv. 24; and consider St. Luke vii. 16: also 21, 22: St. Matth. xii. 22, 23: St. John vii. 31 : xii. 1719. POWELL.] PROGRESS ; YET PATIENT OF INQUIRY. Ivll as nugatory also. I am not aware, 'that as yet one single Miracle has' been struck off the list ; yet Mira- cles have now been before the world a long time, and they have not wanted enemies either. To begin Divinity with a discussion of the " Evi- dences," we do indeed hold to be a beginning at the wrong end. At the same time, all of Professor Powell's opening remarks, in which he insinuates that the Church would bar, or would stifle discussion concern- ing the evidences of Eeligion, are obviously untrue. No scrutiny of Christian Miracles, however rigid, is stopped by the admonition that such narratives " ought to be held sacred, and exempt from the unhallowed criticism of human Keason." (p. 110.) We do not, by any means, " treat all objections as profane, and discard exceptions unanswered as shocking and im- moral." (p. 100.) Neither does the Church think herself "omniscient and infallible;" (p, 96;) though she holds Omniscience to be an attribute of GOD ; and Infallibility, of the Bible. But she deprecates in the strongest manner vague insinuations and unsupported doubts of the reality of her LORD'S Miracles, sown broad-cast over the land; and she is at a loss to understand how the " difficulties" of any, can be in this manner "removed;" (p. 96;) except by a pro- cess analogous to that which would cure a malady by taking away the life of the patient. "We are not in fact at all disposed to admit that "Miracles, which in the estimation of a former age were among the chief supports of Christianity, are at present among the main difficulties, and hindrances to its acceptance," (p, 140,) although Professor Powell and Dr. Temple say so. This Essay in fact is full of incorrect, or objection- INCORRECT STATEMENTS. [PROF. able statements. Thus Professor Powell asserts that since " evidential arguments are avowedly addressed to the intellect, it is especially preposterous to shift the ground, and charge the rejection of them on moral motives." (p. 100.) And yet it is worthy of notice that our LORD Himself assures us that the reception of Truth depends on our moral, rather than on our intellectual condition. "How can ye believe," (He said to the Jews,) "which receive honour one of another, and seek not the honour that cometh from GOD only f ?" This writer reasons also with singular laxity and inaccuracy. After quoting the dictum that " on a certain amount of testimony we might believe any statement, however improbable," (pp. 140-1,) he scorn- fully adds ; " So that if a number of respectable wit- nesses were to concur in asseverating that on a certain occasion they had seen two and two make five, we should be bound to believe them !" (p. 141.) Does he fail to perceive, (1) that mathematical truths do not come within the province of probable reasoning, and (2) are not dependent on testimony ? . . . . Again, " The case of the antecedent argument of Miracles f St. John v. 44. Comp. vii. 17: viii. 12. St. Matth. y. 8. Ps. xix. 8 : cxix. 100. Also, Ecclus. i. 26 : xxi. 11." There is," (says an excellent living writer,) " scarcely any doctrine or precept of our SAVIOUR more distinctly and strongly stated, than that the capacity for judging of, and for believing the Truths of Christianity, depends upon Moral Goodness, and the practice of Virtue." Let us hear our own Hooker on this subject : " We find by experience that although Faith be an intellectual habit of the mind, and have her seat in the understanding, yet an evil moral disposition obsti- nately wedded to the love of darkness dampeth the very light of heavenly illumination, and permitteth not the Mind to see what doth shine before it." Eccl. Pol., B. v. c. Ixiii. 2. POWELL.] INACCURATE REASONING. llX is very clear, however little some are inclined to per- ceive it. In Nature and from Nature, by Science and by Eeason, we neither have nor can possibly have any evidence of a Deity working ~by Miracles ; for that, we must go out of Nature, and beyond Science." (pp. 141-2.) Very true. We must go to Scripture. We must have recourse to testimony. This is precisely what we are maintaining But, " Testimony, after all, is but a second-hand assurance; it is but a blind guide ; testimony can avail nothing against Eeason." (p. 141.) True. But this, if it is intended as an argument against the reasonableness of admit- ting the truth of Miracles, is a mere petitio principii. .... Again. "It is not the mere fact but the cause or explanation of it, which is the point at issue." (p. 141.) Admitting then, as the learned author here does, that when CHRIST said " Lazarus, come forth," " he that was dead," (though he had been buried four days,) " came forth, bound hand and foot with grave- clothes^" admitting these "facts," I say, what other " cause," or " explanation" does the reverend gentleman propose to assign but the supernatural power of the Divine Speaker ? Far graver exception, however, must be taken against certain parts of Professor Powell's labours, which betray an animus fatally indicative of the ten- dency of such Essays and Keviews as these. Wit- ness his assertion that "it is now acknowledged that ' Creation ' is only another name for our ignorance of the mode of production;" (p. 139;) and that a re- cent work on the Origin of Species " substantiates on undeniable grounds the very principle so long de- 9 St. John xi. 44. Ix REJECTION OF THE IDEA OF CREATION. [PROF. nounced by the first naturalists, the origination of new Species ~by natural causes ;" (p. 139 ;) and that the said work "must soon bring about an entire revo- lution of opinion in favour of the grand principle of the self-evolving poivers of Nature" (p. 139.) One object of the present Essay is to insist that since Miracles belong to the world of matter, " we must recognize the due claims of Science to decide " upon them. We are reminded that "beyond the do- main of physical causation and the possible conceptions of intellect or knowledge, there lies open the boundless region of spiritual things, which is the sole dominion of Faith :" (p. 127 :) and that " Advancing knowledge, while it asserts the dominion of Science in physical things, confirms that of Faith in spiritual." (p. 127.) It is proposed that " we thus neither impugn the gene- ralizations of Philosophy, nor allow them to invade the dominion of Faith ; and admit that what is not a subject for a problem, may hold its place in a Creed." (p. 127.) But the fatal consequences of this plausible fallacy become apparent the instant we turn the leaf, and read that " the more knowledge advances, the more it has been, and will be acknowledged, that Chris- tianity, as a real religion, must be viewed apart from connexion with physical things." (p. 128.) That " the first dissociation of the spiritual from the physical was rendered necessary by the palpable contradictions disclosed by astronomical discovery with the letter of Scripture. Another still wider and more material step has been effected by the discoveries of Geology. More recently, the antiquity of the Human Eace, and the development of Species, and the rejection of the idea of ' Creation 7 (!) have caused new advances in the POWELL.] FAITH AND SCIENCE. Ixi same direction." (p. 129.) .... From this it is evident, not only that the object of Science in thus taking the Miracles of Scripture into her own keeping, is (like an unnatural step-dame) to slay them ; but that down- right Atheism is to be the attitude in which men are expected to survey that "boundless region of spi- ritual things" which is yet proclaimed to be "the sole dominion of Faith !" Faith, on the other hand, does not object to the constant visits of Science to any part of her treasure. She does but insist that all discussion shall be con- ducted according to the rules of right Reason. Yague insinuations about "a progressing Age," (p. 131,) "new modes of speculation," (p. 130,) "the advance of Opinion," (p. 131,) and so forth, are as little to the purpose, apart from specific objections, as sneers at "the one-sided dogmas of an obsolete school, coupled with awful denunciations of heterodoxy on all who refuse to listen to them," (p. 131,) are unsuited to the gravity of the occasion. Faith insists moreover that a divorce between the miraculous parts of Scrip- ture, and the context wherein they stand, is simply impossible. The unbeliever who boldly says, " I dis- believe the Bible," however much we may deplore his blindness and pity his misery, is yet intelligible in his unbelief. But the man who proposes to believe the narrative of the Exode of Israel from Egypt, (for instance,) apart from the supernatural character of the events which are related to have attended it; who believes the history of the Gospels, (holding the Evan- gelists to have been veracious writers,) yet rejects the Divine nature of the Miracles which the Gospels re- late ; and proposes, after eliminating from the historical narrative everything which claims to be miraculous, Ixii OFFENSIVE CLAIM OF INTELLECTUAL SUPERIORITY. [PROF. to make what remains of that historical narrative, the strength and stay of his soul in life and in death : that man we boldly affirm to be one who cannot have studied the Bible with that ordinary attention which would entitle him to dogmatize concerning its con- tents : or else, whose logical faculty must be so hope- lessly defective that discussions of this class are evi- dently not his proper province. Finally, we are presented in this Essay with the same offensive assumption of intellectual superiority on the part of the writer, which disfigures the entire volume. " It becomes imperatively necessary that views should be suggested really suitable to better informed minds" (p. 126.) " Points which may be seen to in- volve the greatest difficulty to more profound inquirer s, are often such as do not occasion the least perplexity to ordinary minds, but are allowed to pass without hesitation." (p. 125.) (And this, from one of those " profound inquirers," one of " those who have re- flected most deeply," (p. 126,) who yet cannot get beyond a resuscitation of Hume and Spinoza's ex- ploded objections to the truth of Miracles !) Butler's unanswerable arguments, (for the allusion is evidently to him,) are spoken of as "a few trite and common- place generalities as to the moral government of the World and the belief in the Divine Omnipotence ; or as to the validity of human testimony ; or the limits of human experience." (p. 133.) And yet the author is for ever informing us that his hostility to Miracles " is essentially built upon those grander conceptions of the order of Nature, those comprehensive primary ele- ments of all physical knowledge, those ultimate ideas of universal causation, which can only be familiar to those thoroughly versed in cosmical philosophy in its POWELL.] BELIEF IN SCRIPTURE NOT AN ASSUMPTION. Ixiil widest sense." (p. 133.) "All highly cultivated minds, and duly advanced intellects" are supposed to find their exponent in Professor Baden Powell. All other thinkers have " minds of a less comprehensive capa- city," " accustomed to reason on more contracted views." (p. 133. See also p. 131, top.) Is this the modesty of real Science? the language of a true Philosopher and Divine ? Finally, after all that has gone before we are not much astonished, but we are considerably shocked, to read as follows : " The Divine Omnipotence is entirely an inference from the language of the Bible, adopted on the assumption of a belief in Eevelation. That 'with GOD nothing is impossible' is the very declaration of Scripture ; yet on this, the whole belief in Miracles is built h ." Now, it happens that 'the whole belief in Miracles ' is built on nothing of the kind : but the point is immaterial. By no means im- material, however, is the intimation that the Divine attribute of Omnipotence is a mere inference from the language of Eevelation, the very belief in which is also a mere " assumption." If belief in Holy Scripture is to be treated as an assumption, without at all com- plaining of the unreasonableness of one who so speaks, we yet desire that he would say it very plainly; and let us know at least with whom we have to do, and what we are expected to prove. We do not com- plain, if any one calls upon us to shew that a belief in the Bible cannot be called an assumption; but it makes us very sad: and when the challenge comes from a Minister of the Church, we are unable to for- bear the remark that there is something altogether h P. 113. The italics are in the original. Ixiv MR. WILSON'S ESSAY. [MR. immoral * in the entire proceeding. On the other hand, to find ourselves involved in an argument on questions of Divinity with one who believes nothing, is in a man- ner absurd ; and provokes a feeling of resentment as well as of pity. . . . "What need to add that life is not long enough for such processes of proof? "He that cometh unto GOD must believe that He is /" "We can- not be for ever laying the foundation. The building must begin, at last, to grow. And when it has grown up, and is compact as well as beautiful, it cannot be necessary to pull it all down again once or twice in every century in order to ascertain whether the strong foundations be still there ! IV. The next performance is mainly directed against faith in the Church, as a society of Divine origin. " The Rev. HENRY BEJSTOW WILSON, B.D., Yicar of Great Staughton, Hunts," claims that a National Church shall be regarded as a purely secular Insti- tution, the spontaneous development of the State. " If all priests and ministers of religion could at one moment be swept from the face of the Earth, they would soon be reproduced 15 ." The Church is con- cerned with Ethics, not with Divinity. It should therefore be " free from dogmatic tests, and similar intellectual bondage:" (p. 168 :) hampered by no traditional Doctrines ; pledged to no Creeds : but, on the contrary, should be subject to periodical doctrinal 1 See the Quarterly Review, (on Prof. Baden Powell's "Order .of Nature,") f o r Oct. 1859, (No. 212,) pp. 420-3. k p. 169. " Priests have neither been, as some would represent, a set of deliberate conspirators against the free thoughts of mankind ; nor, on the other hand," &c. Ibid. How partial becomes the judg- ment, when we have to discuss the merits of our own order ! WILSON.] NEGATIVE THEOLOGY. IxV re-adjustments. " Doctrinal limitations " (i.e. the Creeds) " are not essential to " the Church. " Upon larger knowledge of Christian history, upon a more thorough acquaintance with the mental constitution of man, upon an understanding of the obstacles they present to a true Catholicity (!), they may be cast off." (p. 167.) "In order to the possibility of recruiting any national Ministry from the whole of the nation, .... no needless intellectual or speculative obstacles should be interposed." (p. 196. So at p. 198.) To all this, the answer is very obvious. Viewed as an historical fact, the Church is not of human origin. The Church is a Divine Institution. That a Priest of the Church, charged with a cure of souls, should de- sire her annihilation, the reversal of the facts of her past History, her reconstruction on an unheard-of basis, without even Creeds as terms of communion with her, and so forth; all this may suggest some very painful doubts as to the objector's honesty in con- tinuing to employ the formularies of that Church, and in professing to teach her doctrines; but it can hardly be supposed to have any effect whatever on the question at issue. Foreseeing this, Mr. "Wilson begins by asserting, (for to insinuate is not for so advanced a disciple of "the negative Theology,") (p. 151,) " the fact of a very wide-spread alienation, both of educated and uneducated persons, from the Christianity which is ordinarily presented in our Churches and Chapels." (p. 150.) "A self-satisfied Sacerdotalism, confident in a supernaturally transmitted illumination," may amuse itself in trying to " keep peace within the walls of emptied Churches :" (p. 150 :) but the day for " traditional Christianity" (p. 149.) has gone by. f INCREASED GEOGRAPHICAL KNOWLEDGE [MR. "We may no longer ignore " a great extent of dissatis- faction on the part of the Clergy at some portion, at least, of formularies of the Church of England," especially at the use of "one unhappy creed." (p. 150.) There has been " a spontaneous recoil" from some of the old doctrines : a distrust of the old arguments : and a misgiving concerning Scripture itself. " In the presence of difficulties of this kind, ... it is vain to seek to check open discussion." (p. 151.) "Why then does not this man proceed openly to discuss? is the obvious rejoinder. Instead of vaguely hinting that either the Eeason or the Moral sense is shocked by what people hear " in our Churches and Chapels," why has not this writer, first, the honesty to withdraw from the Ministry of the Church of Eng- land ; and next, the courage to indicate the particular doctrines which offend ? To say that " the ordinances of public worship and religious instruction provided for the people of England" are not "really adapted to the wants of their nature as it is," (p. 150,) is a very vague and unworthy style of urging an objection. "Why does not the reverend writer explain wherein the Doctrine and Discipline of the English Church are not really adapted to the actual wants of Man's nature ? Let every unbeliever however be allowed to state his difficulties in his own way. Mr. Wilson's diffi- culties certainly take a very peculiar shape. The increased Geographical knowledge of the present gene- ration has evidently disturbed his faith. " In our own boyhood, the World as known to the ancients was nearly all which was known to ourselves (!). We have recently become acquainted, intimate, with the teeming regions of the far East, and with empires, WILSON.] SUPPOSED FATAL TO REVELATION. pagan or even atheistic, of which the origin runs far back beyond the historic records of Judaea or of the West, and which were more populous than all Christen- dom now is, for many ages before the Christian era." (p. 152.) Such a statement is soon made; but it ought to have been substantiated. I take the liberty of doubting its accuracy. But granting even that the heathen world " for many ages before the Christian era" was more popu- lous than all Christendom now is : what then ? This fact " suggests questions to those who on Sundays hear the reading and exposition of the Scriptures as they were expounded to our forefathers, and on Mon- day peruse the news of a World of which our fore- fathers little dreamed." (pp. 152-3.) And pray, (we calmly inquire,) Why are the Scriptures to be read or expounded after a novel fashion, even though our geographical knowledge has made a considerable ad- vance? To this, we are favoured with no answer. The " questions" suggested are, we presume, the same which are contained in the following sentence. " In what relation does the Gospel stand to these millions" 1 ? Is there any trace on the face of its records that it even contemplated their existence n ? We are told, that to know and believe in JESUS CHRIST is in some sense necessary to Salvation. It has not been given to these. Are they, will they be, hereafter, the worse off for their ignorance?" (p. 153.) . . . "As to the necessity of faith in a SAVIOUR to these peoples m Ans. Clearly in the relation of a blessing which has by all means to be communicated to them. n Ans. Certainly there is. Those which most obviously present themselves are such as the following : St.Matth. ix. 37, 38 : xxviii. 19, 20. St. Luke xxiv. 47. Acts ii. 38, 39, &c. f 2 Ixviii MR. WILSON'S DILEMMA. [MR. when they could never have had it, no one, upon reflection, can believe in any such thing. Doubtless they will be equitably dealt with." (p. 153.) These last seven words, (which scarcely seem of a piece with the rest of the sentence,) we confess have always seemed a sufficient answer to the badly- expressed speculative difficulty which immediately precedes; a difficulty, be it observed, which does not depend at all on the popular advancement of Geographical knowledge; for it was urged with the self-same force anciently, as now; and was met by Bp. Butler, almost in the self-same words , upwards of a hundred years ago. But Mr. "Wilson to our surprise and sorrow proceeds : " We cannot be con- tent to wrap this question up and leave it for a mys- tery, as to what shall become of those myriads upon myriads of non- Christian races. First, if our tradi- tions tell us, that they are involved in the curse and perdition of Adam, and may justly be punished here- after individually for his transgression, not having been extricated from it by saving faith, we are dis- posed to think that our traditions cannot herein fairly declare to us the words and inferences from Scripture ; but if on examination it should turn out that they have, we must say, that the authors of the Scriptural books have, in those matters, represented to us their own inadequate conceptions, and not the mind of the SPIRIT of GOD." (pp. 153-4.) I forbear to dwell upon the grievous spectacle with which we are thus presented. Here is a Clergyman of the Church of England deliberately proposing the following dilemma: Either the Prayer Book is in- correct in its most important doctrinal inferences from Analogy, P. n. c. vi. WILSON.] SPECULATIVE DIFFICULTIES. IxiX Holy Scripture; or else, the Authors of Holy Scrip- ture itself are incorrect in their statements. The morality of one who declares that he finds himself placed between the horns of this dilemma, and yet retains his office as a public teacher in the Church of England, it is painful to contemplate. But this is only ad hominem. The Eeverend writer's difficulty remains. And it seems sufficient to reply : It is not we who " wrap up the question," but GOD. As a mystery we find it ; and as a mystery, we not only " can," but must be content to " leave it." Further, it is not " our tradi- tions" but Holy Scripture itself which tells us that " by one man Sin entered into the World, and Death by Sin ; and so Death passed upon all men, for that all have sinned p :" that " in Adam all died q :" that " we were by nature the children of wrath, even as others':" and the like. Scripture, on the other hand, as unequivocally assures us that GOD is good, or rather that He is very Goodness. We are convinced, (in Mr. Wilson's words,) " that all shall be equitably dealt with according to their opportunities." (p. 154.) Moreover, he would be a rash Divine who should ven- ture to adopt the opinion so strenuously disclaimed by Bp. Butler, "that none can have the benefit of the general Eedemption, but such as have the advantage of being made acquainted with it in the present life s ." How, in the meantime, speculative difficulties con- cerning the hereafter of the unevangelized Heathen are affected by the fact that our population now "peruse the news of a World of which our forefathers little dreamed," (pp. 152-3,) it is hard to see. Equally p Kom. v. 12. q 1 Cor. xv. 22. r Eph. ii. 3. ' Analogy, P. u. c. v. note (d). 1XX DISCUSSION WITH SUCH A WRITER [MR. unable am I also to understand how the discovery that a larger number of persons are the subjects of this speculative difficulty than used once to be sup- posed, can constitute any reason why Scripture should not still be read and expounded on Sunday "as it used to be expounded to our forefathers." We have been so particular, because whenever any of these writers condescend to be argumentative, we are eager to bear them company. No wish at all have we, in the abstract, to stifle inquiry; no objec- tion whatever have we to the principle of free dis- cussion. And yet, as a clergyman, I cannot discuss such questions as these with a Minister of the Church of England, except under protest. I deny that these are in any sense open questions. To dispute concern- ing them, el p,rj Oea-iv diatyvXarTcov, one of the disputants must first, at least, resign his commission. It is simply dishonest in a man to hold a commission in the Church of England, under solemn vows, and yet to deny her doctrines. An Officer in the Army who should pursue a similar line of action, would be dismissed the Service, or worse. Under protest, then, we follow the Eev. H. B. Wilson, B.D. Next come three other specimens "of the modern questionings of traditional Christianity," "whereby observers are rendered dissatisfied with old modes of speaking:" (p. 156:) viz. (1) St. Paul "speaks of the Gospel ' which was preached to every nation (sic) under heaven/ when it has never yet been preached to the half 1 ." (2) "Then, again, it has often been appealed to as an evidence of the supernatural origin of Christianity, and as an instance of supernatural assistance vouchsafed to it in the first centuries, that * Col. i. 23. p. 155. WILSON.] CAN BE CONDUCTED ONLY UNDER PROTEST. it so soon overspread the world :" (p. 155 :) whereas " it requires no learning to be aware that neither then nor subsequently have the Christians amounted to a fourth part of the people of the Earth." (Ibid.) (3) So again, " it has been customary to argue that, a priori, a supernatural Eevelation was to be expected at the time when JESUS CHRIST was manifested upon the Earth, by reason of the exhaustion of all natural or unassisted human efforts for the amelioration of mankind;" (pp. 155-6;) whereas " our recently en- larged Ethnographical information shews such an argument to be altogether inapplicable to the case." " It would be more like the realities of things, as we can now behold them, to say that the Christian Eeve- lation was given to the Western World, because it de- served it better and was more prepared for it than the East." (p. 156.) The remedy for the first of these difficulties (says Mr. Wilson,) is, " candidly to acknow- ledge that the words of the New Testament which speak of the preaching of the Gospel to the whole world, were limited to the understanding of the times when they were spoken." The suggestions of our own moral instincts are rather to be followed, " than the express declarations of Scripture writers, who had no such knowledge as is given to ourselves of the am- plitude of the World." (p. 157.) For my own part, I see not how Mr. Wilson's pro- posed remedy meets the case ; unless he means to say that in the time of St. Paul the Gospel had been literally preached to the whole World as far as the World was then known. If not, it is clear that re- course must be had to some other expedient. Instead then of the " candid acknowledgment" required of us by the learned writer, may we be allowed to suggest to him the more prosaic expedient (1st) of making Ixxii EXAMINATION OF PARTS [MR. sure that he quotes Scripture accurately ; and (2nd) that he understands it ? ... It happens that St. Paul does not use the words " every nation under heaven" as Mr. "Wilson inadvertently supposes. The Apostle's phrase, Trdo-y rrj KricreL, in Colossians i. 23, (as in St. Mark xvi. 15), means < to the whole Creation,' or ' every creature;' (the article is doubtful;) in other words, he announces the universality of the Gospel, as contrasted with the Law ; and he explains that it had been preached to the Heathen as well as to the Jews. Our increased knowledge therefore has no- thing whatever to do with the question ; and the sup- posed difficulty disappears. The two which remain, being (according to the same writer,) merely incorrect inferences of Biblical critics, need not, it is presumed, be regarded as insurmountable either. Following Mr. "Wilson through his successive va- garies of religious (?) thought, we come upon a suc- cession of strange statements ; the object of which seems to be to cast a slur on Doctrine generally, The doctrine of Justification by faith " is not met with .*. . . in the Apostolic writings, except those of St. Paul." (p. 160.) [A minute exception truly !]. " Then, on the other hand, it is maintained by a large body of Theologians, as by the learned Jesuit Petavius and many others, that the doctrine afterwards developed into the Mcene and Athanasian, is not to be found explicitly in the earliest fathers, nor even in Scripture, although provable by it." (p. 160.) [Would it not have been fair, however, to state what appears to have been the design of Petavius therein 11 ? and should it not have been added that our own Bishop Bull in his im- mortal " Defensio Fidei Mcsense" established the very reverse " out of the writings of the Catholic Doctors u See Nelson's Life of Bp. Bull, p. 245. WILSON.] OF MR. WILSON^S ESSAY. Ixxiii who flourished within the first three centuries of the Christian Church x ?"] " The nearer we come to the original sources of the History, the less definite do we find the statements of Doctrines, and even of the facts from which the Doctrines were afterwards inferred." (p. 160.) " In the patristic writings, theoretics as- sume continually an increasingly disproportionate value. Even within the compass of our New Testament, there is to be found already a wonderful contrast between the words of our LORD and such a discourse as the Epistle to the Hebrews." (pp. 160-1.) [What a curi- ous discovery, by the way, that an argumentative Epistle should differ in style from an historical Gos- pel !] "Our LORD'S Discourses," (continues this writer,) "have almost all of them a direct Moral bearing." (p. 161.) [The case of St. John's Gospel immediately recurs to our memory. And it seems to have occurred to Mr. Wilson's also. He says : ] " This character of His words is certainly more ob- vious in the first three Gospels than in the fourth ; and the remarkable unison of those Gospels, when they recite the LORD'S words, notwithstanding their discrepancies in some matters of fact, compels us to think, that they embody more exact traditions of what He actually said than the fourth does" (p. 161.) [In other words, the authenticity of St. John's Gospel 7 is * See Kelson's Life ofJBp. Bull, p. 242. y " The horizon which his view embraced was much narrower than St. Paul's," who had enlarged his mind by foreign travel, (p. 168.) In a note, we are informed that " at any rate his Gospel cannot, by external evidence, be attached to the person (!) of St. John as its author." "Many persons," (it is added,) " shrink from a ~bona,fide examination of the * Gospel question,' because they imagine, that unless the four Gospels are received as ... entirely the composition of the persons whose names they bear, and without any admixture Ixxiv MR. WILSON'S VIEW OF [MR. to be suspected rather than the worthlessness of the speculations of the Yicar of Great Staughton !] The object of three pages which follow (pp. 162-5.) seems to be to shew that in the Apostolic Age, Im- morality of life was more severely dealt with, even than erroneousness of Doctrine. Except because the writer is eager to depreciate the value of orthodoxy of belief, and to cast a slur on doctrinal standards generally, it is hard to see why he should write thus. Let him be reminded however that our SAVIOUR makes Faith itself a moral, not an intellectual habit 2 ; and, (if it be not an uncivil remark,) what but an immoral spectacle does a Clergyman present who openly inculcates distrust of these very Doctrines which he has in the most solemn manner pledged himself to uphold and maintain ? And thus we come back to the theme originally proposed. "A national Church," we are informed, "need not, historically speaking, be Christian (!) ; nor, if it be Christian, need it be tied down to par- ticular forms which have been prevalent at certain times in Christendom (!). That which is essential to a National Church is, that it should undertake to as- sist the spiritual progress of the nation and of the individuals of which it is composed, in their several states and stages. Not even a Christian Church of legendary matter or embellishment in their narratives, the only alternative is to suppose a fraudulent design in those who did com- pose them." (p. 161.) .... May one who has not shrunk from * the Gospel question' be permitted to regret that the Reverend writer has not specified the charges which he thus vaguely brings against the Gospels? What, pray, is the legendary matter; and which are the embellishments ? In the same page we read of " the first, or genuine, epistle of St. Peter." Is not his second epistle genuine, then ? z See above, p. Iviii. WILSON.] A NATIONAL CHURCH. IxXV should expect all those who are brought under its influence to be, as a matter of fact, of one and the same standard; but should endeavour to raise each according to his capacities, and should give no occasion for a reaction against itself, nor provoke the indi- vidualist element into separation." (p. 173.) Of what sort the Ministers of such a " chartered libertine" are to prove, may be anticipated. " Thought and speech, which are free among all other classes," must be free also " among those who hold the office of leaders and teachers of 'the rest in the highest things." The Ministers of the Church ought not "to be bound to cover up, but to open; and having, it is presumed, possession of the key of knowledge, ought not to stand at the door with it, permitting no one to enter unless by force. A National Church may also find itself in this position, which, perhaps, is our own." (p. 174.) "What a charming picture of the duties and the method of that class to which the Yicar of Great Staughton himself belongs ! . . . The writer proceeds to set an example of that freedom of inquiry which he vindi- cates as the privilege of his Order ; and without which he is apprehensive of being left isolated between " the fanatical religionist," (p. 174,) (i. e. the man who be- lieves the truths he teaches,) and " the negative theo- logian," (i.e. those who, " impatient of old fetters, follow free thought heedlessly wherever it may lead them." (Ibid.) " The freedom of opinion a ," (he says,) a " Pleas for ' liberty of conscience' and ' freedom of opinion,' " (as an excellent writer has recently pointed out,) " can have neither place nor pretext, while there is liberty, for all who choose, to decline joining the Church of England ; and freedom, for all who choose, to leave her" Rev. C. Forster's ' Spinoza Redivivus/ (1861,) p. 6. [MR. " which belongs to the English citizen should be con- ceded to the English Churchman; and the freedom which is already practically enjoyed by the members of the congregation, cannot without injustice be denied to its ministers." (p. 180.) Let us see how the Ke- verend Gentleman exercises the license which he claims : The phrase " Word of GOD," (he says,) is unau- thorized and begs the question. The epithet " Canon- ical" " may mean either books ruled and determined by the Church, or regulation books ; and the employ- ment of it in the Article hesitates between these two significations." (p. 175.) The declaration of the sixth Article simply implies " the Word of GOD is contained in Scripture ; whence it does not follow that it is co- extensive with it." (p. 176.) " Under the terms of the Sixth Article one may accept literally, or allegorically, or as parable, or poetry, or legend, the story of a serpent-tempter, of an ass speaking with man's voice, of an arresting the earth's motion, of a reversal of its motion b , of waters standing in a solid heap, of witches, and a variety of apparitions. So under the terms of the Sixth Article, every one is free in judgment as to the primeval institution of the Sabbath, the univer- sality of the Deluge, the confusion of tongues, the corporeal taking up of Elijah into Heaven, the nature of Angels, the reality of demoniacal possession, the personality of Satan, and the miraculous particulars of many events." (p. 177.) " Good men," we are as- sured; (the Inspired Writers being the good men b In what part of the Bible, (one begs respectfully to inquire,) is one called upon to " accept the story of an arresting of the Earth's motion, or of a reversal of its motion ?" . . . Would it not be as well to be truthful in one's references to the Bible ? WILSON.] OPINIONS EXAMINED. intended ;) " may err in facts, be weak in memory, mingle imaginations with memory, be feeble in in- ferences, confound illustration with argument, be vary- ing in judgment and opinion." (p. 179.) [A " free handling" this, of the work of the HOLY GHOST, truly ! .... It would, I suppose, be deemed very unreason- able to wish that a catalogue of facts misstated, of slips of memory, of imaginary details, of feeble in- ferences, of instances of logical confusion, and so forth, had been subjoined by the Keverend writer. I will only observe concerning his method that such " frank criticism of Scripture" (p. 174.) as this, is dogmatism of the most disreputable kind : insinuating what it does not state ; assuming what it ought to prove ; asserting in the general what it may be defied to substantiate in particular.] It follows, " But the spirit of absolute Truth cannot err or contradict Him- self ; if He speak immediately, even in small things, accessories, or accidents." (p. 179.) To this we en- tirely agree. "Where then are the " errors ?" and where the " contradictions ?" We cannot " suppose Him to suggest contradictory accounts :" [not contradictory, of course ; because con- tradictories cannot both be true :] "or accounts only to be reconciled in the way of hypothesis and conjec- ture." (/&&) Why not ? "To suppose a supernatural influence to cause the record of that which can only issue in a puzzle, is to lower indefinitely our conception of the Divine deal- ings in respect of a special Eevelation." (Ibid.) Why more of a lowering puzzle in GOD'S Word than in GOD'S Works d ? Mr. Wilson proceeds: "It may be attributed to e See below, p. 68. d See Butler's Analogy, P. u. c. iii. MR. WILSON ON PRIVATE OPINION, [MR. the defect of our understandings, that we should be unable altogether to reconcile the aspects of the SAVIOUR as presented to us in the first three Gospels, and in the writings of St. Paul and St. John. At any rate, there were current in the primitive Church very dis- tinct Christologies." (Ibid.) Queer language this for a plain man ! /, for my own part, have never yet discovered the difficulty which is here hinted at ; but which has been prudently left unexplained. It follows: "But neither to any defect in our capacities, nor to any reasonable presumption of a hidden wise design, nor to any partial spiritual en- dowments in the narrators, can we attribute the dif- ficulty, if not impossibility, of reconciling the gene- alogies of St. Matthew and St. Luke; or the chro- nology of the Holy "Week ; or the accounts of the Eesurrection : nor to any mystery in the subject- matter can be referred the uncertainty in which the New Testament writings leave us, as to the descent of JESUS CHRIST according to the flesh, whether by His mother He were of the tribe of Judah or of the tribe of Levi." (pp. 179-180.) I, for my part, can declare that I have found the reconcilement in the three subjects first alluded to, as complete as could be either expected or desired. The last part of the sentence discovers nothing so much as the writer's ignorance of the subject on which he presumes to dogmatize. Presently, we read, " It may be worth while to consider how far a liberty of opinion is conceded by our existing Laws, Civil and Ecclesiastical." (p. 180.) "As far as opinion privately entertained is concerned, the liberty of the English Clergyman appears already to be complete. For no Ecclesiastical person can be WILSON.] AND ON SUBSCRIPTION TO THE ARTICLES. 1XX1X obliged to answer interrogations as to his opinions; nor be troubled for that which he has not actually expressed; nor be made responsible for inferences which other people may draw from his expressions." (Ibid.) Surely such language needs only to be cited to awaken indignation in every honest bosom ! "With most men educated, not in the schools of Jesuitism, but in the sound and honest moral train- ing of an English Education, the mere entering on the record such a plea as this, must destroy the whole case. If the position of the religious instructor is to be maintained only by his holding one thing as true, and teaching another thing as to be received, in the name of the GOD of Truth, either let all teaching cease, or let the fraudulent instructor abdicate wil- lingly his office, before the moral indignation of an as yet uncorrupted people thrust him ignominiously from his abused seat e !" The remarks just quoted serve to introduce a series of views on subscription to the Articles, which, if they were presented to me without any intimation of the quarter from which they proceed, I should not have hesitated to denounce as simply dishonest f . . . . e Quarterly Beview, Jan. 1861, p. 275. f Take a few as a specimen: "A great restraint is supposed to be imposed upon the Clergy by reason of their subscription to the Thirty-nine Articles. Yet it is more difficult than might be ex- pected, to define what is the extent of the legal obligation of those who sign them ; and in this case, the strictly legal obligation is the measure of the moral one. Subscription may be thought even to be inoperative upon the conscience by reason of its vagueness. For the act of subscription is enjoined, but its effect or meaning nowhere plainly laid down ; and it does not seem to amount to more than an acceptance of the Articles of the Church as the formal law to which the subscriber is in some sense subject. What that subjection amounts to, must be gathered elsewhere ; for it does not appear on 1XXX DISHONOURABLE EQUIVOCATION. [MR. The Statute 13 Eliz. c. 12, is next discussed with the same unhappy licentiousness ; and the declaration that "the meshes are too open for modern refinements." (p. 185.) . . . . I desire not to speak with undue seve- rity of a fellow- creature : but I protest that I cannot read the Eeview under consideration without a pro- found conviction that, (speaking for myself,) I have to do with one whom in the common concerns of life I would not trust. The aptitude here displayed g for playing tricks with plain language, is calculated to sap the foundations of human intercourse, and to de- stroy confidence. If plain words may mean anything, or may mean nothing, then, farewell to all good faith in the intercourse of daily life. If Articles "for the avoiding of Diversities of Opinions, and for the establishing of Consent touching true Beligion h ," such Articles especially as the Ilnd., " Of the WORD or SON of GOD, which was made very Man ;" and the Vth., " Of the HOLY GHOST," (which the Eev. Mr. Wilson calls " humanifying of the Divine Word," and "the Divine Personalities,") (p. 186,) may be signed by one who, even in signing, resolves to " pass ly the side of them ^ (p. 186, line 6,) then is it better at once to admit that no Logic can be supposed to be available with such a writer; that he places himself outside the reach of fair argumentation; and must not be astonished if he shall find himself regarded by his peers simply in the light of an untrustworthy and impracticable person. The last stage of all in this deplorable paper is an the face of the subscription itself." (p. 181. See down to page 185.) Can equivocation such as this be read without a sense of humiliation and shame, as well as of disgust and abhorrence ? g p. 180 to p. 190. h Heading of the XXXIX Articles. WILSON.] NATURE OF IDEOLOGICAL INTERPRETATION. application to Holy Scripture itself of the tricks which the Vicar of Great Staughton has already played, so much to his own satisfaction, with the Articles. " We may say that the value of the historical parts of the Bible may consist, rather in their significance, in the ideas which they awaken, than in the scenes them- selves which they depict." (p. 199.) To a plain Eng- lish understanding, (unperplexed with the dreams of Strauss, and other unbelievers of the same stamp,) such a statement conveys scarcely an intelligible no- tion. But we are not left long in doubt. "The application of Ideology to the interpretation of Scripture, to the doctrines of Christianity, to the formularies of the Church, may undoubtedly be car- ried to an excess ; may be pushed so far as to leave in the sacred records no historical residue whatever. .... An example of the critical Ideology carried to excess, is that of Strauss ; which resolves into an ideal the whole of the historical and doctrinal person of JESUS But it by no means follows, because Strauss has substituted a mere shadow for the JESUS of the Evangelists, that there are not traits in the scriptural person of Jesus, which are better explained by referring them to an ideal than an historical origin : and without falling into fanciful exegetics, there are parts of Scripture more usefully interpreted ideolo- gically than in any other manner, as for instance, the history of the Temptation of JESUS by Satan, and accounts of demoniacal possessions" (pp. 200 201.) " Some may consider the descent of all Mankind from Adam and Eve as an undoubted historical fact ; others may rather perceive in that relation a form of narra- tive into which in early ages tradition would easily throw itself spontaneously Among a particular g THE BIBLE THUS EXPLAINED AWAY. [MR. people, this historical representation became the concrete expression of a great moral truth, of the brotherhood of all human beings The force, grandeur, and reality of these ideas are not a whit impaired in the abstract, nor indeed the truth of the concrete history (!) as their representation, even though mankind should have been placed upon the earth in many pairs at once, or in distinct centres of creation. For the brotherhood of men really depends," &c., &c. (p. 201.) "Let us suppose one to be uncertain whether our LORD were born of the house and lineage of David, or of the tribe of Levi ; and even to be driven to conclude that the genealogies of Him have little historic value; nevertheless, in idea, JESUS is both Son of David and Son of Aaron, both Prince of Peace, and High Priest of our profession ; as He is, under another idea, though not literally, ' without father and without mother.' And He is none the less Son of David, Priest Aaron- ical, or Eoyal Priest Melchizedecan, in idea and spi- ritually, even if it be unproved whether He were any of them in historic fact. In like manner it need not trouble us, if in consistency, we should have to sup- pose both an ideal origin, and to apply an ideal mean- ing, to the birth in the city of David, (!) and to other circumstances of the Infancy. (!) So again, the Incar- nification of the divine Immanuel remains, although the angelic appearances which herald it in the narra- tives of the Evangelists may be of ideal origin, accord- ing to the conceptions of former days." (pp. 202-3.) "And," lastly, "liberty must be left to all as to the extent in which they apply this principle /" (p. 201.) To such dreamy nonsense, what "Answer" can we return 1 ? Such speculations would be a fair subject 1 The reader is referred to some remarks on Ideology towards the close of Sermon VII., p. 243 to p. 251. WILSON.] MR. WILSON'S OUTLANDISH TERMINOLOGY. IxXXlii for ridicule and merriment, if the subject were not so unspeakably solemn, the issues so vast, and terribly momentous. "We find ourselves introduced into a new world, of which the denizens talk like madmen, and in a jargon of their own. And yet, that jargon is no sooner understood, than the true character of our new companions becomes painfully evident k . . . .He who believes the plain words of Holy Writ, finds himself called "the literalist." He who resolves Scripture into a dream, and the LORD who redeemed him into "a mere shadow," (p. 200) is dignified with the title of " an idealist." " Neither" (we are assured) " should condemn the other. They are fed with the same truths; the literalist unconsciously, the idealist with reflection. Neither can justly say of the other that he undervalues the Sacred Writings, or that he holds them as inspired less properly than himself." (p. 200.) "The ideologian," (who is the same person as the k " Unhappily, together with his inauguration of Multitudinism, Constantine also inaugurated a principle essentially at variance with it, the principle of doctrinal limitation." (p. 166.) . . . "The oppor- tunity of reverting to the freedom of the Apostolic, and imme- diately succeeding periods, was finally lost for many ages by the sanction given by Constantine to the decisions of Niceea." (Hid.) "At all events, a principle at variance with a true Multitudinism was then recognised." (Ibid.) How does it happen, by the way, that one writing B.D. after his name, however bitter his animosity against the Nicene Creed may be, is not aware that Creeds are co-eval with Christianity ? Thus we find the Creed of Carthage in the works of Cyprian, (A.D. 225,) and Tertullian, (A.D. 210, 203) : that of Lyons in the works of Ireneeus, (A.D. 180.) [see Heurtley's Harmonia Symlolica, pp. 7-20.] "We recognize fragments of the Creed in Ignatius, (A.D. 90.) We hear St. Paul himself saying vTrorinraxriv e^e vyiatvovrav Aoywi', $>v (i.e. the words themselves!) nap cpov rjitovo-as .... T^V KaXqv irapa- Ka.Ta6r)Kr)v $v\aov 2 Tim. i. 13, 14. A few more words on this subject will be found in the notice of Mr. Jowett's Essay. 1XXX1V ABSURDITY OF MR. WILSON^S SYSTEM. [MR. " idealist ;" for the gentleman, at this place, changes his name ;) "is evidently in possession of a principle which will enable him to stand in charitable relation to persons of very different opinions from his own." (p. 202.) " Eelations which may repose on doubtful grounds as matter of history, and, as history, be in- capable of being ascertained or verified, may yet be equally suggestive of true ideas with facts absolutely certain. The spiritual significance is the same of the Transfiguration, of opening blind eyes, of causing the tongue of the stammerer to speak plainly, of feeding multitudes with bread in the wilderness, of cleansing leprosy ; whatever links may be deficient in the tra- ditional records of particular events." (Ibid.) .... I will but modestly inquire, What would be said of us, if we were so to expound Holy Scripture in defence of Christianity ? But it is time to dismiss this tissue of worthless as well as most mischievous writing; even to exhibit which, in the words of its misguided author, ought to be its own sufficient exposure. Do men really expect us to " answer" such groundless assertions, and vague speculations as those which go before ? A Faith with- out Creeds : a Clergy without authority or fixed opi- nions : a Bible without historical truth : how can such things, for a moment, be supposed to be l ? What 1 It is really impossible to argue with a man who informs us that "previous to the time of the divided Kingdom, the Jewish His- tory presents little which is thoroughly reliable :" (p. 170 :) that "the greater probability seems on the side of the supposition, that the Priesthood, with its distinct offices and charge, was constituted .by Royalty, and that the higher pretensions of the priests were not advanced till the reign of Josiah :" (Hid. :) that, " The negative Theologian" demands "some positive elements in Christianity, on grounds more sure to him than the assumption of an objective 'faith WILSON.] IDEOLOGY INEVITABLY DESTROYS THE BIBLE. IxXXV answer do we render to the sick man who sees un- substantial goblins on the solid tapestried wall ; and mistakes for shadowy apparitions of the night, the forms of flesh and blood which are ministering to his life's necessities ? If the Temptation, and the Trans- figuration, and the Miracles of CHRIST be not true his- tory, but ideological allegories, then why not His Nati- vity and His Crucifixion, His Death and His Burial, His Kesurrection and His Ascension into Heaven likewise ? " Liberty " (we have been expressly told,) " must be left to all, as to the extent in which they apply the principle" (p. 201.) Where then is Ideology to begin, or rather, where is ideology to end? "Why then is Strauss to be blamed for using that universal liberty, and l resolving into an ideal the whole of the his- torical and doctrinal person of JESUS?' Why is Strauss' resolution ( an excess ?' or where and by what autho- rity, short of his extreme view, would Mr. Wilson himself stop ? or at what point of the process ? and by what right could he, consistently with his own canon, call on any other speculator, to stay the ideo- logizing process m ?'' "Discrepancies in narratives, scientific difficulties, defects in evidence, do not disturb the ideologist as they do the literalist." (p. 203.) No, truly. Nothing troubles him ; simply because he believes nothing ! once delivered to the saints? which he cannot identify with the Creed of any Church as yet known to him :" (pp. 174-5 :) a man who can remark concerning the Bible, that, " Those who are able to do so, ought to lead the less educated to distinguish between the different kinds of words which it contains, between the dark patches of human passion and error which form a partial crust upon it, and the bright centre of spiritual truth within." (p. 177.) m Quarterly Review, (Jan. 1851,) No. 217, p. 259. THE ESSAYIST HIMSELF IDEOLOGIZED. [MR. The very Sacraments of the Gospel are not secure from his unhallowed touch. " The same principle" (?) is declared to be " capable 7 of application" to them also. " "Within these concrete conceptions there lie hid the truer ideas of the virtual presence of the LORD JESUS everywhere that He is preached, remembered, and represented." (p. 204.) ... Do we ever deal thus with any other book of History ? And yet, on what possible principle is the Bible to be thus trifled with, and Thucydides to be spared ? I protest, if the histo- rical personages of either Testament may be resolved at will into abstract qualities, and the historical trans- actions of either Testament may be supposed to re- present ideas and notions only, then, I see not why the Vicar of Great Staughton himself may not prove to be a mythical personage also. Why need Henry Bristow Wilson, B.D., who, (as f ' literalists " say,) in 1841 was one of the * Four Tutors ' who procured the condemnation of Tract No. 90, on the ground that it i evaded rather than explained the Thirty-nine Arti- cles;' and who, in 1861 writes that " Subscription to the Articles may be thought even inoperative upon the conscience by reason of its vagueness;" (p. 181.) why need this author be supposed to be a man at all ? Why should he not be interpreted " ideologically ;" and resolved into the principle of disgraceful Incon- sistency of conduct, and " variation of opinion at dif- ferent periods of life ?" Y. IN the present crusade against the Bible and the Faith of Christian men, the task of destroying confidence in the first chapter of Genesis has been undertaken by MR. C. W. GOODWIN, M.A. He re- quires us to " regard it as the speculation of some GOODWIN.] SHIVERING EXISTENCE OF THEOLOGY. Hebrew Descartes or Newton, promulgated in all good faith as the best and most probable account that could be then given of GOD'S Universe." (p. 252.) Mr. Goodwin remarks with scorn, that " we are asked to believe that a vision of Creation was pre- sented to him by Divine power, for the purpose of enabling him to inform the world of what he had seen ; which vision inevitably led him to give a de- scription which has misled the world for centuries, and in which the truth can now only with difficulty be recognized." (p. 247.) He puts "pen to paper," therefore, (he says,) in order to induce the world to a " frank recognition of the erroneous views of nature which the Bible contains." (p. 211.) The importance of the inquiry, he vindicates in the following modest terms: "Physical Science goes on unconcernedly pursuing its own paths. Theology, (the Science whose object is the dealing of GOD with Man as a moral being,) maintains but a shivering existence, shouldered and jostled by the sturdy growths of modern thought, and bemoaning itself for the hostility it en- counters." (p. 211.) A few remarks at once suggest themselves. I cannot help thinking that if any person of ordi- nary intelligence, unacquainted with the Bible, were to be left to obtain his notion of its contents from "Essays and Ee views," infidel publications generally, and (absit invidia verbo /) from not a few of the Ser- mons which have been preached and printed in either University of late years, the notion so obtained would be singularly at variance with the known facts of the case. "Would not a man infallibly carry away an impression that the Bible is a book abounding in statements concerning matters of Physical Science SCIENTIFIC STATEMENTS IN THE BIBLE. [MR. which, are flatly contradicted by the ascertained phe- nomena of Nature ? Would he not be led to expect that it contained every here and there a theoretical Excursus on certain Astronomical or Physiological subjects? and to anticipate, above all, an occasional chapter on Geology? Great would be his astonish- ment, surely, at finding that one single chapter com- prises nearly the whole of the statements which mo- dern philosophy finds so very hateful ; and that chap- ter, the first chapter in the Bible n . But the surprise would grow considerably when the conditions of the problem came to be a little more fully stated. Has then the actual history of the World's Creation been ascertained from some other independent and infallible source ? No ! Are Geolo- gists as yet so much as agreed even about a theory of the Creation ? No ! Can it be proved that any part of the Mosaic account is false ? Certainly not ! Then why all this hostile dogmatism ? To witness the vio- lence of the partisans of Geological discovery, and the arrogance of their pretensions, one would suppose that some Divine Creed of theirs had been impugned : that a revelation had been made to them from Heaven, which the profane and unbelieving world was reluc- n A writer in the Saturday Review, (April 6, 1861,) in an ad- mirable Article on the importance of retaining the office of 'Dean' in its integrity, (instead ^of suicidally merging it in the office of 'Bishop,') speaks of there being "no English Commentary on the New Testament brought up to the level of modern Theological Science." [As if "the level" had been rising of late!] "Butler and Paley are still our text-books on the Evidences ; and we are de- fending old beliefs behind wooden walls against the rifled cannon and iron broadsides of modern Philosophy." p. 337. What a strange misapprehension of the entire question, of the relation of Theological to Physical Science, does such_a sentence betray ! GOODWIN.] THE FIRST CHAPTER OF GENESIS. LXXXIX tant to accept. Whereas, these are Christian men, im- patient, as it seems, to tear the first leaf out of their Bible : or rather, to throw discredit on the entire volume, by establishing the untrustworthiness of the earliest page ! One single additional consideration completes the strangeness of the picture. If our account of the Six Days of Creation were a sybilline leaf of unknown origin, it would not be unreasonable to treat its reve- lations as little worth. But since the author of it is confessedly Moses, the great Hebrew prophet, who lived from B.C. 1571 to 1451, who enjoyed the vision of the Most High; nay, who conversed with GOD face to face, was with Him in the Mount for thrice forty days, and received from Him the whole details of the Sacred Law ; since this first chapter of Genesis is known to have formed a part of the Church's un- broken heritage from that time onward, and therefore must be acknowledged to be an integral part of the volume of Scripture which, (as our LORD says,) ov Sv- VOLTOLI XvOrjvai, " cannot be broken, diluted, loosened, explained away;" since, further, this account of Creation is observed to occur in the most conspicuous place of the most conspicuous of those books which are designated by an Apostle by the epithet QeoTrvev- CTTO?, or, " given by inspiration," " filled with the breath," or " Spirit of GOD;" and when it is con- sidered that our SAVIOUR and His Apostles refer to the primaeval history contained in the first two chapters about thirty times : when, (I say,) all this is duly weighed, surely too strong ajjrimdfacie case has been made out on behalf of the first chapter of Genesis, See below, p. 235. xc CONCEIT OF PRETENDERS [MR. that its authority should be imperilled by the random statements of every fresh individual who sees fit to master the elements of Geology ; and on the strength of that qualification presumes to sit in judgment on the Hebrew Scriptures, of which, confessedly, he does not understand so much as the alphabet ! It is even amusing to see how vain a little mind can become of a little knowledge. Mr. Goodwin re- marks, "The school-books of the present day, while they teach the child that the Earth moves, yet assure him that it is a little less than six thousand years old, and that it was made in six days." (p. 210.) (I am puzzled to reconcile this statement with the author's declaration that " no well-instructed person now doubts the great antiquity of the Earth any more than its motion." (Ibid.) "Would it not have been fairer to have named at least one of the school-books which perpetuate so wicked a heresy ?) " Oh the other hand, Geologists of all religious creeds are agreed that the Earth has existed for an immense series of years, to be counted by millions rather than by thousands ; and that indubitably more than six days elapsed from its first Creation to the appearance of Man upon its surface. By this broad discrepancy between old and new doctrine is the modern mind startled, as were the men of the sixteenth century when told that the earth moved." (p. 210.) But begging pardon of our philosopher, if all he means is that more than six days elapsed between the Creation of "Heaven and Earth," (noticed in ver. 1,) and the Creation of Man, (spoke of from ver. 26 to 28,) he means to say mighty little ; and need not fear to encounter contradiction from any "well -instructed person." True, that an ignorant man could not have GOODWIN.] TO GEOLOGICAL SCIENCE. XC1 suspected anything of the kind from reading the first chapter of Genesis : but this is surely nobody's fault but his own. An ignorant man might in like man- ner be of opinion that the Sun and Moon are the two largest objects in creation; and there is not a word in this same chapter calculated to undeceive him. Again, he might think that the Sun rises and sets; and the common language of the Observatory would confirm him hopelessly in his mistake. All this how- ever is no one's fault but his own. The ancient Fa- thers of the Church, behind- hand as they were in Physical Science, yet knew enough to anticipate " the hypothesis of the Geologist ; and two of the Christian Fathers, Augustine and Theodoret, are referred to as having actually held that a wide interval elapsed be- tween the first act of Creation, mentioned in the Mosaic account, and the commencement of the Six Days' work." (p. 231.) Mr. Goodwin therefore has got no further, so far, than Augustine and Theodoret got, 1400 years since, without the aid of Geology. But we must hasten on. The business of the Essayist, as we have said, is to undermine our con- fidence in the Bible, by exposing the ignorance of the author of the first chapter. " Modern theologians," (he remarks, with unaffected displeasure,) "have di- rected their attention to the possibility of reconciling the Mosaic narrative with those geological facts which are admitted to be beyond dispute." (p. 210.) And pray, (we modestly ask,) is not such a proceeding ob- vious? A "frank recognition of the erroneous views of Nature which the Bible contains," (p. 211,) we shall be prepared to yield when those "erroneous views" have been demonstrated to exist, but not till then. Mr. Goodwin must really remember that although, xcii ME. GOODWIN'S VIEWS [MR. in his opinion, the " Mosaic Cosmogony, " (for so he phrases it,) is "not an authentic utterance of Divine knowledge, but a human utterance," (p. 253,) the World thinks differently. The learned and wise and good of all ages, including the present, are happily agreed that the first chapter of Genesis is part of the Word of GOD. After what is evidently intended to be a showy sketch of the past history of our planet, " we pass" (says Mr. Goodwin) "to the account of the Creation contained in the Hebrew record. And it must be ob- served that in reality two distinct accounts are given us in the book of Genesis ; one, being comprised in the first chapter and the first three verses of the second ; the other, commencing at the fourth verse of the second chapter and continuing till the end. This is so philologically certain that it were useless to ignore it." (p. 217.) Eeally we read such statements with a kind of astonishment which almost swallows up sorrow. Do they arise, (to quote Mr. Goodwin's own language,) " from our modern habits of thought, and from the modesty of assertion which the spirit of true science has taught us ?" (p. 252.) Convinced that my unsupported denial would have no more weight than Mr. Goodwin's ought to have, I have referred the dictum just quoted to the highest Hebrew authority available, and have been assured that it is utterly without foundation. After such experience of Mr. Goodwin's philological " certainties," what amount of attention does he ex- pect his dicta to command in a Science which, starting from " a region of uncertainty, where Philosophy is reduced to mere guesses and possibilities, and pro- nounces nothing definite," (p. 213,) has to travel GOODWIN.] OF GENESIS AND GEOLOGY. through "a prolonged period, beginning and ending we know not when ;" (p. 214 ;) reaches another period, "the duration of which no one presumes to define;" (Ibid.;) and again another, during which "nothing can be asserted positively :" (p. 215 :) after which comes " a kind of artificial break ?" (Ibid.) For my own part, I freely confess that Mr. Good- win's final admission that " the advent of Man may be considered as inaugurating a new and distinct epoch, that in which we now are, and during the whole of which the physical conditions of existence cannot have been very materially different from what they are now;" (p. 216;) and that "thus much is clear, that Man's existence on Earth is brief, compared with the ages during which unreasoning creatures were the sole possessors of the globe :" (p. 217 :) these state- ments, I say, contain as much as one desires to see admitted. For really, since the fossil Flora, and the various races of animated creatures which Geologists have classified with so much industry and skill, con- fessedly belong to a period of immemorial antiquity ; and, with very rare exceptions indeed, represent extinct species, I, as an interpreter of Scripture, am not at all concerned with them. Moses asserts nothing at all about them, one way or the other. What Beve- lation says, is, that nearly 6000 years ago, after a mighty catastrophe, unexplained alike in its cause, its nature, and its duration, the Creator of the Uni- verse instituted upon the surface of this Earth of ours that order of things which has continued ever since ; and which is observed at this instant to prevail : that He was pleased to parcel out His transcendent opera- tions, and to spread them over Six Days; and that He ceased from the work of Creation on the Seventh xciv MR. GOODWIN'S PARODY or GEN. i. [MR. Day. All extant species, whether of the vegetable or the animal Kingdom, including Man himself, belong to the week in question. And this statement, as it has never yet been found untrue, so am I unable to anticipate by what possible evidence it can ever be set aside as false. In my Ilnd Sermon, I have ventured to review the Mosaic record sufficiently in detail, to render it superfluous that I should retrace any portion of it here. The reader is requested to read at least so much of what has been offered as is contained from p. 28 to p. 32. My business at present is with Mr. Goodwin. And in limine I have to remind him that he has really no right first to give, in his own words, his own notion of the history of Creation ; and then to insist on making the Revelation of the same transaction ridiculous by giving it also in words of his own, which become in effect a weak parody of the origi- nal. What is there in Genesis about " the air or wind fluttering over the waters of the deep ?" (p. 219.) Is this meant for the august announcement that " the SPIRIT of GOD moved upon the face of the waters ?" " On the third day, . , . . we wish to call attention to the fact that trees and plants destined for food are those which are particularly singled out as the earliest productions of the earth." (p. 220.) The re- verse is the fact; as a glance at Gen. i. 11. will shew. "The formation of the stars" on the fourth day, " is mentioned in the most cursory manner." (p. 221.) But who is not aware that " the forma- tion of the stars " is nowhere mentioned in this chapter at all ? " Light and the measurement of time," (proceeds GOODWIN.] LIGHT INDEPENDENT OF THE SUN. XCV Mr. "Goodwin,) "are represented as existing before the manifestation of the Sun." (p. 219.) Half of this statement is true ; the other half is false. The former idea, he adds, is " repugnant to our modern know- ledge." (p. 219.) Is then Mr. Goodwin really so weak as to imagine that our Sun is the sole source of Light in Creation ? Whence then the light of the so-called fixed Stars ? But I shall be told that Mr. Goodwin speaks of our system only, and of our Earth in parti- cular. Then pray, whence that glory p which on a cer- tain night on a mountain in Galilee, caused the face of our BEDEEMER to shine as the Sun q and His raiment to emit a dazzling lustre r ? " We may boldly affirm," (he says,) " that those for whom [Gen. i. 3 5] was penned could have taken it in no other sense than that light existed before and independently of the sun." (p. 219.) We may indeed. And I as boldly affirm that I take the passage in that sense myself: moreover that I hold the statement which Mr. Good- win treats so scornfully, to be the very truth which, in the deep counsels of GOD, this passage was designed to convey to mankind ; even that " the King of Kings, and LORD of Lords, who only hath immortality, dwell- eth in the Light which no man can approach unto s ." p As the excellent Townson observed long since, "The bright- ness of countenance and raiment which dazzled and overcame the sight of His Apostles when He was Transfigured on the Mount, was to Him but a ray of that glory in which He dwelt before the Worlds were made." Sermon on " The manner of our SAVIOUE'S Teaching," Works, vol. i. p. 282. i St. Matth. xvii. 2. ' St. Mark ix. 3. * 1 Tim. vi. 15, 16. If it be more philosophical to suppose that the Light which shone upon the earth during the first three days proceeded from the Sun, (the orb of which remained invisible,) and not from any extraneous independent source, I have no objection THE LIGHT OF GENESIS I. 3. [MR. " The work of the second day of Creation is to erect the vault of Heaven (Heb. Eakia ; Gr. o-repeco/jia ; Lat. Firmamentum^] which is represented as support- ing an ocean of water above it. The waters are said to be divided, so that some are below, and some above the vault. . . . No quibbling about the derivation of the word Rakia, which is literally < something beaten out,' can affect the explicit description of the Mosaic writer contained in the words 'the waters that are whatever to such a supposition, or indeed to any other which suffers the inspired record to remain intact. I am by no means clear how- ever that Philosophy (begging her pardon,) does not entirely mistake her office, when she pretends to explain the first chapter of Genesis. Hence, her constrained language, and unnatural manner, when she desires to be respectful, her inconsequential remarks and perpetual blunders when she rather prefers to be irreligious. She is simply out of her element, and is discoursing of what she does not under- stand. Theology, dealing with a physical problem by the method of Theological Science ; and Philosophy, applying to a chapter in the Bible the physical method, are alike at fault, and alike ridi- culous. This truth, however obvious, does not seem to be generally understood. But, (to return to the first three days of Creation,) since the Author of Revelation seems to design that I should understand that Sun, Moon, and Stars not only did not come to view until the fourth day, but also that they were not re-invested with their imme- morial function and office until then, I find no difficulty, remem- bering with whom I have to do, even with Him who sowed the vault of Heaven so thick with stars, each one of which may be not a sun but a system * ; when, I say, I attend to the emphatic nature of the inspired record, on the one hand, and to GOD'S Omnipotence on the other, I have no difficulty in supposing that He embraced the Sun in a veil, for just so long a period as it seemed Him good, and when He willed that it should re-appear, that He withdrew the veil again. The name for the operation just now alluded to belongs to the pro- vince of Philosophy. Divinity is all the while thinking about some- thing infinitely better and higher. 4 Herschel. GOODWIN.] MEANING OF THE FIRMAMENT. above the firmament,' or avail to shew that he was aware that the sky is but transparent space." (pp. 219, 220.) "The allotted receptacle [of Sun and Moon] was not made until the Second Day, nor were they set in it until the fourth." (p. 221.) Surely I cannot be the only reader to whom the impertinence of this is as offensive, as its shallowness is ridiculous ! In spite of Mr. Goodwin's uplifted finger, and menacing cry, " No quibbling !" I proceed with my inquiry. For first ; Why does Mr. Goodwin parody the words of Inspiration ? The account as given by Moses is, "And GOD said, Let there be a firmament in the midst of the waters, and let it divide the waters from the waters*." But surely, to make the "open firmament of Heaven" in which every winged fowl may fly u , is not " to erect the vault of Heaven," " a permanent solid vault" " supporting an ocean of water ! " The Hebrew word here used to denote " firmament," on which Mr. Goodwin's indictment turns, ("rakia,") is derived from a verb which means to "beat." Now, what is beaten, or hammered out, while (if it be a metal) it acquires extension, acquires also solidity. The Septuagint translators seem to have fastened upon the latter notion, and accordingly represented it by o-repecofjia] for which, the earliest Latin translators of the Old Testament coined an equivalent, firma- mentum. But that Moses by the word "rakia" in* tended rather to denote the expanse. overhead, than to predicate solidity for the sky, I suspect will be readily admitted by all. True that in the poetical book of Job, we read that the sky is "strong, as a molten looking-glass x :" but then we meet more frequently * Gen. i. 6. n Ibid. 20. * Job xxxvii. 18, h XCVlii MEANING OF THE FIRMAMENT. [MR. with passages of a different tendency. GOD is said to "stretch out the heavens like a curtain^" " and spread them out as a tent to dwell in z :" to " bind up the waters in His thick clouds a ,", and "in a garment*," &c., &c. c It is only needful to look out the word in the dictionary of Gesenius to see that spreading out, (as of thin plates of metal by a hammer,) is the only notion which pro- perly belongs to the word. Accordingly, the earliest modern Latin translation from the Hebrew, (that of Pagninus,) renders the word expansio. And so the word has stood for centuries in the margin of our English Bible. The actual fact of the case, the truth concerning the physical phenomenon alluded to, comes in, and surely may be allowed to haye some little weight. Since expansion is a real attribute of the atmosphere which divides the waters above from the waters below, and solidity is not, it seems to me only fair, seeing that the force of the expression is thought doubt- ful, to assign to it the meaning which is open to fewest objections. But "the Hebrews," (says Mr. Goodwin,) " under- stood the sky, firmament, or heaven to be a permanent solid vault, as it appears to the ordinary observer." This, he adds, is " evident enough from various ex- pressions made use of concerning it. It is said to have pillars d , foundations 6 , doors f , and windows g ," (p. 220.) Now, I really do not think Mr. Goodwin's inference by any means so " evident" as he asserts. y Ps. civ. 2. z Is. xl. 22. a Job xxvi. 8. b Prov. xxx. 4. c See also Job ix. 8. Even in Job xxxvii. 18, the sky is said to be "spread out." So Is. xlv. 12, &c. d Job xxvi. 11. e 2 Sam. xxii. 8. Ps. Ixxviii. 23. g Gen. vii. 11. GOODWIN.] THE LANGUAGE OF MOSES DEFENDED. If Heaven has " pillars" in the poetical book of Job, so has the Earth h . The " foundations" spoken of in 2 Sam. xxii. 8, seem rather to belong to Earth than to Heaven, as a reference to the parallel place in Ps. xviii. 7 will shew 1 . Is Mr. Goodwin so little of a poet, as to be staggered by the phrase " windows of Heaven," when it occurs in the figurative language of an ancient people, and in a poetical book k ? For the foregoing reasons, I distrust Mr. Goodwin's inference that " the Hebrews understood the sky to be a solid vault, furnished with pillars, foundations, doors, and windows." But whether they did, or did not, it is to be hoped that he is enough of a logician to per- ceive that the popular notions of GOD'S ancient people on this subject, are not the thing in question. The only FACT we have to do with is clearly this, that Moses has in this place employed the word " ralcia:" and the only QUESTION which can be moved about it, is (as evidently) the following, whether he was, or was not, to blame in employing that word ; for as to the meaning which he, individually, attached to the pheno- menon of which "rakia" is the name, it cannot be pretended that any one living knows anything at all about the matter. A Greek, Latin, or French astro- nomer who should speak of Heaven, would not there- fore be assumed to mean that it is hollow ; although KOI\OV, ' ccelumj cielj etymologically imply no less. Now I contend that Moses employed the word "rakia" with exactly the same propriety, neither more nor less, as when a Divine now-a-days employs the English word "firmament." It does not follow h Job ix. 6. Ps. Ixxv. 3. See Blomfield's Glossary to Prom. Vinct. v. 357. [ Comp. Is. xxiy. 18. k See Is. xxiv. 18 and Mai. iii. 10. h2 [MR. that the man who speaks of " the spacious firmament on high," is under so considerable a delusion as to suspect that the firmament is a firm thing ; nor does it follow that Moses thought that " rakia" was a solid sub- stance either, even if solidity was the prevailing etymo- logical notion in the word, and even if the Hebrews were no better philosophers than Mr. Goodwin would have us believe. The Essayist's objection is therefore worthless. GOD was content that Moses should em- ploy the ordinary language of his day, accommodate himself to the forms of speech then prevalent, coin no new words. What is there unreasonable in the circumstance ? What possible ground does it furnish for a supposition that the etymological force of the word, or even that the popular physical theory of which that word may, or may not, have once been the connotation, denoted the sense in which Moses em- ployed it ? Is it to be supposed that when a physician speaks of a "jovial temperament," he insinuates his approval of an exploded system of medicine? Do astronomers maintain that the Sun has a disk, or the Earth an axis ? that the former leaves its place in the heavens when it suffers c eclipse ! ?' or that the latter has a superior latitude, from East to West ? To give the most familiar instance of all, Do scientific men believe that the sun rises, and sets ? And yet all say that it does, until this hour ! . . . Why is Moses to be judged by a less favourable standard than anybody else, than Shakspeare, than Hooker, even than Mr. Goodwin? The first, in an exquisite passage, bids Jessica, " Look how the floor of heav'n Is thick inlayed with patens of bright gold." edpav. (Herod.) See Coplcston's Remains, p. 107. .GOODWIN.] APPLIED TO HIS OWN ESSAY. Cl Did Shakspeare expect his beautiful language would be tortured into a shape which would convict him of talking nonsense? But this is poetry. Then take Hooker's prose : " If the frame of that heavenly arch erected over our heads should loosen and dissolve itself; ... if the Moon should wander from her beaten way m ," &c. Did Hooker suppose that heaven is " an arch," which could be " loosened and dissolved ?" or that " the way" of the moon is " beaten ?" But this is a highly poetical passage, written three centuries ago. Let an unexceptionable witness then be called; and so, let the question be brought to definite issue. /, for my part, am quite content that it shall be the philosopher in person. The present Essayist shall be heard discours- ing about Creation, and shall be convicted out of his own mouth. Mr. Goodwin begins his paper by a kind of cosmogony of his own, which he prefaces with the following apology : " It will be necessary for our purpose to go over the oft-trodden ground, which must be done with rapid steps. Nor let the reader object to be reminded of some of the most elementary facts of his knowledge. The human race has been ages in arriving at conclusions now familiar to every child." (p. 212.) After this preamble, he begins his " elementary facts," as follows : "This Earth, apparently so still and stedfast, lying in majestic repose beneath the setherial vault," (p. 212.) But we remonstrate immediately. " The setherial vault!" Do you then understand the sky, firmament, or heaven to be " a permanent solid vault, as it ap- pears to the ordinary observer ?" (p. 220.) m Heel Pol i. iii. 2. Cil ' THE SKYEY BRIDGE.' [MR. " The Sun wliicli seems to leap up each morning from the east, and traversing the skyey bridge," (p. 212.) "The skyey bridge!" And pray in what part of the universe do you discover a " skyey bridge?" Is not this calculated " to convey to ordinary apprehen- sions an impression at variance with facts ?" (p. 231.) " The Moon which occupies a position in the visible heavens only second to the Sun, and far beyond that of every other celestial body in conspicuousness," (p. 212.) Nay, but really Mr. Philosopher, while you remind us "of some of the most elementary facts of our know- ledge," (p. 212,) you write (except in the matter of the " leaping Sun" and the " skyey bridge,") exactly as Moses does in the first chapter of Genesis ! What else does that great Prophet say but that " the Moon occupies a position in the visible heavens only second to the Sun, and far beyond that of every other celes- tial body in conspicuousness ?" (p. 212.) Enough, it is presumed, has been offered in reply to Mr. Goodwin, and his notions of "Mosaic Cosmo- gony." He writes with the flippancy of a youth in his teens, who having just mastered the elements of natural science, is impatient to acquaint the world with his achievement. His powers of dogmatism are unbounded; but he betrays his ignorance at every step. The Divine decree, " Let us make Man in Our image, after Our likeness"," he explains by remarking that "the Pentateuch abounds in passages shewing that the Hebrews contemplated the Divine being in the visible form of a man." (! ! !) (p. 221.) A foot-note contains the following oracular dictum, " See par- n Gen. i. 26. GOODWIN.] MR. GOODWIN'S METHOD. ciii ticularly the narrative in Genesis xviii." What can be said to such an ignoramus as this ? Hear him dog- matizing in another subject-matter : " The common arrangement of the Bible in chapters is of compa- ratively modern origin, and is admitted on all hands to have no authority or philological worth whatever. In many cases the division is most preposterous." (p. 222.) That the division of chapters is occasionally infelicitous, is true : but is Mr. Goodwin weak enough to think that he could divide them better? The division into chapters and verses again is not so modern as Mr. Goodwin fancies. Dr. M'Caul, (in a pamphlet on the Translation of the Bible,) shews reason for suspecting that some of the divisions of the Old Testament Scriptures are as old as the time of Ezra. To return, and for the last time, to Mr. Goodwin's Essay. His object is, (with how much of success I have already sufficiently shewn,) (1) To fasten the charge of absurdity and ignorance on the ancient Pro- phet who is confessedly the author of the Book of Genesis: (2) To prove that a literal interpretation of Gen. i., "will not bear a moment's serious dis- cussion." (p. 230.) I look through his pages in vain for the wished-for proof. He has many strong assertions. He puts them forth with not a little in- solence. But he proves nothing 1 At p. 226, how- ever, I read as follows: " Dr, Buckland appears to assume that when it is said that the Heaven and the Earth were created in the beginning, it is to be under- stood that they were created in their present form and state of completeness, the heaven raised above the earth as we see it, or seem to see it now." (pp. 226-7.) civ DR. BUCKLAND ON GEN. I, [MR. But Dr. Buckland " appears to assume" nothing of the kind. His words are, " The first verse of Genesis seems explicitly to assert the creation of the Universe : the Heaven, including the sidereal systems, and the Earth, . . . the subsequent scene of the operations of the six days about to be described." (pp. 224-5.) "This," continues Mr. Goodwin, "is the fallacy of his argument." (p. 227.) But if this is "the fallacy of his argument," we have already seen that it is a fallacy which rests not with Dr. Buckland, but with Mr. Goodwin. He proceeds : " The circumstantial description of the framing of the Heaven out of the waters proves that the words < Heaven and Earth,' in the first verse, must be taken proleptically." (p. 227.) But we may as well stop the torrent of long words, by simply pointing out that " the heavens," (hash- amaim,) spoken of in Gen. i. 1, are quite distinct from "the firmament," (rakia : ) spoken of in ver. 6. The word is altogether different, and the sense is evidently altogether different also ; although Mr. Goodwin seeks to identify the two . And further, we take leave to o "The difficulty," he says, (alluding to Gen. i. 1,) "lies in this, that the heaven is distinctly said to have been formed ... on the second day." (p. 226.) But this is the language of a man determined that there sliall be a difficulty. " The Heavens and the Earth" clearly denote, (in the simple phraseology of a primitive age,) the sum of all created things ; the great transaction which Nehemiah has so strikingly expounded: "Heaven, the Heaven of Heavens, with all their host, the Earth and all things that are therein;" in- cluding " the sea, with all that is therein." (Neh. ix. 6.) Whereas " the firmament" of ver. 6, (which GOD called " Heaven" in ver. 8,) can only indicate the blue vault immediately overhead, wherein fowls fly. (ver. 20.) If this be not the meaning of Gen. i. 1, one GOODWIN.] THE ESSAYIST^ MISTAKES. CV remind our modern philosopher that no " circum- stantial description of the framing of the heaven out of the waters," is to be found either in ver. 6, or else- where. And this must suffice. The entire subject shall be dismissed with a very few remarks. Mr. Goodwin delights in pointing out the incorrectness of " the sense in which the Mosaic narrative was taken by those who first heard it :" (p. 223 :) and in asserting " that this meaning is primd facie one wholly adverse to the present astronomical and geological views of the Universe." (p. 223.) But we take leave to remind this would-be philosopher that "the idea which entered into the minds of those to whom the account was first given," (p. 230,) is not the question with which we have to do when we are invited to a " frank recognition of the erroneous views of Nature which the Bible contains." (p. 211.) "It is manifest," (in this I cordially agree with Mr. Goodwin,) "that the whole account is given from a different point of view from that which we now un- avoidably take :" (p. 223 :) and, (I beg leave to add,) that point of view is somewhere in Heaven, not here on Earth ! The " Mosaic Cosmogony," as Mr. Good- win phrases it, (fond, like all other smatterers in Science, of long words,) is a Revelation : and the same HOLY GHOST who gave it, speaking by the mouth of St. John, not obscurely intimates that it is mystical, like the rest of Holy Scripture, that is, that it was fashioned not without a reference to the Gospel p . half of the phrase is " proleptical," the other half not : for the creation of Earth is nowhere recorded, if not in ver. 1. ... But surely it is a waste of words to discuss such " difficulties" as these. P Consider especially Heb. iv. 9 and 10; and consider, (besides Exod. xx. 11,) Deut. v. 15. See also Col. ii. 17. Cvi REMARKS ON THE [MR. But we are touching on a high subject now, of which Mr. Goodwin does not understand so much as the Grammar. He is thinking of the structure of the globe : we are thinking of the structure of the Bible. But to return to Earth, we inform the Essayist that it is simply unphilosophical, even absurd, for him to insist on what shall be implied by certain words em- ployed by Moses, (of which he judges by their ety- mology ;) and further to assume what erroneous phy- sical theories those words must have been connected with, by his countrymen, and so forth ; and straight- way to hold up the greatest of the ancient prophets to ridicule, as if those notions and those theories were all Ms! " After all," (as Dr. Buckland remarked, long since,) "it should be recollected that the question is not re- specting the correctness of the Mosaic narrative, but of our interpretation of it:" (p. 231:) "a proposi- tion," (proceeds Mr. Goodwin,) "which can hardly be sufficiently reprobated." But I make no question which of these two writers is most entitled to repro- bation. For the view which will be found advocated in Sermon II., (which is substantially Dr. Buckland' s,) (p. 24 to p. 32,) it shall but be said that it recom- mends itself to our acceptance by the strong fact that it takes no liberty with the sacred narrative, what- ever; and receives the Eevelation of GOD in all its strangeness, (which it cannot be a great mistake to do ;) without trying to reconcile it with supposed dis- coveries, (wherein we may fail altogether.) I defy anybody to shew that it is impossible that GOD may have disposed of the actual order of the Universe, as in the first chapter of Genesis He is related to have done; and probability can clearly have no place in GOODWIN.] INTERPRETATION OF GEN. I. CVli such a speculation. I would only just remind the thoughtful student of Scripture, and indeed of Nature also, that the singular analogy which Geologists think they discover between successive periods of Creation, and the Mosaic record of the first Six Days, is no difficulty to those who hesitate to identify those Days with the irregular Periods of indefinite extent. Ba- ther was it to have been expected, I think, that such an analogy would be found to subsist between His past and His present working, when, 6,000 years ago, GOD arranged the actual system of things in Six Days. Neither need we feel perplexed if Hugh Miller was right in the conclusion at which, he says, he had been " compelled to arrive;" viz, that "not a few" of the extant species of animals " enjoyed life in their present haunts" "for many long ages ere Man was ushered into being ;" " and that for thousands of years anterior to even their appearance many of the existing molluscs lived in our seas." (p. 229.) I find it no- where asserted ly Moses that the severance was so complete, and decisively marked, between previous cycles of Creation and that cycle which culminated in the creation of Man, that no single species of the pra3- Adamic period was reproduced by the Omnipotent, to serve as a connecting link, as it were, between the Old world and the New, an identifying note of the Intelligence which was equally at work on this last, as on all those former occasions. On the other hand, I do find it asserted by Geologists that between the successive pree-Adamic cycles such connecting links are discoverable; and this fact makes me behold in the circumstance supposed fatal to the view here advocated, the strongest possible confirmation of its accuracy. At the same time, it is admitted that in BUCKLAND AND HUGH MILLER. [MR. every department of animated and vegetable life, the severance between the last (or Mosaic) cycle of Crea- tion, and all those cycles which preceded it, is very broadly marked p . Mr. Goodwin's method contrasts sadly with that of the several writers he adduces, i whether Natural- ists or Divines. Those men, believing in the truth of GOD'S Word, have piously endeavoured, (with what- ever success,) to shew that the discoveries of Geology are not inconsistent with the revelations of Genesis. But he, with singular bad taste, (to use no stronger language,) makes no secret of the animosity with which he regards the inspired record ; and even finds "the spectacle of able, and we doubt not conscien- tious writers engaging in attempting the impossible, painful and humiliating." He says, " they evidently do not breathe freely over their work ; but shuffle and stumble over their difficulties in a piteous manner." (p. 250.) He asserts dogmatically that " the inter- pretation proposed by Buckland to be given to the Mosaic description, will not bear a moment's serious discussion:" (p. 230:) while Hugh Miller "proposes to give an entirely mythical or enigmatical sense to the Mosaic narrative." (p. 236.) He is clamorous that we should admit the teaching of Scripture to be "to some extent erroneous." (p. 251.) He "recog- nizes in it, not an authentic utterance of Divine Know- ledge, but a human utterance." (p. 253.) "Why P " There have been found within the area of these islands up- wards of 15,000 species of once living things, every one differing specifically from those of the present Creation. Agassiz states that, with the exception of one small fossil fish, (discovered in the clay- stones of Greenland,) he has not found any creature of this class, in all the Geological strata, identical with any fish now living'* (Pattison's The Earth and the World, p. 27.) GOODWIN.] GEOLOGY A RECENT SCIENCE. C1X should we hesitate," (he asks,) " to recognize the falli- bility of the Hebrew writers?" (p. 251.) "With one general reflexion, I pass on to the next Essay. The Works of GOD, the more severely they have been questioned, have hitherto been considered to bear a more and more decisive testimony to the Wisdom and the Goodness of their Author. The animal and the vegetable kingdoms have been made Man's instructors for ages past; and ever since the micro- scope has revealed so many unsuspected wonders, the argument from contrivance and design, Creative Power and infinite Wisdom, has been pressed with increasing cogency. The Heavens, from the beginning, have been felt to " declare the glory of GOD." One depart- ment only of Nature, alone, has all along remained unexplored. Singular to relate, the Eecords of Crea- tion, (as the phenomena of Geology may I suppose be properly called,) though the most obvious phenomena of all, have been throughout neglected. It was not till the other day that they were invited to give up their weighty secrets ; and lo, they have confessed them, willingly and at once. The study of Geology does but date from yesterday ; and already it aspires to the rank of a glorious Science. Evidence has been at once furnished that our Earth has been the scene of successive cycles of Creation ; and the crust of the globe we inhabit is found to contain evidence of a de- gree of antiquity which altogether defies conjecture. The truth is, that Man, standing on a globe where his deepest excavations bear the same relation to the diameter which the scratch of a pin invisible to the naked eye, bears to an ordinary globe; learns that his powers of interrogating Nature break down marvellous soon: yet Nature is observed to keep CX MODERN VIEWS OF GEOLOGICAL EVIDENCE. [MR. from him no secrets which he has the ability to ask her to give up. In the meantime, the attitude assumed by certain pretenders to Physical Science at these discoveries, cannot fail to strike any thoughtful person as extra- ordinary. Those witnesses of GOD'S work in Creation, which have been dumb for ages only because no man ever thought of interrogating them, are now regarded in the light of depositaries of a mighty secret ; which, because GOD knew that it would be fatal to the credit of His written Word, He had bribed them to keep back, as long as, by shuffling and equivocation, they found concealment practicable. It seems to be fancied, however, that that fatal secret the determination of Man has wrung from their unwilling lips, at last ; and lo, on confronting GOD with these witnesses, He is convicted even by His own creatures of having spoken falsely in His Word q . Such, I say, is the tone as- q I allude to such passages as the following, all of which are to be found in Mr. Goodwin's Essay : " We are asked to believe that a vision of creation was presented to him (Moses) by Divine power, for the purpose of enabling him to inform the world of what he had seen ; which vision inevitably led him to give a description which has misled the world for centuries, and in which the truth can now only with difficulty be recognized." (p. 247.) "The theories [of Hugh Miller and of Dr. Buckland] as- sume that appearances only, not facts, are described ; and that, in riddles which would never have been suspected to be such, had we not arrived at the truth from other sources." (p. 249.) " For ages, this simple view of Creation satisfied the wants of man, and formed a sufficient basis of theological teaching:" but "modern research now shews it to be physically untenable." (p. 253.) " The writer asserts solemnly and unhesitatingly that for which he must have known that he had no authority." But this was only because " the early speculator was harassed by no such scruples" as " arise from our modern habits of thought, and from the modesty of assertion (!) which the spirit of true science has taught us." GOODWIN.] THE TRUE OFFICE OF GEOLOGY. Cxi sumed of late by a certain school of pretenders to Physical Science. What need to declare that to the well-informed eye of Faith, (and surely Faith is here the perfection of Eeason ! for Faith, remember, is the correlative not of Reason, but of Sight f] the phenomenon pre- sented is of a widely different character. Faith, or rather Eeason, looks upon GOD'S Works as a kind of complement of His Word. He who gave the one, gave the other also. Moreover, He knew that He had given it. So far from ministering to unbelief, or even furnishing grounds for perplexity, the record of His Works was intended, according to His gracious design, to supply what was lacking to our knowledge in the record of His Word. ..." Behold My footprints, (He seems to say,) across the long tract of the ages ! I could not give you this evidence in My written Word. The record would have been out of place, and out of time. It would have been unintelligible also. Eut what I knew would be inexpedient in the page of Eevelation, I have given you abundantly in the page of Nature, I have spared your globe from combustion, which would have effaced those footprints, in order that the characters might be plainly de- cipherable to the end of Time fools and blind, to have occupied a world so brimful of wonders for wellnigh 6000 years, and only now to have begun to open your eyes to the structure of the earth whereon ye live, and move, and have your being ! Yea, and the thousandth part of the natural wonders by which ye are surrounded has not been so much as dreamed of, He therefore " asserted as facts what he knew in reality only as probabilities. ... He had seized one great truth. . . . With regard to details, observation failed him." (pp. 252-3.) cxii MR. PATTISON'S ESSAY [MR, by any of you, yet ! .... learn to be the humbler, the more ye know; and when ye gaze along the mighty vista of departed ages, and scan the traces of what I was doing before I created Man, multiply that problem by the stars which are scattered in number numberless over all the vault of Heaven ; and learn to confess that it behoves the creature of an hour to bow his head at the discovery of his own littleness and blindness ; and that his words concern- ing the Ancient of Days had need to be at once very wary, and very few !" VI. By far the ablest of these seven Essays is from the pen of the "KEV. MAKE PATTISON, B.D., Eector of Lincoln College, Oxford." It purports to be an Essay on the " TENDENCIES OF RELIGIOUS THOUGHT IN ENG- LAND, 1688 1750;" but it can hardly be said to correspond with that description. In the concluding paragraph, the learned writer gives to his work a dif- ferent name. It is declared to be " The past History of the Theory of Belief in the Church of England"^ But neither the title at the head, nor the title at the tail of the Essay, gives any adequate notion of the Author's purpose. Had we met with this production, isolated, in the pages of a Eeview, we should have probably passed it by as the work of a clever man, who, after amusing himself to some extent with the Theological literature of the last century, had desired to preserve some record of his reading ; and had here thrown his random jot- tings into connected form. There is a racy freshness in a few of Mr. Pattison's sketches, (as in his account of Bentley's controversy with Collins s ,) which forcibly p. 329. s pp. 307-309. PATTISON.] TO BE JUDGED BY HIS OWN STANDARD. CXlii suggests the image of an artist whose pencil cannot rest amid scenery which stimulates his imagination. To be candid, we are inclined to suspect that, in the first instance, something of this sort was in reality all that the learned author had in view. But we are reluctantly precluded from putting so friendly a con- struction on these seventy-six pages. Not only does Mr.Pattison's Essay stand between Mr. Goodwin's open endeavour to destroy confidence in the writings of Moses, and Professor Jowett's laborious insinuations that the Bible is only an ordinary book ; but it claims a common purpose and intention with both those writers. Mr. Pattison's avowed object is "to illus- trate the advantage derivable to the cause of religious and moral truth, from a free handling, in a becoming spirit, of subjects peculiarly liable to suffer by the re- petition of conventional language, and from traditional methods of treatment 1 ." We proceed therefore to examine his labours by the aid of the clue which he has himself supplied. For when nine editions of a book appear in quick succession, prefaced by a de- scription of the spirit in which " it is hoped that the volume will be received," it seems a pity that the author should not be judged by the standard of his own choosing. "We are surprised then to find how slightly Mr. Pattison's Essay fulfils its avowed purpose. The learned author does not, in fact, directly "handle" the class of subjects referred to, at all: or if he does, it is achieved in a couple of pages. And yet it is not difficult to point out the part which his Essay performs in the general scheme of this guilty volume. With whatever absence of " concert or comparison" the * Notice prefixed to Essays and Reviews. i [MR. authors may have severally written, the fatal effect of their combined endeavours is not more apparent than the part sustained by each Essay singly in pro- moting it. While Mr. Goodwin demolishes the Law, and Dr. Williams disbelieves the Prophets; while Professor Powell denies the truth of Miracles, and Professor Jowett evacuates the authority of Holy Scripture alto- gether ; while Dr. Temple substitutes the inner light of Conscience for an external Eevelation; and Mr. Wilson teaches men how they may turn the substance of Holy Scripture into a shadow, evade the plain force of language, and play fast and loose with those safe- guards which it has been ever thought that words supply ; Mr. Pattison, reviewing the last century and a half of our own Theological history, labours hard to produce an impression that, here also "all is vanity and vexation of spirit." He calls off our attention from .the Bible, and bids us contemplate the unlovely aspect of the English "religious world" from the Revolution of 1688 down to the publication of the ' Tracts for the Times,' in 1833 u . " Ee content for a while, (he seems to say,) to disregard the prize ; and observe the combatants instead. Listen to the his- torian of moral and religious progress," while he de- picts " decay of religion, licentiousness of morals, public corruption, profaneness of language, a day of rebuke and blasphemy." Come attend to me ; and I will draw the likeness of "an age destitute of depth or earnestness; an age whose poetry was without romance, whose philosophy was without insight, and whose public men were without character ; an age of 4 light without love,' whose ' very merits were of the u p. 255. PATTTSON.] GENERAL IMPRESSION CONVEYED. CXV earth, earthy.' " (p. 254.) " If we would understand our own position in the Church, and that of the Church in the age ; if we would hold any clue through the maze of religious pretension which surrounds us ; we cannot neglect those immediate agencies in the pro- duction of the present, which had their origin towards the beginning of the eighteenth century." (p. 256.) Let us then " trace the descent of religious thought, and the practical working of the religious ideas," (p. 255,) through some of the phases they have more recently assumed. You shall see the Apostles tried on a charge " of giving false witness in the case of the Eesurrection of JESUS ;" (p. 303 ;) and pronounced "not guilty," by one whose " name once commanded universal homage among us ;" but who now, (!) with South (! !) and Barrow, (! ! !) " excites perhaps only a smile of pity." (p. 265.) You shall be shewn Bent- ley in his attack on Collins the freethinker, enjoying "rare sport," "rat-hunting in an old rick;" and " laying about him in high glee, braining an authority at every blow." (p. 308.) " Coarse, arrogant, and abusive, with all Bentley's worst faults of style and temper, this masterly critique is decisive." (p. 307.) And yet, you are not to rejoice ! " The ' Discourse of Freethinking' was a small tract published in 1713 by Anthony Collins, a gentleman whose high personal character and general respectability seemed to give a weight to his words, which assuredly they do not carry of themselves." (p. 307.) [Why, the man ought to have been an Essayist and Ee viewer !]..." By 1 freethinking' " he does but " mean liberty of thought, the right of bringing all received opinions what- soever to the touchstone of reason :" (p. 307 :) [a liberty which has evidently disappeared from English Litera- i2 CXV1 GENERAL IMPRESSION CONVEYED [MR. ture : a right which no man dares any longer exercise under pain of excommunication !] " Collins was not a sharper, and would have disdained practices to which Bentley stooped for the sake of a professorship." (p. 310.) [0 high-minded Collins !] " The dirt endea- voured to be thrown on Collins will cleave to the hand that throws it." (p. 309.) [0 dirty Bentley !] And though " Collins's mistakes, mistranslations, miscon- ceptions, and distortions are so monstrous, that it is difficult for us now, forgetful how low classical learn- ing had sunk, to believe that they are mistakes, and not wilful errors," (p. 308,) yet " Addison, the pride of Oxford, had done no better. In his ' Essay on the Evidences of Christianity,' Addison i assigns as grounds for his religious belief, stories as absurd as that of the Cock- lane ghost, and forgeries as rank as Ireland's < Yortigern ;' puts faith in the lie about the thunder- ing legion; is convinced that Tiberius moved the Senate to admit JESUS among the gods; and pro- nounces the letter of Agbarus, King of Edessa, to be a record of great authority.' " (p. 307, quoting Ma- caulay's Essays.} All this and much more you shall see. Eemember that it is the history of your imme- diate forefathers which you will be contemplating, the morality of the professors of religion during the last century, " the past history of the theory of Belief in the Church of England !" (p. 329.) The curtain falls ; and now, pray how do you like it? I invite you, in conclusion, to "take the religious literature of the present day, as a whole ; and endeavour to make out clearly on what basis Eevelation is supposed by it to rest; whether on Authority, on the Inward Light, on Eeason, on self- evidencing Scripture, or on the combination of the PATTISON.] BY MR. PATTISON's ESSAY. CXvil four, or some of them, and in what proportions." (p. 329.) .... After this, you are at liberty to pro- ceed to read 'Jowett on Inspiration,' with what appetite you may ! Such is the impression which Mr. Pattison's Essay is calculated to leave behind. That he had no wicked intention in writing it, no one who knows him could for an instant suppose : but the effect of what he has done is certainly to set his reader adrift on a dreary sea of doubt. Discomfort and dissatisfaction, confu- sion and dismay, are the prevailing sentiments with which a religious mind, unfortified with learning, will rise from the perusal of the present Essay : while the irreligious man will study it with a sneer of ill- concealed satisfaction. The marks of Mr. Pattison's own better knowledge, (sufficiently evident to the quick eye of one who is aware of the writer's high theological attainments ;) the indications of a truer individual judgment, (discoverable throughout by one who knows the author's private worth, and is himself happily in possession of the clue by which to escape from this tangled labyrinth :) these escape the com- mon reader. To him, all is dreary doubt. I must perforce deal with Mr. Pattison's labours in a very summary manner. The chief complaint I have to make against him is that he has altogether omitted what, to you and to me, is the most important feature of the century which he professes to describe, namely, the vast amount of lofty Churchmanship, the unbroken Catholic tradition, which, with no small amount of general short - coming, is to be traced throughout the eighteenth century. To insinuate that the return to Catholic principles began with the publir cation of the < Tracts for the Times,' (p. 259,) in 1833, CXviii CATHOLIC TEACHING UNBROKEN. [MR. is simply to insinuate what is not true. But Mr. Pattison does more than ' insinuate.' He states it openly. " In constructing Catenae Patrum" (he says,) " the Anglican closes his list with Waterland or Brett, and leaps at once to 1833." (p. 255.) Now, since Waterland died in 1740 and Brett in 1743, it is clear that, (according to Mr. Pattison,) a hundred years and upwards have to be cleared per saltwm : during which the lamp of Eeligion in these kingdoms had gone fairly out. But how stands the truth? At least four " Catenae Patrum" are given in the "Tracts for the Times x ;" not one of which is closed with "Waterland or Brett. On the contrary, in the two former Catenae (beginning with Jewel and Hooker) the names of these supposed ' ultimi Eomanorum' occur little more than half way! . . . "Les faits," therefore, (as usual with i Essayists and Ee viewers,') " les faits sont contraires" It would be enough to cite Bethell's 1 General View of the Doctrine of Eegeneration in Bap- tism,' which appeared in 1822; and Hugh James Eose's i Discourses on the Commission and Duties of the Clergy,' which were preached in 1826. But the case against Mr. Pattison, as I shall presently shew, is abundantly stronger. In short, to exclude from sight, as this author so laboriously endeavours to do, the Catholic element of the last century and the early part of the present, is extremely unfair. There had never failed in the Church of England a succession of illustrious men, who transmitted the Divine fire unimpaired, down to yesterday. Quenched in some places, the flame burned up brightly and beautifully in others. As for the < Tracts for the Times,' they speedily assumed * Nos. 74, 76, 78, 81. PATTISON.] THE CHURCIi's HISTORY A WARFARE. a party character : and by the time that ninety- seven of them had appeared, the series was discontinued by the desire of the Diocesan, who was yet the friend of its authors. The Tracts do not all, by any means, represent Anglican (i.e. Catholic) Theology. They were written by a very few men ; while the greatest of those who had materially promoted the Catholic movement out of which they sprang, (not which they occasioned^} were dissatisfied with them ; would not write in them; kept aloof; and foresaw and foretold what would be the issue of such teaching 7 . And yet, i Tracts for the Times ' did more good than evil, I suppose, on the whole. The truth is, that in every age, (and the last cen- tury forms no exception to the rule,) the history of the Church on Earth has been a warfare. Mr. Patti- son says contemptuously, " The current phrases of 1 the bulwarks of our faith,' ' dangerous to Christianity,' are but instances of the habitual position in which we assume ourselves to stand. Even more philosophic minds cannot get rid of the idea that Theology is polemical." (p. 301.) And pray, whom have we to thank, but such writers as Mr. Pattison, that it is so ? I am one of the many who at this hour are (unwillingly) neglecting constructive tasks in order to be destructive with Mr. Pattison and his colleagues ! So long as In- fidelity abounds, our service must be a warfare. l The Prince of Peace ' foretold as much, when He prophesied to His Disciples that it would be found that He had " brought on earth, a sword." As much was typically adumbrated, I suspect, (begging Mr. Jowett's pardon,) when, at the rebuilding of the walls of the Holy City, "they which builded on the wall, and they that bare y I allude particularly to the late Hugh James Rose, B.D. CXX UNIQUE POSITION OF OUR CHURCH. [MR. burdens, with those that laded, every one with one of his hands wrought in the work, and with the other hand held a weapon. For the builders, every one had his sword girded by his side, and so builded z ." May I not add that the unique position which the Church of England has occupied, ever since her great Eefor- mation in respect both of Doctrine and of Discipline three centuries ago, is of a nature which must in- evitably subject her to constant storms? An object of envy to ' Protestant Europe,' and of hatred to Eome ; exposed to the hostility of the State, (which would trample her under foot, if it dared,) and viewed with ill-concealed animosity by Dissenters of every class \ admitting into her Ministry men of very diverse views, and restraining them by scarcely any discipline ; allowing perfect freedom, aye, licen- tiousness of discussion, and tolerating the expression of almost any opinions, except those of Essayists and Reviewers : how shall the Church of England fail to adopt ' the bulwarks of the faith ' for one of her cur- rent phrases ? how not, many a time, deem ' dangerous to Christianity ' the speculations of her sons ? . . . . Nay, polemics must prevail; if only because, in a certain place, the Divine Speaker already quoted foretells the partial, (if not the entire^} obscuration even of true Doctrine, in that pathetic exclamation of His, "When the Son of Man cometh, shall He find the faith upon the Earth a ?" In the face of all this, it is to confuse and mystify the ordinary reader to draw such a picture of the last century as Mr. Pattison has drawn here. As dismal a view might be easily taken of the first, of the second, of the third, of the fourth, of the fifth century. What Mr. New- 1 Neh. iv. 17, 18. St. Luke xviii. 8. PATTISON.] THE VISION OF THE EYE OF FAITH. CXX1 man once designated as " ancient, holy, and happy times," might very easily indeed be so exhibited as to seem times of confusion and discord, blasphemy and rebuke. A discouraging picture might be drawn, (I suppose,) of every age of the Church's history. But in, and by itself, it would never be quite a true picture. For to the eye of Faith there is ever to be descried, amid the hurly-burly of the storm, the Ark of CHRIST'S Church floating peacefully over the trou- bled waters, and making steadily for that Heavenly haven " where it would be." .... Yes, there is ever some blessed trace discoverable, that this Life of ours is watched over by One whose Name is Love ; whe- ther we con the chequered page of History, Eccle- siastical or Civil ; or summon to our aid the story of our own narrow experience. From the fierce and fiery opposition, Good is ever found to have resulted ; and that Good was abiding. Out of the weary conflict ever has issued Peace ; and that Peace was of the kind which i passeth all understanding ;' a Peace which the world cannot give, no, nor take away. There are abundant traces that in all that has happened to the Church of CHRIST, from first to last, there has been a purpose and a plan ! . . . . No one knows this better than Mr. Pattison. No man in Oxford could have drawn out what I have been saying into a convincing reality, better than he, had he yielded to the instincts of a good heart, and directed his fine abilities to their lawful scope. The character of the last dismal century, Mr. Patti- son has drawn with sufficient vividness : but that century armed the Church, (as we shall be presently reminded,) on the side of the " Evidences of Eeli- gion ;" and if it taught her the insufficiency of such CXXli GAIN OF THE LAST THREE CENTURIES. [MR. a method, the eighteenth century did its work. Above all, it produced Bishop Sutler. The previous century, (the seventeenth,) witnessed the supremacy of fana- ticism. It saw the monarchy laid prostrate, and the Church trampled under foot, and the use of the Liturgy prohibited by Act of Parliament. The " Sufferings of the Clergy " fill a folio volume. But this was the cen- tury which produced our great Caroline Divines ! From Bp. Andre wes to Bp. Pearson, what a galaxy of names ! Moreover, on the side of the Eomish controversy, the seventeenth century supplied the Church's armoury for ever, Stillingfleet, who died in the year 1699, in a manner closing the strife. The sixteenth century witnessed the Eeformation of Eeligion, with all its inevitably attendant evils ; an unsettled faith, gross public and private injustice, an illiterate parochial clergy: yet how goodly a body of sound Divinity did the controversies of that age call forth ! The same century witnessed the rise of Puritanism ; but then, it produced Eichard Hooker! What was the cha- racter of the century which immediately preceded the Eeformation, the fifteenth? .... A tangled web of good and evil has been the Church's history from the very first. The counterpart of what we read of in Eusebius and Socrates is to be witnessed among our- selves at the present day, and will doubtless be wit- nessed to the end ! But then, in days of deepest dis- couragement, faithful men have never been found wanting to the English Church, (no, nor GOD helping her, ever will!) who, like the late Hugh James Eose, " when hearts were failing, bade us stir up the gift that was in us, and betake ourselves to our true Mother." Meanwile, such names as George Herbert and Nicholas Farrar, Ken and Nelson, Leighton and PATTTSON.] CHARACTER OF THE LAST AGE. CXxiii Bishop Wilson, shine through the gloom like a con- stellation of quiet stars; to which the pilgrim lifts his weary eye, and feels that he is looking up to Heaven ! When the spirit of the Age comes into collision with the spirit of the Gospel, the result is sometimes (as in the earliest centuries,) portentous ; sometimes, (as in the last,) simply deplorable and grievous. The battle which seems to be at present waging is of a different nature. Physical Science has undertaken the perilous task of hardening herself against the GOD of Nature. We shall probably see this unnatural strife prolonged for many years to come ; to be suc- ceeded by some fresh form of irreligion. Somewhat thus, I apprehend, will it be to the end : and the men of every age will in those conflicts find their best pro- bation ; and it will still be the office of the Creator, in this way to separate the Light from the Darkness, until the dawn of the everlasting Morning ! It is not proposed to enter into the Eationalism of the last century, therefore ; or to inquire into the causes of the barren lifeless shape into which Theology then, for the most part, threw itself. I have never made that department of Ecclesiastical History my study : and who does not turn away from what is joy- less and dreary, to greener meadows, and more fertile fields? It shall only be remarked that when the Credibility of Eeligion is the thing generally denied, Evidences will of necessity be the form which much of the Theological writing of the Day will assume. Let it not be imagined for an instant that one is the apologist of what Mr. Pattison has characterized as "an age of Light without Love." (p. 254.) But I insist that the theological picture of the last century CXX1V REVIEW OF THE DIVINITY [MR. is incomplete, until attention has been called to the many redeeming features which it presents, and which are all of a re-assuring kind. Thus, in the department of sacred scholarship, who can forget that our learned John Mill, in 1707, gave to the world that famous edition of the New Testament which bears his name, after thirty years of patient toil? Who can forget our obligations in Hebrew, to Kennicott? (17181783.) Humphrey Hody's great work on the Text, and older Yersions of Holy Scripture, was published in 1705. Bingham's im- mortal ' Origines' began to appear in 1708; and William Cave lived till 1714. In the same connexion should be mentioned Bp. Gibson, who died in 1748, and Humphrey Prideaux, whose ' Connexion' is dated 1715. Pococke died on the eve of the commencement of the last century (1691) ; but so great a name casts a bright beam through the darkness which Mr. Pattison describes so forcibly. Archbishop Wake died in 1737. Warton, the author of i Anglia Sacra,' died at the age of 35 in 1695. Survey next the field of Divinity, properly so called ; and in the face of Mr. Pattison's rash statement that "we have no classical Theology since 1660," (p. 265,) take notice that Bp. Bull, one of the greatest Divines which the Church of CHRIST ever bred, did not begin to write until 1669, and lived to the year 1709. This was the man, remember, who received the thanks of the whole Gallican Church for his l Judicium Ecclesise Catholicse,' (i. e. his learned assertion of our SAVIOUR'S GoDhead b ;) the man whose writings would have won him the reverence and affection of Athanasius and b See Nelson's Life of Bull, p. 329, &c. PATTISON.] OF THE LAST CENTURY. CXXV Augustine and Basil, had he lived in their day ; for he had a mind like theirs. Bp. Pearson did not die till 1686. ' Bp. Beveridge wrote till his death in 1707. Fell, the learned editor of Cyprian, died in 1686 : Stillingfleet lived till 1699. Wall's History of In- fant Baptism appeared in 1705. Wheatly, who led the way in liturgical inquiry, was alive till 1742 ; and Bp. Patrick was a prolific writer till his death in 1707. May we not also claim the excellent and learned Grabe as altogether one of ourselves ? Such names do not require special comment. They are their own best eulogium, and present a high title to their country's gratitude. The name of Prebendary Lowth, (the author of an excellent commentary on the prophets,) reminds us that there was living till 1732 one who fully appreciated the calling of an Interpreter of GOD'S Word c . Bishop Lowth his son, in his great work, (1753,) recovered the forgotten principle of Hebrew poetry. To convince ourselves what a spirit existed in some quarters, (notwithstand- ing the general spread of the very opinions which ' Essayists and Keviewers' have been so industriously reproducing in our own day,) it is only necessary to transcribe the title-page of S. Parker's excellent 'Bibliotheca Biblica,' a Commentary on the Penta- teuch, 1720 1735; ' gathered out of the genuine writings of Fathers, Ecclesiastical Historians, and Acts of Councils down to the year of our LORD 451, being that of the fourth General Council; and lower, as occasion may require.' That learned man designed to achieve a Commentary on the whole Bible on the same laborious plan ; but his labours and his life, (at the age of 50,) were brought to an end in 1730. Dr. Water- c See his admirable Preface. CXXvi REVIEW OF THE DIVINITY [MR. land, born in 1683, and Dr. Jackson, born in 1686, two great names ! died respectively in 1740 and 1763. In 1778, appeared Dr. Townson's admirable ' Discourses on the Gospels. 5 The author lived till 1792. Pious Bp.Horne (17301792) has left the best evidence of his ability as a Divine in the Intro- duction to his Commentary on the Psalms. Jones of Nayland is found to have lived till 1800. Bp. Horsley, a great champion of orthodoxy of belief, as well as an excellent commentator, critic, and Sermon writer, lived till 1806. Not seven years have elapsed since there was to be seen among ourselves a venerable Divine, who was declared in 1838, by the chief pro- moter of the i Tracts for the Times,' to have " been reserved to report to a forgetful generation what was the Theology of their Fathers d ." Martin Joseph Eouth, died in 1854, after completing a century of years. In 1832 appeared his i Scriptorum Ecclesiasti- corum Opuscula.' His ' Eeliquee Sacra3 ? had appeared in 1814. The work was undertaken so far back as 1788. The last volume appeared in 1848, and con- cluded with a Catena of authorities on the great question which was denied by the unbelievers of the last century, and is denied by the ' Essayists and Beviewers' of this 6 . Here then was one who had borne steady witness in the Church of England to what is her genuine Catholic teaching from a period dating long before the birth of any one who was con- cerned with the f Tracts for the Times.' d Newman's dedication of his * Lectures on Romanism and popular Protestantism.' e See the ' Monitum' prefixed to Dr. Routh's Testimonies De Auctoritate S. Scripturce Ante-Nicana. Reliqq. Sacra, vol. v. p. 335. PATTISON.] OF THE LAST CENTURY. CXXVU More ancient names present themselves as furnish- ing exceptions to Mr. Pattison's dreary sentence. From Abp. Potter and Leslie, down to Abp. Laurence and Van Mildert, how many might yet be specified ! "We have not hitherto mentioned Abp. Leighton, who died in 1684 : Hickes, Johnson, and Brett, who sur- vived respectively till 1715, 1725, and 1743: the truly apostolic Wilson, Bishop of Sodor and Man (1663 1755,) a name, by the way, which deserves far more distinct and emphatic notice than can here be bestowed upon it; and Nelson, the pious author of * Fasts and Festivals, 7 who died in 1715. We had good Iz. Walton, till 1683, and holy Ken till 1711. Richard Hele, author of ' Select Offices,' (which ap- peared in 1717,) is a name not forgotten in Heaven certainly, though little known on Earth ; while Kettle- well and Scandret begin a Catena of which good Bishop Jolly would be only one of the later links. Meanwhile, the reader is requested to take notice that there were many other excellent Divines of the period under consideration, (as Long and Horbery ;) men who made no great figure indeed, but who were evi- dently persons of great piety and sound judgment ; while their learning puts that of ' Essayists and Be- viewers' altogether to the blush. But I have reserved for the last, a truly noble name, which Mr. Pattison, (with singular bad taste, to say no worse,) mentions only to disparage. I al- lude to Dr. Joseph Butler, Bishop of Durham ; whose 1 Analogy of Beligion, Natural and Bevealed, to the Constitution and Course of Nature, 5 remains, at the end of a century, unanswerable as an Apology, unrivalled as a text-book, unexhausted as a mine of suggestive thought. It may be convenient for an CXXvlii REV. THOMAS LONG OF FINMERE. [MR. Essayist and Ee viewer' to declare that " the merit of the Analogy lies in its want of originality." (p. 286.) There was not much originality perhaps in the remark that an apple falls to the ground. Whatever the faults of the Analogy, that work, under GOD, saved the Church. However " depressing to the soul" (p. 293.) of Mr. Pattison, it is nevertheless a book which will invigorate Faith, and brighten Hope, and comfort Charity herself, long after the spot where he and I shall sleep has been forgotten : long after our very names will be hard to find. * Let me turn from this illustrious individual, to one whose very name is perhaps unknown. One loves to think that there are at all times plenty of good men, who are doing GOD'S work in the world, in quiet corners ; but whose names do not perhaps rise to the surface and emerge into notice, throughout the whole of a long life. Conversely, how many must there be, the blessing of whose example and influence has ex- tended down from the surface, (where perhaps it was acknowledged and appreciated by all,) until it made itself felt by the humblest units of a lowly country parish ! . . . The obscure village of Finmere, (in Ox- fordshire,) was so happy as to enjoy for its Eector, from 1734 to 1771, the Eev. Thomas Long, M.A., " a man," (says the Eegister,) " of the most exemplary piety and charity." He presented to the church twelve acres of land, " charging it with a yearly payment of fifteen shillings to the Clerk, as a recompense to him for attending on the Fasts and Festivals ; and ordering six- pence to be deducted from the payment, for each time the Clerk failed to attend on those days, unless let by sickness." About ten years ago, there was found in the hands of a labouring man at Finmere, a solitary PATTISON.] PIETY AND RELIGION OF THE LAST CENTURY. CXX1X copy of a printed " Lecture, " by this individual, " ad- dressed to the young persons" of the village, (1762,) which begins as follows: "I have usually, once every three years, gone through a course of Lectures upon the Catechism; but considering my age and great infirmities, it is not very probable I should con- tinue this practice any longer. I am willing therefore, as a small monument of my care and affection for you, to print the last of these Lectures," &c What heart so dull as not to admit that men like this, (and there were many of them !) are quite good enough to redeem an age from indiscriminate opprobrium and unmitigated contempt ? Shall we omit, after this enumeration, to notice the singular fact that Discipline still lingered on, even the discipline of public penance, until within the memory of aged persons yet living? Merchants in the city of London wore mourning during Lent, within the present century. It is only within the last thirty years that formulas expressive of reliance on the Divine blessing have been expunged from bills- of-lading, and similar printed documents. In the beginning of the period discoursed of by Mr. Pattison, (viz, in the year 1714,) the excellent Eobert Nelson, in " An Address to Persons of Quality and Estate," proposed as objects for the generosity of the affluent, such institutions as the following : " the creating of Charity Schools," of " Parochial Libraries in the meanly endowed Cures throughout England," of "a superior School for training up Schoolmasters and Schoolmistresses," and of " Colleges or Seminaries for the Candidates of Holy Orders." He suggested that there should be " Houses of Hospitality for entertaining Strangers ;" " Suffragan Bishops, both at home and in the Western Planta.- k CXXX CATHOLIC SPIRIT IN THE LAST CENTURY. [MR. tions;" "Colleges for receiving Converts from Po- pery." Some of Nelson's suggestions read like vati- cinations. He points out the need of Ladies' Colleges, of a Hospital for Incurables, of Eagged Schools, (for what else is a school " for the distressed children called the Black-guard?"}, and of Houses of Mercy for the reception of penitent fallen women. Is it right to speak of a century which could freely contemplate such works as these and carry into execution many of them f , without some allusion to the leaven which was at work beneath the dry crust of Society ? the living Catholic energy which neither the average dulness of the pulpit could quench, nor the lifeless morality which had been popularly substituted for Divinity could destroy ? "We are abundantly prepared therefore for Mr. Pat- ti son's admission that " public opinion was throughout on the side of the defenders of Christianity :" (p. 313 :) that, "however a loose kind of Deism might be the tone of fashionable circles, it is clear that distinct dis- belief of Christianity was by no means the general state of the public mind. The leaders of the Low- Church and "Whig party were quite aware of this. Notwithstanding the universal complaints of the High- Church party of the prevalence of infidelity, it is ob- vious that this mode of thinking was confined to a very small section of society." (p. 313.) And surely it should not escape us that the peculiar form which unbelief assumed during the period under discussion, resulted in a benefit to the Church. " The eighteenth century," (says our author,) " enforced the ' " In 1781, the first Sunday School was established in England by Eobert Kaikes, a publisher and bookseller in Gloucester." National Society's Circular. PATTISON.] INEXCUSABLE STATEMENTS. CXXxi truths of Natural Morality with a solidity of argu- ment and variety of proof which they have not re- ceived since the Stoical epoch, if then." (p. 296.) "The career of the Evidential School, its success and its failure, has enriched the history of Doctrine," not indeed " with a complete refutation of that method as an instrument of theological investigation," (p. 297,) (witness the immortal ' Analogy' of Bishop Butler !) but, certainly with very precious experience. That age has bequeathed to the Church a vast body of con- troversial writing which she could ill afford to part with at the present day. So far, we have little to complain of in Mr. Pat- tison's Essay, except on the side of omission. But for the fatal circumstance of the company in which the learned writer comes abroad, and the avowed pur- pose with which he is found there, a charitable con- struction might have been put upon most of the pre- sent performance. The following sentences, on the other hand, are not excusable. "In the present day when a godless orthodoxy threatens, as in the fifteenth century, to extinguish religious thought (!) altogether, and nothing is al- lowed in the Church of England but the formulae of past thinkings, which have long lost all sense of any kind, (!) it may seem out of season to be bringing forward a misapplication of common-sense in a by- gone age." (p. 297.) The " orthodoxy" of the fifteenth century is some- thing new to us. So is the prospect " in the present day," of an " extinction of religious thought," the result of " godless orthodoxy." The fault, or the misfortune of the Church of England then, is, that she retains " the formulce of past thinking s } which ham long k2 cxxxii MR. FATTISON'S OPINIONS. [MR. lost all sense of any kind" (p. 297.) If this does not mean the English Book of Common Prayer, what does it mean ? And if it means the English Prayer -Book, how can Mr. Pattison retain his commission in the Church of England, and exclusively employ a Book which he presumes so to characterize ? But this is ad hominem. The learned writer pro- ceeds : " There are times and circumstances when religious ideas will be greatly benefited by being submitted to the rough and ready tests by which busy men try what comes in their way ; by being made to stand their trial, and be fully canvassed, coram populo. As Poetry is not for the critics, so Eeligion is not for the Theologians." (p. 297.) No doubt. But does Mr. Pattison then really mean to tell us that the proper tribunal before which the Creeds, (for example,) of the Catholic Church, our Communion and Baptismal offices, the structure of our Calendar, and so forth, should "stand their trial, and be freely canvassed" is, " coram populo ?" A " rough and ready test," this, of Truth, I grant ; aye, a very " rough" one. But was it ever, can it eve"r be, a fair test ? Let us hear Mr. Pattison out, on the subject of [Religion : " When it is stiffened into phrases, and these phrases are declared to be objects of reverence but not of in- telligence, it is on the way to become a useless encum- brance ; the rubbish of the past; blocking the road. Theology then retires into the position it occupies in the Church of Eome at present, an unmeaning frost- work of dogma, out of all relation to the actual history of Man." (pp. 297-8.) It cannot be necessary to discuss such sentiments. With Mr. Pattison personally, I will not condescend PATTISOS.] HOPEFUL SIGNS. CXXXlii to discuss them, until he has divested himself of that " useless encumbrance," and ceased to employ daily " that rubbish of the past," which yet the two letters he subjoins to his name indicate, in the most solemn manner, his reverence for ; and which alone make him Revcrcndus. But speaking to others, speaking to you, my friends, let me point out that " the tendencies of irreligious thought in England, 1860-1861," are in- deed in a direction where the Prayer-Book is found to be effectually "blocking up the road." (pp. 297-8.) Mr. Pattison is simply dreaming, haunted by the phantoms of his own brain, and talking the language of the den, when he complains that "the Philo- sophy, now petrified into tradition, may once have been a vital Faith; but now that" it is "withdrawn from public life," has ceased to be a " social influence." (p. 298.) And when he would exalt the last century at the expence of the present, (pp. 298-9,) he shews nothing so much as the morbid state of his own ima- gination, the disordered condition of his own mind. He has blinded himself; and he will not or he cannot see in the healthier tone of our popular Divinity, in the increased attention to the study of Holy Scrip- ture, in the impulse which Liturgical inquiries have received since Wheatly's useful volume appeared ; or again, in the immense number of Schools and Churches which have been recently built, in the marvellous change for the better which has come over the Clergy of the Church of England within the pre- sent century, in the vast development of our Colonial Episcopate within the last few years, in the rapid increase of Institutions connected more or less directly with the Church, and I will add, in the conspicuous CXXXIV A TEST OF THE TEMPER OF THE AGE. [MR. loyalty of the nation; a practical refutation of his own injurious insinuations; a blessed earnest that GOD has not forsaken us; and that we shall yet be a blessing to the "World ! The people of England, I am persuaded, are in the main very sincerely attached to their Prayer-Book. To them, it is not " a useless encumbrance, the rubbish of the past, blocking the road." Nay, there is a "rough and ready test" of what is the current temper of the age in things reli- gious, to which I appeal with infinite satisfaction. I mean, the general burst of execration with which " Essays and Reviews" have been received, from one end of the kingdom to the other. The censure of all the Bishops, and of both Houses of Convocation ; re-echoed, as it has been, through all ranks of the community, is a great fact ; a fact which I cordially recommend to Mr. Pattison's attention, when he would philosophize on the religious tendencies of his countrymen. The age we live in, (Heaven knows !) has many drawbacks. What age of the Church has not had them ? The fatal disposition which prevails to relax all the ancient safeguards, the desire to tamper yet further with the Law of Marriage, and to desecrate the Christian Sabbath, these are grievous features of the times; which may well occasion alarm and create perplexity. But nothing of the kind should ever make us despond ; much less despair. There is One above "who is over all, GOD blessed for ever." Shall we not rather seek to employ these advantages which we have, with a single heart, a single eye to GOD'S glory; and leave the issue, with a generous confidence, to Him ? .... It was thus that the great philosophic Divine of the last century comforted him- self, amid darker days than we shall ever experience. PA.TTISON.] BISHOP BUTLER IN 1751. CXXXV "As different ages have been distinguished by dif- ferent sorts of particular errors and vices, the deplor- able distinction of ours," (he said,) "is an avowed scorn of Eeligion in some, and a growing disregard to it in the generality." "It is impossible for me, my brethren," (Butler is still addressing the clergy of his Diocese, 1751,) "to forbear lamenting with you the general decay of Eeligion in this nation ; which is now observed by every one, and has been for some time the complaint of all serious persons. The influ- ence of it is more and more wearing out of the minds of men ;" while " the number of those who profess themselves unbelievers, increases, and with their number their zeal. Zeal, it is natural to ask, for what?. "Why truly for nothing, but against every- thing that is sacred and good among us g ." And yet, in days dark as those, Piety could suggest that "no Christian should possibly despair;" and Faith could assign as the reason of this blessed confidence, "For He who hath all poiver in Heaven and Earth, hath pro- mised that He will be with us to the end of the world." It is time to dismiss Mr. Pattison's Essay. In doing so, I will not waste my time and yours by carp- ing at the many errors of detail into which he has (not inexcusably) fallen. These are the accidents, not the essence of his paper. The root of bitterness with the Author is, clearly enough, the Theory of Re- ligious Belief in the Church of England. His conclud- ing words shew this plainly. The sting of the Essay is in the tail : " In the Catholic theory the feebleness of Eeason is met half-way, and made good by the authority of the Church. When the Protestants threw off this autho- s Primary Charge, at the end of his Sermons. CXXXV1 THE STIXG OF MR. PATTISON's [MR. rity, they did not assign to Eeason what they took from the Church, but to Scripture. Calvin did not shrink from saying that Scripture i shone sufficiently by its own light.' As long as this eould be kept to, the Protestant theory of belief was whole and sound. At least it was as sound as the Catholic. In both, Eeason, aided by spiritual illumination, performs the subordinate function of recognising the supreme au- thority of the Church, and of the Bible, respectively. Time, learned controversy, and abatement of zeal, drove the Protestants generally from the hardy but irrational assertion of Calvin. Every foot of ground that Scripture lost was gained by one or other of the three substitutes : Church-authority, the Spirit, or Eea- son. Church-authority was essayed by the Laudian divines, but was soon found untenable, for on that footing it was found impossible to justify the Eeforma- tion and the breach with Eome," [0 shame !] " The SPIRIT then came into favour along with Indepen- dency. But it was still more quickly discovered that on such a basis only discord and disunion eould be reared. There remained to be tried Common Eeason, carefully distinguished from recondite learning, and not based on metaphysical assumptions. To apply this instrument to the contents of Eevelation was the occupation of the early half of the eighteenth century ; with what success has been seen. In the latter part of the century the same Common Eeason was applied to the external evidences. But here the method fails in a first requisite, universality* for even the shal- lowest array of historical proof requires some book- learning to apprehend." (pp. 328-9.) Now all this is discreditable to Mr. Pattison as a Philosopher and as a Divine. When did Protestant PATTISON.] ESSAY, IS IN THE TAIL. CXXXVli England " throw off the authority" of the Church? What are Calvin's opinions to her ? How does < Inde- pendency,' ' Eationalism/ or any other unsound prin- ciple, affect us ? Look at our Prayer-Book. Is it not the same which it was from the beginning? The Sarum Use, reformed and revised, has been our un- broken heritage as Christian men, from the first. Es- sentially remodelled in the days of Edward VI., the recension of our "Laudian Divines" is, (by GOD'S great mercy !) still ours. What other teaching but that of the Book of Common Prayer , is, to this hour, the authoritative teaching of the Church of England ? Why insinuate there has been vicissitude of Theory, where notoriously there has been none ? Why imply that the storms which periodically sweep over the citadel of our Zion are effectual to remove the old foundations and to substitute new? What but a hollow heartless Scepticism can be the result of such an abominable passage as the foregoing ? "Whoever will take the religious literature of the present day as a whole, and endeavour to make out clearly on what basis Eevelation is supposed by it to rest, whether on Authority, on the Inward Light, on Eeason, on self-evidencing Scripture, or on the combi- nation of the four, or some of them, and in what pro- portions ; would probably find that he had undertaken a perplexing but not altogether profitless inquiry." (p. 329.) And so the Essay ends. With a short comment on the proposed problem, I also shall conclude. No one but a fool would set about the task which Mr. Pattison here proposes. The current " religious literature of the day" cannot be supposed, for an in- stant, to be an adequate exponent of the mind of the Church of England, or of any other Church. Eeve- CXXXviii THE CHURCH GIVES US THE BIBLE. [MR. lation rests, at this hour, on exactly the same basis on which it has always rested, and on which it will rest, to the end of time ; let the age be faithful, or faith- less, learned or unlearned, rationalizing or scien- tific, sceptical or superstitious, or whatever else you will. And if I am asked to explain myself, I would humbly say, (always submitting my own statements in such a matter to the judgment of the Bishops and Doctors of the Church of England,) that we receive the Bible on the authority of the Church. The Church teaches us by the concurrent voices of many Fathers, Doctors, Saints, how to in- terpret the Bible; and convinces us that the three Creeds which she delivers to us as her own indepen- dent tradition, may be proved thereby ; being in en- tire conformity with Holy Scripture, though not ori- ginally deduced from it. " Self- evidencing" is hardly a correct epithet to bestow upon Scripture. And yet, from the evidence which the New Testament sup- plies to the Old, and from the interpretation which it puts upon its teaching, we should not despair of proving the Truth of Eevelation, to one who had neither darkened the inward Light, nor perverted his Eeason. In truth, however, it is idle thus to speculate. We have been born into the world during the nineteenth Century, whether we wish it or not. "We have been nourished, (GoD be thanked !) in the bosom of the Christian Church, whether we would or no. The glory of the Gospel has informed our natural reason, and we cannot undo the blessed process, strive we as much as we will. The " inward Light," (as we call it,) is the lingering twilight of the Day of Creation, in the case of the heathen, the reflected ray of the noontide of the Gospel, even in the case of the modern unbeliever. PATTISON.] PROFESSOR JOWETt CHARACTERIZED. CXXX1X We cannot escape from these conditions of our being, although we may affect to ignore them, or pretend to turn our eyes the other way. No help however is to be rejected. No faculty of the soul need be denied the privilege of assisting to convince the doubting heart. The inward Light may not be disparagingly spoken of: for what if it should prove to be a ray sent down from the Father of Lights, to illumine the dark places of the soul ? The aid of Eeason is not to be excluded ; for what is Faith but the highest dictate of the Eea- son? Faith, (let us ever remember,) being opposed not to Reason, but to Sight ! . . . And who for a mo- ment supposes that we disparage the office of Eeason, because we speak of the authority of the Church, in controversies of Faith ? We simply proclaim the Church to be the appointed witness and keeper of Holy Writ; and when we are invited "to make out clearly on what basis Eevelation is supposed to rest," (p. 329,) we point, where else should we point? unhesitatingly to her unwavering witness from the beginning. VII. The Essay which brings up the rear in this very guilty volume is from the pen of the "EEV. BENJAMIN JOWETT, M.A., [Fellow and Tutor of Balliol College, and] Eegius Professor of Greek in the Uni- versity of Oxford," " a gentleman whose high per- sonal character and general respectability seem to give a weight to his words, which assuredly they do not carry of themselves 11 ." His performance is en- titled " ON THE INTERPRETATION or SCRIPTURE :" being, in reality, nothing else but a laborious denial of its Inspiration. h Rev. M. Pattison, in Essays and Reviews, p. 307. cxl MR. JOWETT'S PRINCIPLE [PROF. Mr. Jowett' s quarrel is with the whole body of Commentators on the Bible, ancient and modern; with the whole Church Catholic. He cannot endure the claim of that Book, (like its Divine object and Author,) to " a Name which is above every other Name." That Plato and Sophocles should be capable of but one method of Interpretation, and that the literal, while the Bible lays claim to a yet pro- founder meaning, so distresses the Eegius Professor of Greek, that he has appropriated to himself almost a quarter of the present volume, in order that he may cast laborious and systematic ridicule on the very supposition. Some parts of his method I propose pre- sently to submit to exactly the same "free handling " which he has himself applied to THE WORD OF GOD. In the meantime, since it is my intention not only to demon- strate the worthlessness of the structure which Mr. Jowett has with so much perverse industry here built up, by an examination of some parts of it in detail, but also to pull down as much of the fabric as I am able within a small compass, (the construction of something which it is hoped will prove more du- rable, being to be found in my Illrd and IVth, Yth and YIth Sermons,) I proceed at once to inspect the foundation-stone of his edifice ; and briefly to demon- strate its absolute insecurity. 1. Mr. Jowett' s fundamental principle is expressed in the following brief precept : " Interpret the Scripture like any other book." (p. 377.) To this favourite tune, (although he plays many intricate variations on it,) he invariably reverts in the end *. On this preliminary postulate therefore, which, at first sight, to a candid 1 pp. 338, 375, 420 top line, 428, &c. JOWETT.] OF INTERPRETATION ACCEPTED. CxK mind, seems fair enough, I proceed to remark as follows : Mr. Jowett's formula may be cheerfully and entirely accepted, apart from the sinister glosses which he im- mediately proceeds to put upon it. By all means " In- terpret the Scripture like any other book." Let us see to what result this principle will conduct us. As for the formula itself, I take the liberty to assume that it ought to mean somewhat as follows: " Ap- proach the volume of Holy Scripture with the same candour, and in the same unprejudiced spirit with which you would approach any other famous book of high antiquity. Study it with at least the same at- tention. Give at least equal heed to all its statements. Acquaint yourself at least as industriously with its method, and with its principle ; employing and apply- ing either, with at least equal fidelity, in its interpre- tation. Above all, beware of playing tricks with its plain language. Beware of suppressing any part of the evidence which it supplies as to its own meaning. Be truthful, and unprejudiced, and honest, and con- sistent, and logical, and exact throughout, in your work of Interpretation. ' INTERPRET SCRIPTURE LIKE ANY OTHER BOOK.' " Now, (not to be tedious,) if this were Mr. Jowett's principle, all further discussion would be at an end. The general question of the right method of inter- preting the Bible would be easily settled; but it would be hopelessly settled against the Regius Pro- fessor of Greek. As I have briefly shewn, (from p. 144 to p. 160 of the present volume,) our LORD and His Apostles openly and repeatedly claim for Scripture that very depth of meaning, that very ex- tent of signification, which Mr. Jowett so strenuously Cxlii THE ESSAYIST CHARACTERIZED. [PROF. maintains that it does not possess. This great fact, he prudently takes no notice of. He simply ignores it. Either he has overlooked it, through inadver- tency : or he has omitted it, as not perceiving its force and bearing on the question : or he has dis- ingenuously kept it back. He must choose between these three suppositions. If he has overlooked the fact on which I lay so much stress, he is a careless and incompetent reader. If he has failed to see its force and bearing on the question, he is a weak and illogical thinker. If he has deliberately suppressed it, knowing its fatal power, he is simply a dishonest man. To prevent offence, I may as well state freely that my entire conviction is that he is simply a weak and illogical person. My warrant for this opinion is especially the very sad performance of his now under consideration. It is clear however that the paraphrase above hazarded does not express Mr. Jowett's principle. " Interpret the Bible like any other book," means with him something else. And what it does mean, the Eeverend author does not suffer us to doubt. He shews that his meaning is, Interpret the Bible like any other book, FOR it is like any other book. I proceed to shew that this is Mr. Jowett's meaning. It becomes necessary however at once to introduce to the reader's notice the main inference which, (as already hinted,) flows from Mr. Jowett's favourite position. "Interpret Scripture like any other book," he says. His business is with the Interpretation of "the Jewish and Christian Scriptures;" and he begins by eagerly assuring us, and is strenuous in all that follows to make us believe, (but simply on a priori grounds!) that "the true glory and note JOWETT.] MR. JOWETT'S OPENING WORDS. cxliii of Divinity in these, is not that they have hidden, mysterious, or double meanings \ but a simple and universal one, which is beyond them and will survive them." (p. 332.) " Is it admitted," (he asks, at the end of many pages,) " that the Scripture has one and only one true meaning ?" (p. 368.) Let us hear what reasons the Eeverend author of this seventh Essay is able to produce in support of his favourite opinion. He approaches the subject from a respectful distance : (i) " It is a strange, though familiar fact," (such are the opening words of his Essay,) "that great differences of opinion exist respecting the Interpre- tation of Scripture." (p. 330.) < Familiar,' the fact is, certainly ; but why ' strange ?' A Book of many ages, of immense antiquity, of most varied cha- racter, treating of the unseen world, purporting to be a mysterious composition, and by all Christian men believed to have GOD for its true Author : a book which has come into collision with every form of human error, and has triumphed gloriously over every form of human opposition : how can it be thought ' strange' that the interpretation of such a book should have provoked " great differences of opinion ?" . . . Surely none but the weakest of thinkers, unless committed to the assumption that the Bible is like any other look, could ever have penned such a silly remark. (ii) "We do not at once see the absurdity of the same words having many senses, or free our minds from the illusion that the Apostle or Evangelist must have written with a reference to the creeds or con- troversies or circumstances of other times. Let it be considered, then, that this extreme variety of inter- cxliv MR. JOWETT'S REASONS FOR THINKING [PROP. pretation is found to exist in the case of no other look, but of the Scriptures only" (p. 334.) But the " phenomenon" which Mr. Jowett repre- sents as " so extraordinary that it requires an effort of thought to appreciate it," (Ibid.,) does not seem at all extraordinary to any one who does not begin by assuming that the Bible is " like any other book." If the Bible be inspired, then all is plain ! (iii) " Who would write a bulky treatise about the method to be pursued in interpreting Plato or Sopho- cles?" asks Mr. Jowett. (p. 378.) No one but a fool ! is the obvious reply. Plato and Sophocles are ordinary books ; and therefore are to be interpreted like any other book. The Bible not so, as we shall see by and by. Again, (iv) " Each writer, each successive age, has charac- teristics of its own, as strongly marked, or more strongly, than those which are found in the authors or periods of classical Literature. These differences are not to be lost in the idea of a Spirit from whom they proceed, or by which they were overruled. And therefore, illustration of one part of Scripture by another should be confined to writings of the same age and the same authors, except where the writings of different ages or persons offer obvious similarities. It may be said, further, that illustration should be chiefly derived, not only from the same author, but from the same writing, or from one of the same period of his life. For example, the comparison of St. John and the * synoptic' Gospels, or of the Gospel of St. John with the Eeve- lation of St. John, will tend rather to confuse than to elucidate the meaning of either" (pp. 382-3.) But really, in reply, it ought to suffice to point out that the result of the Church's experience for 1800 years JOWETT.] THAT THE BIBLE IS LIKE ANY OTHER BOOK. has been the very opposite of the Professor's. " The idea of a SPIRIT from whom they proceeded," is, to the thoughtful part of mankind, the only intelligible clue to the several books of Holy Scripture, from Genesis to Revelation ! Hence " the marginal references to the English Bible," (to which Mr. Jowett devotes a depre- ciatory half page,) so far from being the dangerous or useless apparatus which he represents, we hold to be an instrument of paramount importance for eliciting the true meaning of Holy Writ. In a word, he is reasoning about the Bible on the assumption that the Bible is like any other book. (v) "To attribute to St. Paul or the Twelve the abstract notion of Christian Truth which afterwards sprang up in the Catholic Church ... is the same error as to attribute to Homer the ideas of Thales or Heraclitus, or to Thales the more developed principles of Aristotle and Plato." (p. 354JNot if St. Paul and the Twelve were inspired. (vi) He bids us remark, with tedious emphasis, that although the same philological and historical diffi- culties which occur in Holy Scripture are found in profane writings, yet "the meaning of classical au- thors is known with comparative certainty; and the interpretation of them seems to rest on a scientific basis. . . . Even the Vedas and the Zendavesta, though beset by obscurities of language probably greater than are found in any portion of the Bible, are interpreted, at least by European scholars, according to fixed rules, and beginning to be clearly understood." (p. 335.) But at the end of several weak sentences, through which the preceding fallacy is elongated into distress- ing tenuity, who does not exclaim, The supposed " scientific" basis on which the interpretation of books 1 MR. JOWETT ASSUMES THAT [PROF. in general rests, is simply this ; (a) that being merely human , and (/3) not professing to have any other than their obvious literal meaning, they are all inter- preted in the obvious ordinary way ! For (), If any book were even suspected to be Divine, the manner of interpreting it would of course be different. Not that the "basis' 7 of such Interpre- tation would therefore cease to be " scientific !" Take the only known instance of such a Book. The Bible has been suspected (!) for 1800 years to be inspired. How has it fared with the Bible ? The Science of Biblical Interpretation is one of the noblest and best understood in the world. It has been professed and practised in every country of Christendom. The great Masters of this Science have been such men as Hilary of Poictiers, Basil and the two Gregories in Asia Minor, Epiphanius in Cyprus, Ambrose at Milan, John Chrysostom at Antioch, Jerome in Palestine, Augustine in Africa, Athanasius and Cyril at Alexandria. The names descend in an unbroken stream from the first four centuries of our sera down to the age of Andrewes, and Bull, and Pearson, and Mill. These men all interpret Scripture in one and the same way. Their principles are the same throughout. They were all Professors of the same Sacred Science. But (/3), If a book even professes to have a hidden meaning, it is interpreted by a special set of canons. Thus Dante's great poem * may not be read as Hume's History of England is read. To proceed, however. 1 See all this very ably and interestingly explained in an article reprinted from the 'Christian Remembrancer' (Jan. 1861,) On certain Characteristics of Holy Scripture, by the Rev. J. Gr. Ca- zenove, p. 11, &c. JOWETT.] THE BIBLE IS LIKE ANY OTHER BOOK. Cxlvli (vii) Sophocles is perhaps the most subtle of the ancient Greek poets. " Several schools of critics have commented on his works. To the Englishman he has presented one meaning, to the Frenchman another, to the German a third ; the interpretations have also dif- fered with the philosophical systems which the inter- preters espoused. To one the same words have ap- peared to bear a moral, to another a symbolical mean- ing; a third is determined wholly by the authority of old commentators; while there is a disposition to condemn the scholar who seeks to interpret Sophocles from himself only and with reference to the ideas and beliefs of the age in which he lived. And the error of such an one is attributed not only to some intel- lectual but even to a moral obliquity (!) which pre- vents his seeing the true meaning."- (p. 336.) It has fared with Sophocles therefore, (according to Mr. Jowett,) in all respects as it has fared with the Bible. " It would be tedious," (he justly remarks,) "to follow the absurdity which has been supposed into details. By such methods," Sophocles or Plato might " be made to mean anything." (p. 336.) But who does not perceive that the obvious way to escape from the supposed difficulty, is to remember that neither Sophocles nor Plato was inspired / . . . . Mr. Jowett's difficulty is occasioned by his assump- tion that the Bible stands on the same level as Plato and Sophocles. (viii) Again, "If it is not held to be a thing im- possible that there should be agreement in the mean- ing of Plato and Sophocles, neither is it to be regarded as absurd, that there should be a like agreement in the interpretation of Scripture." (p. 426.) The whole force of this argument clearly consisting in the strictly 12 SOPHOCLES HAS NOT INFLUENCED MANKIND [pROF. equal claims of these books to Inspiration. Else- where, Mr. Jowett expresses the same thing more unequivocally : The old " explanations of Scripture," (he says,) "are no longer tenable. They belong to a way of thinking and speaking which was once dif- fused over, the world, but has now passed away." Having quietly assumed all this, the Eeverend writer proceeds : " And what we give up as a general principle, we shall find it impossible to maintain partially ; e.g. in the types of the Mosaic Law, and the double meanings of Prophecy, at least in any sense in which it is not equally applicable to all deep and sug- gestive writings." (p. 419.) (ix) " Still one other supposition has to be intro- duced, which will appear, perhaps, more extravagant than any which have preceded. Conceive then that these modes of interpreting Sophocles (!) had existed for ages; that great institutions and interests had become interwoven with them; and in some degree even the honour of Nations and Churches ; is it too much to say that, in such a case, they would be changed with difficulty, and that they would continue to be maintained long after critics and philosophers had seen that they were indefensible ?" (pp. 336-7.) I suppose we may at once allow Mr. Jowett most of what he asks. We may freely grant that if the Tragedies of Sophocles had exercised the same won- drous dominion over the world which the Books of the Bible have exercised : if (Edipus and Jocasta and Creon ; if Theseus and Dejanira and Hercules ; if Ajax, Ulysses and Minerva ; had done for the world what Enoch and Noah ; what Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob ; what Joseph, and Joshua, and Hannah, and Samuel, and David ; what Elijah and Elisha ; JOWETT.] QUITE SO MUCH AS THE BIBLE. what Isaiah and Jeremiah, Ezekiel and Daniel, and the rest ; what St. Peter, and St. John, and St. Paul ; what the Blessed Virgin and her name-sakes, have done: In a word: had Homer's gods and heroes altogether changed the face of society, and revolu- tionized the world j so that "great institutions and inte- rests had become interwoven with them, and in some de- gree even the honour of Nations and Churches ;" (p. 336 ;) if, I repeat, all this had really and actually taken place ; great " difficulty" would, no doubt, (as Mr. Jowett profoundly suggests,) be experienced, at the end of 2000 years, in getting rid of them. But since it unfortunately happens that they have done nothing of the kind, we do not seem to be called upon to follow the Eegius Professor of Greek into the supposed consequences of what he admits to be an " extravagant supposition ;" and which we humbly think is an excessively foolish one also. When, however, the Eeverend Author of this specu- lation establishes it as a parallel with what has taken place with regard to the Word of GOD, we tell him plainly that his insinuation that " critics and philoso- phers are maintaining the present mode of interpreting Scripture long after they have seen that it is indefen- sible" is a piece of impertinence which seems to re- quire a public apology. A man may retain Orders in the Church of England, if he pleases, while yet he repudiates her doctrines : may declare that he sub- scribes her Articles ex animo, and yet seem openly to deny them. But he has no right whatever to impute corresponding baseness to others. The charge should be either plainly made out, or openly retracted 1 . is this a mere slip of Mr. Jowett's pen. At p. 372, he states that " a majority of the Clergy throughout the world,"- Cl IN WHAT RESPECTS THE BTBLE [PROF. By such considerations then ..does Professor Jowett attempt to shew that we ought to " interpret Scrip- ture like any other book." The gist of his observa- tions, in every case, is one and the same, namely, from a priori considerations to insinuate that the Bible is not essentially unlike any other look. . Now, quite apart from its Inspiration, which is, obviously, THE one essential respect wherein the Bible is wholly unlike every other book in the world ; (in- asmuch as, if it is inspired, it differs from every other book in kind ; stands among Books as the Incarnate WORD stood among Men, quite alone / notwithstand- ing that He spoke their language, shared their wants, and accommodated Himself to their manners ;) apart, I say, from the fact of its Inspiration, it is not difficult to point out several particulars in which the Bible is utterly unlike any other Book which is known to exist ; and therefore to suggest an a priori reason why neither should it he interpreted like any other book. 1. The Bible then contains in all (66-9-=) 57 distinct writings, the work of perhaps upwards of forty different Authors 01 . Yet, for upwards of fifteen centuries those many writings have been all collected (with whom he associates the "instincts of many laymen, perhaps also individual interest/') are in favour of " withholding the Truth" But, he adds, (with the indignant emphasis of Virtue when she is re- proaching Vice,)- " a higher expediency pleads that ' honesty is the best policy/ and that truth alone ' makes free !' " How would such insolence he treated in the common intercourse of daily life ? (I will not pause to remark on Mr. Jowett' s wanton abuse of the Divine saying recorded in St. John viii. 32, repeated at p. 351.) m I suppose that there may have been many inspired Psalmists ; and that perhaps the book of Judges was not all by one hand. With reference to the two books of Samuel, Kings and Chronicles, see 1 Chron. xxix. 29, 30. 2 Chron. ix. 29 : xi. 2 : xii. 15, 5, 7 : xiii. 22. JOWETT.] IS UNLIKE ANY OTHER BOOK. cli. into one volume : and, for a large portion of that interval, on the writings so collected the Church Universal has agreed in bestowing the name of the Book) KOLT e^oyrjv, THE BlBLE. 2. The Bible is divided into two parts, which are severed by an interval of upwards of four centuries. On these two great divisions of the Bible, respectively, has been bestowed the title of the Old and the New Covenant. And, what is remarkable, The same phe- nomena which are observable in respect of the whole Bible, are observable in respect of either of its parts. Thus, (a) The several writings of which the Old Testa, ment is composed, (39 3=) 36 in all n , are by many different hands : those of the New Testament, in like manner, (27 6=) 21 in all, are by eight different authors. (13) Those many writings of the Old Testament are found to have been collected into a single volume about four hundred years before the Christian sera; when they were denominated by a common name, rj ypa(f)rj, " The Scripture* ;" and the supreme autho- rity of the writings so collected together, was axiom- atic 1 *. One arguing with His Hebrew countrymen was able to appeal to a place in the Psalms, and to remind them parenthetically that " the Scripture can- not be broken*" that is, might not be gainsaid, n By the Jews themselves they were reckoned as 22. " It is remarkable that the word Tpa^, which means simply Writing, is reserved and appropriated in the ^N"ew Testament (where it occurs fifty times) to the Sacred writings, i.e. to the Holy Scrip- tures ; and marks the separation of the Scriptures from all " com- mon books," indeed from all oilier writings in the world." Words- worth c On Inspiration,' p. 85. p St. Lukexvi. 17. q ov dvvarai \v6ijvai 17 ypatfrfj, St. John X. 35. Clil IN WHAT RESPECTS THE BIBLE [PROF. doubted, explained away, or set aside. Precisely similar phenomena are observable in respect of the writings of the New Testament. (7) Although the books of the Old Covenant are scattered at intervals over the long period of upwards of a thousand years, the writers of the later books are observed to quote the earlier ones, as if by a peculiar secret sympathy : now, incorporating long passages, now, simply adapting one or two sentences, now, blending allusive references. Tor some proof of this assertion, (as far as I am able to produce it at a moment's notice,) the reader is referred to the foot of the page r . The self-same phenomenon is observable with regard to the New Testament Scriptures. Although all the books were written within so short a space as about fifty years, the later writers quote the earlier ones to a surprising extent. In the Gospels, the Gospels r e.g. (i) Long passages : Judges i. 11 15 quotes Joshua xv. 15 19. 2 Sam. xxii. quotes Ps. xviii. 1 Chron. xvi. quotes Ps. xcvi., and Ps. cv. 2 Kings xix. quotes Is. xxxvii. 2 Kings xx. quotes Is. xxxviii., xxxix. (ii) One or two sentences : Numb. xiv. 18 quotes Exod. xxxvi. 6, 7. Ps. Ixviii. 1 quotes Numb. x. 35. Ps. Ixviii. 7, 8 quotes Judges v. 4, 5. Ps. cxviii. 14 quotes Exod. xv. 2. Prov. xxx. 5 quotes Ps. xviii. 30. Joelii. 13 quotes Jonah iv. 2. Isaiah xii. 2 quotes Exod. xv. 2. Isaiah xiii. 6 quotes Joel i. 15. Isaiah li. 6 quotes Ps. cii. 25-7. Isaiah lii. 10 quotes Ps. xcviii. 2, 3. Micah iv. 1, 2, 3 quotes Isaiah ii. 2, 3, 4. Nahum i. 15 quotes Isaiah lii. 7. Zeph. iii. 19 quotes Micah iv. 6. Habakkuk ii. 14 quotes Isaiah xi. 9. Jeremiah x. 13 : li. 16 quotes Ps. cxxxv. 7. Jeremiah xlviii. quotes Isaiah xv. 16. Jeremiah xxvi. 18 quotes Micah iii. 12. 1 Chron. xxix. 15 quotes Ps. xxxix. 12. (iii) Allusive references. (This would involve a prolonged reference to the Hebrew Scriptures, which would be even out of place here.) JOT^ETT.] TS UNLIKE ANY OTHER BOOK. clill are quoted times without number. In the Epistles, the Gospels are cited, or referred to, upwards of sixty times. The Epistles contain many references to the Epistles. The phenomenon thus alluded to will also be found insisted upon in a later part of the present volume 8 . " The fact, I believe, on close examination, will be found to stand thus : The Holy Bible abounds in quotations, even more perhaps than most other books ; but they are introduced in a way which is peculiar to Eevelation, and its own. When a Prophet or Apo- stle mentions one of his own holy brethren, as when Ezekiel names Daniel, or Daniel Jeremiah ; when St. Peter speaks of St. Paul, or St. Paul of St. Peter, or of St. Luke the Physician ; when they mention them^ they do not quote them ; and when they quote them, they do not mention them*." (S) The later writer in the Old Testament who quotes some earlier portion of narrative is often observed to supply independent information, entering into minute details and particulars which are not to be found in the earlier record. Now, "with the same Almighty SPIRIT for their guide, what was it to be expected that the historians of our Blessed LORD would do ? What, but the very thing which they have done ? that they would walk in the path, which the holy Prophets of old had marked out ? that they would often tread full in each other's steps ; often relate the same miracle, or discourse, or parts of it, in the words of the same prior writer ; sometimes com- 8 See pp. 234-5. * Rev. Ralph Churton's Sermon " On the Quotations in the Old Testament," (1807,) published in Townson's Works, vol. i. p. cxxxiv., where see the interesting note. IN WHAT RESPECTS THE BIBLE [PRQF. press, sometimes expand ; always shew to the diligent inquirer, that they did not derive their information, even of facts which they relate in another's words, from him whom they copy, but wrote with antecedent plenitude of knowledge and truth in themselves ; without staying to inform us whether what they de- liver is told for the first time, or has its place already in authentic history 11 ." (e) It may be worth remarking that though the Inspiration of no part of either Testament has ever been doubted in the Church, there do exist doubts as to the Authorship of more than one of the Books of the Old Testament; and one Book in the New, (the Epistle to the Hebrews,) has been suspected by some orthodox writers not to have been from the pen of St. Paul, but to have been the work of some other inspired and Apostolic writer. (f) History, Didactic matter, and Prophecy, is found to be the subject of either Testament. (77) In the New Testament, as in the Old, we are presented with the singular phenomenon of more than one Book being in a manner copied from another, yet with the addition of much independent original matter. It is superfluous to name Samuel, Kings, and Chronicles, on one side, and the Gospels on the other. To the Gospels may be added the Second Epistle of St. Peter and the Epistle of St. Jude. (6) Lastly, the same modest use of the Supernatural is to be found in either Testament. In both, the writers are observed to pass without effort, and as it were unconsciously, from revelations of the most stu- pendous character, to statements of the simplest and u Eev. Ealph Churton's Sermon, quoted in note (t), pp. cxliv-v. JOWETT.] IS UNLIKE ANY OTHER BOOK. civ most ordinary kind x . In both, there is the same prominence given to individual characters y ; the same occasional minuteness of detail where it might have been least expected z . 3. But by far the most remarkable phenomenon re- mains to be noticed; namely, the immense number of quotations, (so far more numerous than is commonly suspected,) extending in length from a single word to nearly a hundred and fifty a , together with allu- sive references, literally without number, which are found in the New Testament Scriptures ; the writings of the elder Covenant being in every instance, exclu- sively *, the source of those quotations, the object of those allusions. 4. When the nature of these quotations, references, and allusions is examined with care, several extra- ordinary phenomena present themselves, which it seems impossible to consider without the deepest in- terest, surprise, and admiration. Thus, (i.) The New Testament writers, on repeated occasions, dis- play independent knowledge of the Old Testament His- tory to which they make reference . The following instances occur to my memory : All the later links x E.g. Gen. xxviii. 11, 12: xxxii. 1 3. Exod. xxiv. 10. St. Luke xxii. 4345. St. Matth. xxvii. 52, 53. St. Jude ver. 9. y E. g. Jacob, Joseph, David. St. Paul, St. Peter, St. John. z E. g. Gen. viii. 9 : xxxvii. 15 17 : xlviii. 17, 18. Exod. ii. 6. St. Luke viii. 55. St. John xiii. 4, 5 : xxi. * E. g. in Heb. viii. 8 12, where Jer. xxxi. 31 36 is quoted. See Acts ii. 17 21, where Joel ii. 28 32 is quoted. b It is supposed that the three well-known references to profane writers, (Acts xvii. 28. 1 Cor. xv. 33. Tit. i. 12, [concerning which see Jerome, Qpp. i. 424: vii. 471,]) the place in St. Mat- thew, (xxvii. 9,) and St. James iv. 5, are scarcely exceptions to the statement in the text. See above, (8). IN WHAT RESPECTS THE BIBLE [PROF. in our LORD'S Genealogy d ; the second Cainan e : Sal- mon's marriage with Eahab f : the burial-place of the twelve Patriarchs g : the age of Moses in Exod. ii. 11 h : that in the days of Elijah the heaven was shut up for three years and six months 1 : that it was the Devil who tempted Eve k : the contest for the dead body of Moses * : the names of Pharaoh's magicians m : how Abraham reasoned with himself when he prepared to offer up his son Isaac n : the golden censer, mentioned in Het. ix. 4 : Abraham's purchase of Sychem ; and a few other things p . (ii.) The same New Testament writers are observed to handle the Old Testament Scriptures with an air of singular authority, and to exercise an extraordinary license of quotation; inverting clauses, paraphras- ing statements, abridging or expanding; and al- ways without apology or explanation ; as if they were conscious that they were dealing with their own. (iii.) Most astonishing of all, obviously, as well as most important, is the purpose for which the Evan- gelists and Apostles of our LORD make their appeal to the Old Testament Scriptures ; invariably in order to establish some part of the Christian Revelation. " Every thoughtful student of the Holy Scriptures has been struck with the circumstance which I now allude to : d Only given by St. Matthew and St. Luke. e Only found in St. Luke iii. 36. f Only found in St. Matth. i. 5. s Only found in Acts vii. 16. h Only found in Acts vii. 23. * St. James v. 17, mentioned also by our LORD, St. Luke iv. 25 ; who informs us that Jonah was a sign to the Ninevites. This is only revealed in St. Luke xi. 30. k 2 Cor. xi. 3. ' St. Jude ver. 9. m 2 Tim. iii. 8. n See Heb. xi. 19. Consider Rom. iv. 19. Acts vii. 16. P Compare Exod. ii. 2, 3 with Acts vii. 20. Consider Rev. ii. 14 : also Heb. xii. 21: also Heb. ix. 19, &c. JOWETT.] IS UNLIKE ANY OTHER BOOK, civil the freedom, namely, with which the inspired "Writers of the New Testament appeal back to the Old ; and see in it, as its one proper theme, the Christian sub- ject. They find themselves in that place, at length, to which former intimations had pointed, and recog- nize the connexion which they themselves have with their ancient forerunners' 1 ." .". . . It is as if for four hundred years and upwards, a mighty mystery, de- scribed in many a dark place of Prophecy, exhibited by many a perplexing type, foreshadowed by many a Divine narrative, had waited for solution. The world is big with expectation. The long-expected time at last arrives. Up springs the Sun of Eighte- ousness in the Heavens ; and lo, the cryptic characters of the Law flash at once into glory, and the dark Oracles of ancient days yield up their wondrous meanings ! " GOD, who at sundry times and in divers manners spake in time past unto the Fathers by the Prophets," in these last days speaks "unto us by His SON :" and lo, a chorus of Apostolic voices is heard bearing witness to the Advent of " the Desire of all nations !".... Such is the relation which the New Testament bears to the Old : such the true na- ture of the many quotations from the earlier Scrip- tures, which are found in the later half of the One inspired Volume. 5. And thus we are led naturally to notice the extraordinary connexion which subsists between the two Testaments. " For what is the Law," (asks Justin, A.D. 140,) "but the Gospel foretold? or what is the Gospel, but the Law fulfilled r ?" " The contents i Sermons, by the Rev. C. P. Eden, p. 185. * Tt yap eorti/ 6 No/xos; Evayye\iov TrpoK.arr]yyf\^fvov" rl 5e TO Evayye\tov ; No/ios 7re7rX/pa)/iej/os. Justin : QutfSt. ci. p. 456. IN WHAT RESPECTS THE BIBLE [PROF. of the Old and New Testament are the same," re- marks Augustine : " there foreshadowed, here revealed : there prefigured, here made plain." "In the Old Testament there is a concealing of the New : in the New Testament there is a revealing of the Old 8 ." Mr. Jowett's inquiry, " If we assume the New Tes- tament as a tradition running parallel with the Old, may not the Eoman Catholic assume with equal reason a tradition parallel with the New?" (p. 381.) shews a truly childish misapprehension of the entire question. The New Testament is not a "parallel tradition" at all ; but a subsequent Eevelation from Heaven. 6. Now I might pursue these remarks much fur- ther: for it would be well worth while to exhibit what an extraordinary sameness of imagery, similarity of allusion, and unity of purpose, runs through the writings of either Covenant ;- phenomena which can only be accounted for in one way. This subject will be found dwelt upon elsewhere; and to what has been already delivered, I must be content here to refer the reader *. (Mr. Jowett himself has been struck by the pheno- menon thus alluded to : but after hinting at " some natural association" as having suggested the language of the Prophets, he proceeds: "We are not there- fore justified in supposing any hidden connexion in the prophecies where [the prophetic symbols] occur. Neither is there any other ground for assuming design of a Eadem sunt in Yetere et Kovo : ibi obumbrata, hie revelata ; ibi praefigurata, hie manifesta. (Augustine: Quasi, xxxiii., in Num. 1. m. iii. p. 541.) In Yeteri Testamento est occultatio JSovi: in ISTovo Testamento est manifestatio Yeteris. (Id. De Catechiz. Rudibus, 8. See also Quaest. Ixxiii. in Exod.) ' See below, from the foot of p. 174 to the beginning of p. 176. JOWETT.] IS UNLIKE ANY OTHER BOOK. any other kind in Scripture ; any more than in Plato or Homer" (p. 381.) .... And thus our philosopher, as- suming at the outset that the Bible is an uninspired book, is for ever coming back to the lie with which he set out. But to proceed.) 7. Still better worthy of notice, in this connexion, is the singular fact (which will also be found ad- verted to in another place u ,) that the Old and New Testaments alike profess to be a History of Earthly events from a Heavenly point of view. The writers of either Covenant claim to know what GOD did*; how characters and events appeared in His sight j : they profess to find themselves in a familiar, and altogether extraordinary relation with the unseen world z . Thus, Moses begins the Bible with an august account of the great Six Days, when GOD was alone in Creation; the unwitnessed Agent, and Author of all things: while St. John the Divine, concluding the inspired Canon, relates that he was "in the Spirit on the LORD'S Day;" and heard behind him "a great Yoice, as of a trumpet, saying, I am Alpha and Omega, the first and the last a ." ... . The general design of Scrip- ture," (says Bishop Butler,) " may be said to be, to give us an account of the World, in this one single view, as GOD'S World : by which it appears essentially distinguished from all other books, as far as I have found, except such as are copied from it*" 8. And yet the grand external characteristic feature of the Bible remains unnoticed ! The one distinctive feature of the Bible, is this, that the four-fold Gospel, u Below, p. 108. The reader is requested to refer to the place. * E.g. Gen. xi. 5 8: xviii. 17 21. 7 E.g. Gen. vi. 6. 2 Sam. xi. 27. z E.g. 2 Kings xix. 35. St. Matth. xxviii. 2, 3. Kev. i. 10, 11. b Analogy, P. u. ch. vii. clx THE ONE SPECIAL CHARACTERISTIC. [PROF. as a matter of fact, exhibits to us, the WORD "made flesh :" and, (0 marvel of marvels !) suffers us to hear His voice, and look upon His form, and observe His actions. It does more. The New Testament professes to be, and is, the complement of the Old. The pro- mise of CHRIST, solemnly, and repeatedly, "at sun- dry times and divers manners," given in the one, is fulfilled in the other. Henceforth they are no more twain, for they have been by GOD Himself joined together; and the subject of both is none other than our SAVIOUR, JESUS CHRIST. Enough surely has been already adduced to war- rant a reasonable man in refusing to accept Professor Jowett's repeated asseveration that the Bible is "to be interpreted like any other book." A Book which proves on examination to be so wholly unlike every other book, so entirely sui generis , may surely well create an a priori suspicion that it is not to be interpreted either, after any ordinary fashion. But the grand consideration of all is still behind ! The one circum- stance which effectually refutes the view of the Eeve- rend Professor, remains yet to be specified ; namely, that THE BIBLE PROFESSES TO BE INSPIRED BY THE HOLY SPIRIT. The HOLY GHOST is again and again declared to speak therein, &a, " by the instrumentality" " by the mouth" of Man. In other words, GOD, not Man, professes to be the Author of the Bible ! That the Bible does set up for itself such a claim, will be found established at p. 53 to p. 57 of the pre- sent volume. Professor Jowett's assurance that " for any of the higher or supernatural views of Inspira- tion, there is no foundation in the Gospels or Epistles" (p. 345,) must therefore be regarded as an extra- ordinary, or rather as an unpardonable oversight on JOWETT.] IMPORTANCE OF THE ORIGIN OF SCRIPTURE. clxi his part. One would have thought that a single saying, like that in Acts iii. 18 and 2L, would have occurred to his memory, and been sufficient to refute him. Other places will be found quoted at p. cxcvii. Very much is it to be feared however that the same gentleman has overlooked a consideration of at least equal importance; namely, the inevitable inference from the discovery that the origin of the Bible is Divine. He informs us that, " It will be a further assistance (!) in the consideration of this subject, to observe that the Interpretation of Scripture has no- thing to do with any opinion respecting its origin" (p. 350.) "The meaning of Scripture," (he proceeds,) " is one thing : the Inspiration of Scripture is an- other." True. But when we find the Eeverend Au- thor insisting, again and again, that " it may be laid down that Scripture has one meaning, the meaning which it had to the mind of the Prophet or Evan- gelist who first uttered, or wrote it" (p. 378,) we are constrained to remind him that, "To say that the Scriptures, and the things contained in them, can have no other or farther meaning than those persons thought or had, who first recited or wrote them; is evidently saying, that those persons were the original, proper, and sole authors of those books, i. e. THAT THEY ARE NOT INSPIRED c ." So that, in point of fact, the origin of Holy Scripture, so far from being a con- sideration of no importance, (as Mr. Jowett supposes,) proves to be a consideration of the most vital import- ance of all. And the Interpretation of Scripture, so far from having "nothing to do with any opinion respect- ing its origin," is affected by it most materially, or rather depends upon it altogether ! c Butler's Analogy, P. n. ch, vii. m clxii MR. JOWETT'S SYLLOGISM CORRECTED. [PROF. On a review of all that goes before, it will, I think, appear plain to any person of sound ^understanding, that Professor Jowett's a priori views respecting the Interpretation of Holy Scripture will not stand the test of exact reason. To suggest as he has done that the Bible is to be interpreted like any other book, on the plea that it is like any other book, is to build upon a false foundation. His syllogism is the following : If the Bible is a book like any other book, the Bible is to be interpreted like any other book. The Bible is a book like any other book. Therefore, But it has been shewn that the learned Professor's minor premiss is false. It has been proved that the Bible is NOT a book like any other book. Nay, I claim to have done more. I claim to have established the contradictory minor premiss. The syl- logism therefore will henceforth stand as follows : If the Bible can be shewn to be a book like no other book, but entirely sui generis, and claiming to be the work of Inspiration, then is it rea- sonable to expect that it will have to be inter- preted like no other book, but entirely after a fashion of its own. But the Bible can be shewn to be a book like no other book ; entirely sui generis ; and claiming to be the work of Inspiration. Therefore, 2. It remains however, now, to advance an impor- tant step. Mr. Jowett, in a certain place, adopts a principle, the soundness of which I am able, happily, entirely to admit. " Interpret Scripture from itself, like any other book about which we know almost no- thing except what is derived from its pages." (p. 382.) JOWETT.] " INTERPRET SCRIPTURE FROM ITSELF." clxiii " Non nisi ex Scripturd Scripturam interpretari potes" (p. 384.) Scarcely lias lie made this important admission however, and enunciated his golden Canon of inter- pretation, when he hastens to nullify it. His very next words are, " The meaning of the Canon is only this, 'That we cannot understand Scripture with- out becoming familiar (!) with it.' " But, (begging the learned writer's pardon,) so far from that being the whole of the meaning of the Canon, his gloss happens exactly to miss the only im- portant point. The plain meaning of the words, " Only out of the Scriptures can you explain the Scriptures," is obviously rather this : ' That in order to interpret the Bible, our aim must be to as- certain how the Bible interprets itself? In other words, ' Scripture must be made its own Interpreter? More simply yet, in the Professor's own words, (from which, more suo, he has imperceptibly glided away,) " In- terpret Scripture from itself." (p. 382.) . . . . How then does Scripture interpret Scripture ? That is the only question ! for the answer to this question must be held to be decisive as to the other great question which Mr. Jowett raises in the present Essay, namely, How are we to interpret Scripture ? Now this whole Inquiry has been conducted else- where ; and will be found to extend from p. 144 to p. 160 of the present volume. It has been there es- tablished, by a sufficiently large induction of exam- ples, that the Bible is to be interpreted as no other look is, or can be interpreted] and for the plain reason, that the inspired Writers themselves, (our LORD Himself at their head !) interpret it after an altogether extraordinary fashion. Mr. Jowett's statement at p. 339 that "the m2 THE SUM OF MR. JOWETT's ESSAY. [PROF. mystical interpretation of Scripture originated in the Alexandrian age," is simply false. And in the course of this proof, (necessarily involved in it, in fact,) it has been incidentally shewn that the sense of Scripture is not, by any means, invariably one ; and that sense the most obvious to those who wrote, heard, or read it. It has been fully shewn that the office of the Interpreter is not, by any means, (as Mr. Jowett imagines,) " to recover the meaning of the words as they first struck on the ears, or flashed be- fore the eyes of those who heard or read them!' (p. 338.) The Eeverend writer's repeated assertion that " we have no reason to attribute to the Prophet or Evange- list any second or hidden sense different from that which appears on the surface," (p. 380,) has been fully, and as it is hoped effectually refuted. And here I might lay down my pen. For since, at the end of 74 pages, the Professor thus delivers him- self, (in a kind of imitation of St. Paul's language d ,) " Of what has been said, this is the sum, ' That Scripture, like other books, has one meaning, which has to be gathered from itself .... without regard to a priori notions about its nature and origin:" that, "It is to be interpreted like other books, with attention to the prevailing state of civilization and knowledge," and so forth ; (p. 404 ;) it must suffice to say that, having established the very opposite conclusion, I claim to have effectually answered his Essay ; because I have overthrown what he admits to be " the sum" of it. Let me be permitted however before I pro- ceed to review some other parts of his performance, in the briefest manner, not so much to recapitulate, as to exhibit < the sum' of what has been hitherto de- d Heb. viii. 1. JOWETT.] THE SUM OF THE PRESENT KEPLY. livered on the other side ; in somewhat different lan- guage, and as it were from a different point of view. We are presented then, in the New Testament Scrip- tures, with the august spectacle of the Ancient of Days holding the entire volume of the Old Testament Scrip- tures in His Hands, and interpreting it of Himself. He, whose Life and Death are set forth in the Gospel ; whose Church's early fortunes are set forth histo- rically in the Acts, while its future prospects are shadowed prophetically in the Apocalypse; whose Doctrines, lastly, are explained in the twenty-one Epi- stles of St. Paul and St. Peter, St. James and St. John and St. Jude : He, the Incarnate WORD, who was " in the beginning ;" who " was with GOD," and who " was GOD :" that same Almighty One, I repeat, is exhi- bited to us in the Gospel, repeatedly, holding the Volume of the Old Testament Scriptures in His Hands, and explaining it of Himself . " To day is this Scripture fulfilled in your ears e ," was the solemn introductory sentence with which, in the Synagogue of Nazareth, (after closing the Book and giving it again to the Minister,) He prefaced His Sermon from the Ixist chapter of Isaiah. " Had ye believed Moses, ye would have believed Me : for Tie wrote of Me f ." " ( fools, and slow of heart to believe all that the Prophets have spoken! Ought not CHRIST to have suffered these things, and to enter into His glory?' And beginning at Moses , and all the Prophets, He expounded to them in all the Scriptures the things concerning Himself*" " These are the words which I spake unto you, that all things must be fulfilled which are ivritten in the e St. Luke iv. 21. ' St. John v. 46. St. Luke xxiv. 27. CHRIST GIVES US THE OLD TESTAMENT. [PROF. Law of Moses, and in the Prophets, and in the Psalms, concerning Me V " CHRIST was before Moses. The Gospel was not made for the Law; but the Law was made for the Gospel. The Gospel is not based on the Law, but the Law is a shadow of the Gospel. In order to believe the Bible, we must look upward ; and fix our eyes on JESUS CHRIST, sitting in Heavenly Glory, holding both Testaments in His Hand; sealing both Testaments with His seal; and delivering both Testaments as Divine Oracles, to the "World. We must receive the written Word from the Hands of the INCARNATE WORD*." This august spectacle, let it be clearly stated, (1) Establishes, beyond all power of contradiction, the intimate connexion which subsists between the Old and the New Testament; as well as the altogether unique relation which the one bears to the other : (2) Invests either Testament with a degree of sacred importance and majestic grandeur which altogether makes the Bible unlike " any other book :" (3) Proves that the Bible is to be interpreted as no other book ever was, or ever can be interpreted: (4) Demon- strates that it has more than a single meaning : and lastly, (5) Convincingly shews that GOD, and not Man, is its true Author. It will of course be asked, Then does Mr. Jowett take no notice at all of this vast and complicated pro- blem ? How does he treat of the relation between the Old Testament and the New ? ... He despatches the entire subject in the following passage : " The ques- tion," (he says,) " runs up into a more general one, h St. Luke xxiv. 44. 1 Dr. Wordsworth (Occasional Sermon 54,) On the Inspiration of the Old Testament, (1859,) p. 70. JOWETT.] RELATION OF THE TWO TESTAMENTS. 1 the relation between the Old and New Testaments.' For the Old Testament will receive a different meaning accordingly as it is explained from itself, or from the New" (Very different certainly !) " In the first case, a careful and conscientious study of each one for itself is all that is required." (That is to say, it will not be explained at all !) "In the second case, the types and ceremonies of the Law, perhaps the very facts and persons of the history, WILL BE ASSUMED (!) to be predestined or made after a pattern corresponding to the things that were to be in the latter days." (p. 370.) (And why not " will be found to be replete with Christian meaning, full of lofty spiritual signifi- cancy ?" the proved marvellousness of their texture, the revealed mysteriousness of their purpose, being an effectual refutation of all Mr. Jowett's a priori notions !) "And this question," (he proceeds,) "stirs up another question respecting the Interpretation of the Old Testament in the New. Is such Interpretation to be regarded as the meaning of the original text, or an accommodation of it to the thoughts of other times ?" (Nay, but Eeverend and learned Sir : " nothing so plain," as you justly observe, " that it may not be explained away ;" (p. 359 ;) yet we cannot consent to have the sense of plain words thus clouded over at your mere bidding. It is now our turn to declare that the Interpreter's " object is to read Scripture like any other book, with a real interest and not merely a con- ventional one." It is now we who " want to be able to open our eyes, and see things as they truly are." (p. 338.) We simply petition for leave to " interpret Scripture like any other book, by the same rules of evidence and the same canons of criticism" (p. 375.) clxviii MR. JOWETT'S SLIPPERY METHOD. [PROF. And if this freedom be but conceded to us, there will be found to be no imaginable reason why the Inter- pretation of the Old Testament in the New, (CHRIST Himself being the Majestic Speaker ! our present edi- fication and everlasting welfare being His gracious purpose !) should not be strictly " regarded as the meaning of the original text." . . . But let us hear the Professor out : ) " Our object," (he says, and with this he dismisses the problem !) " Our object is not to attempt here the determination of these questions ; but to point out that they must be determined before any real progress can be made, or any agreement arrived at in the Interpre- tation of Scripture." (p. 370.) . . . They must indeed. But can it be right in this slovenly, slippery style to shirk a discussion on the issue of which the whole question may be said to turn ? especially on the part of one who scruples not to prejudge that issue, and straightway to apply it, (in a manner fatal to the Truth,) throughout all his hundred pages. Mr. Jowett's method is ever to assume what he ought to prove, and then either to be plaintive, or to sneer. "It is a heathenish or Rabbinical fancy :" "Such complexity would place the Scriptures below human compositions in general; for it would deprive them of the ordinary intelligibleness of human language" (p. 382) : &c. " Is the Interpretation of the Old Testament in the New to be regarded as the meaning of the original text ; or an accommodation of it to the thoughts of other times ?" (p< 370.) This is Mr. Jowett's question ; the question which it is " not his object to attempt to de- termine ;" but which I, on the contrary, have made it my object to discuss in my YIth Sermon, p. 183 to p. 220. Without troubling the reader however now JOWETT.] DID OUR LORD MISINTERPRET SCRIPTURE ? clxiX to wade through those many pages, let me at least explain to him in a few words what Mr. Jowett's question really amounts to : namely this, Do the Apostles and Evangelists, does our Blessed LORD Himself, when He professes to explain the mysterious significancy of the Old Testament, invariably, in every instance, misrepresent " the meaning of the ori- ginal text?" And the answer to this question I am content to await from any candid person of plain un- sophisticated understanding. Is it credible, concern- ing the Divine expositions found in St. Matth. xxii. 31, 32, xxii. 43-5, xii. 39, 40, xi. 10, St. John viii. 17, 18, i. 52, vi. 31, &c., x. 34-5 : the Apo- stolic interpretations found in 1 Cor. ix. 9 11, x. 16, xv. 20, Heb. ii. 5 9, vii. 110, Gal. iv. 21 31 : is it conceivable, I ask, that not one of all these places should exhibit the actual ' meaning of the original text ? ' And yet, (as Mr. Jowett himself is forced to admit,) " If we attribute to the details of the Mosaical ritual a reference to the New Testament, or suppose the passage of the Eed Sea to be regarded not merely as a figure of Baptism, but as a pre- ordained type; the principle is conceded!" (p. 369.) " A little more or a little less of the method does not make the difference." (Ibid.) In a word, in such case, Mr. Jowett's Essay falls to the ground ! ... To proceed however. 3- The case of Interpretation has not yet been fully set before the reader. Hitherto, we have merely traced the problem back to the fountain-head, and dealt with it simply as a Scriptural question. We have shewn what light is thrown upon Interpretation by the volume of Inspiration. The subject has been treated in the same way in the Vth and Vlth of my ANCIENT EXPOSITIONS OF SCRIPTURE ARE [PROF. Sermons. But it will not be improper, in this place, it is even indispensable, to develope the problem a little more fully ; and to explain that it is of much larger extent. Now, there is a family resemblance in the method of all ancient expositions of Holy Scripture which vindi- cates for them, however remotely, a common origin. There is a resemblance in the general way of handling the Inspired "Word which can only be satisfactorily explained by supposing that the remote type of all was the oral teaching of the Apostles themselves. In truth, is it credible that the early Christians would have been so forgetful of the discourses of the men who had seen the LORD, that no trace of it, no tradition of so much as the manner of it, should have lingered on for a hundred years after the death of the last of the Apostles ; down to the time when Origen, for example, was a young man ? .... It can- not possibly be ! (i.) " The things which thou hast heard of me among many witnesses," (writes the great Apostle to his son Timothy,) " the same commit thou to faithful men, who shall be able to teach others also k ." Pro- vision is thus made by the aged Saint, in the last of his Epistles, for the transmission of his inspired teaching 1 to a second and a third generation. Now the words just quoted were written about the year 65, at which time Timothy was a young man. Un- less we suppose that ALMIGHTY GOD curtailed the lives of the chief depositaries of His "Word, Timothy will have lived on till A.D. 100; so that "faithful men" who died in the middle of the next century might have been trained and taught by him for many k 2 Tiui. ii. 2. ! See the middle of p. cxcvii. JOWETT.] ECHOES OF APOSTOLIC OR DIVINE DISCOURSES. clxxi years. It follows, that the " faithful men " last spoken of will have been " able to teach others also," whose writings (if they wrote at all) would range from A.D. 190 to A.D. 210. Now, just such a writer is Hippolytus, who is known to have been taught by that " faithful man" Irenseus m , to whom, as it happens, the deposit was "committed" by Poly carp, who stood to St. John in the self-same relation as Timothy to St. Paul ! (ii.) Our SAVIOUR is repeatedly declared to have in- terpreted the Old Testament to His Disciples. For instance, to the two going to Emmaus, " beginning at Moses and all the Prophets, He interpreted to them in all the Scriptures the things concerning Himself*" Moreover, before He left the world, He solemnly promised His Apostles that the HOLY GHOST, whom the FATHER should send in His Name, " should teach them all things, and bring to their remembrance all things which He had spoken to them " Shall we believe that the Treasury of Divine Inspiration thus opened by CHRIST Himself was straightway closed up by its human guardians, and at once forgotten ? Shall we not rather believe that Cleopas and his companion, (for instance,) forthwith repeated their LORD'S words to every member of the Apostolic body, and to others also ; that they were questioned again and again by m Pliotms, p. 195, ed. Bekker. "Eossimul jungendos censui, Polycarpum, Irenaeum, Hippolytum ; cum Hippolytus discipulus Irenaei fuisset, Irenseusque Polycarpum, Joannis Apostoli discipulum, audivisset." Routh, Preface to Opuscula, p. x. n St. Luke xxiv. 27. St. John xiv. 26. The fulfilment of this promise repeatedly oc- curs : as in St. John ii. 17, 22 : xii. 16 : xiii. 7 : St. Luke xxiv. 8. Consider St. John xx. 9. INSPIRED INTERPRETATION WAS [PROF. adoring listeners, even to their extremest age ; aye, and that they taxed their memories to the utmost in order to recal every little word, every particular of our SAVIOUR'S Divine utterance ? It must be so ! And the echo, the remote echo of that exposition, depend upon it ! descended to a second, aye and to a third generation ; yea, and has come down, faintly, and feebly it may be, but yet essentially and truly, even to ourselves ! (iii.) And yet, (for we would not willingly incur the charge of being fanciful in so solemn and impor- tant a matter,) the great fact to be borne in mind, (and it is the great fact which nothing can ever set aside or weaken,) is, that for the first century at least of our sera, there existed within the Christian Church the gift of Prophecy ; that is, of Inspired Interpreta- tion*. The minds of the Apostles, CHRIST Himself " opened, to understand the Scriptures q ." Can it be any matter of surprise that men so enlightened, when they had been miraculously endowed with the gift of tongues r , and scattered over the face of the ancient civilized "World, should have disseminated the same principles of Catholic Interpretation, as well as the same elements of Saving Truth ? "When this mira- culous gift ceased, its results did not also come to an end. The fountain dried up, but the streams which it had sent forth yet " made glad the City of GOD." And by what possible logic can the teaching of the early Church be severed from its source ? It cannot be supposed for an instant that such a severance ever took place. The teaching of the Apostolic age was the immediate parent of the teaching of the earliest p 1 Cor. xii., xiii., xiv., &c. * St. Luke xxiv. 45. r Acts ii. 421. JOWETT.] A PRIVILEGE OF THE EARLY CHURCH. clxxiii of the Fathers, in whose Schools it is matter of history that those Patristic writers with whom we are most familiar, studied and became famous. Ac- cordingly, we discover a method of Interpreting Holy Scripture strictly resembling that employed by our SAVIOUR and His Apostles, in all the earliest Patris- tic writings. As documents increase, the evidence is multiplied ; and at the end of two or three centuries after the death of St. John the Evangelist, voices are heard from Jerusalem and other parts of Palestine ; from Antioch and from other parts of Syria ; from the Eastern and the "Western extremities of North Africa ; from many regions of Asia Minor ; from Con- stantinople and from Greece ; from Eome, from Milan, and from other parts of Italy ; from Cyprus and from Gaul ; all singing in unison ; all singing the same heavenly song ! ... In what way but one is so ex- traordinary a phenomenon to be accounted for ? Are we to believe that there was a general conspiracy of the East and the West, the North and the South, to interpret Holy Scripture in a certain way; and that way, the wrong way ? Enough has been said, it is thought, to shew that many of Mr. Jowett's remarks about the value of Patris- tic evidence are either futile or incorrect ; or that they betray an entire misapprehension of the whole ques- tion, not to say a thorough want of appreciation of the claims of Antiquity. We do not yield to the ( Essayist and Eeviewer' in veneration for the Inspired page; and trust that enough has been said to shew it. Our eye, when we read Scripture, (like his,) "is fixed on the form of One like the Son of Man ; or of the Prophet who was girded with a garment of camel's hair ; or of the Apostle who had a thorn in the flesh." (p. 338.) OUR NEED OF ASSISTANCE. [PROF. We are only unlike Mr. Jowett we fear in this, that we believe ex animo that the first-named was the Eternal SON, " equal to the FATHER," and " of one substance with the FATHER 8 :" and further that St. Paul's fourteen Epistles are all inspired writings , in an entirely different sense from the Dialogues of Plato or the Tragedies of Sophocles. It follows, that however riveted our mental gaze may be on the awful forms which come before us in Holy Scripture, as often as we con the inspired record of the actions and of the say- ings of those men, we are constrained many a time to look upward, and to exclaim with the Psalmist, " Thy thoughts are very deep*!" And often if asked, " Understandest thou what thou readest?" we must still answer with the Ethiopian, " How can I, except some man should guide me u ?" (iv.) To assume however that our defective know- ledge " cannot be supplied by the conjectures of Fa- thers or Divines," (p. 338,) is in some sort to beg the question at issue. To say of the student of Scripture that "the history of Christendom, and all the after- thoughts of Theology, are nothing to him :" (p. 338 :) that " he has to imagine himself a disciple of CHRIST or Paul, and to disengage himself from all that fol- lows :" (Ibid. :) is not the language of modesty, but of inordinate conceit. In Mr. Jowett it is in fact some- thing infinitely worse; for he shews that his object thereby is to " obtain an unembarrassed opportunity 8 See Mr. Jowett's Essay, p. 354. * Ps. xcii. 5. u Acts viii. 30, 31. '" Revel a/ inquit David, ' oculos meos, et considerabo mirabilia de Lege Tua.' Si tantus Propheta tenebras ignorantise confitetur, qua nos putas parvulos, et pene lactantes, inscitiae nocte circumdari ? Hoc autera velamen non solum in facie Moysi, sed et in Evangelistis et in Apostolis positum est." Hiero- nymus, Ep. Iviii. vol. i. p. 323. JOWETT.] BISHOP PEARSON'S ADVICE. clxXV of applying all the resources of a so-called criticism to discredit and destroy the written record itself V " True indeed it is, that more than any other subject of human knowledge, Biblical criticism has hung (sic.) to the past ;" (p. 340 ;) but the reason is also obvious. It is because, in the words of great Bishop Pearson, " Philosophia quotidie progressu, Theologia nisi re- gressu non crescit 7 ." " ye who are devoting your- selves to the Divine Science of Theology," (he ex- claims,) " and whose cheeks grow pale over the study of Holy Scripture above all; ye who either fill the venerable office of the Priesthood or intend it, and are hereafter to undertake the awful cure of souls : rid yourselves of that itch of the present age, the love of novelty. Make it your business to inquire for that which was from the beginning. Eesort for counsel to the fountain-head. Have recourse to Antiquity. Ee- turn to the holy Fathers. Look back to the primitive Church. In the words of the Prophet, c Ask for the old paths*. > " When therefore Mr. Jowett classes together "the early Fathers, the Eoman Catholic mystical writers, the Swiss and German Eeformers, and the Noncon- formist Divines," (p. 377,) he either shews a most lamentable want of intellectual perspective, or a most perverse understanding. So jumbled into one con- fused heap, it may not be altogether untrue to say of Commentators generally, that " the words of Scripture suggest to them their own thoughts or feelings" (p. 377.) But when it is straightway added, " There is nothing in such a view derogatory to the Saints and Doctors of former ages," (Ibid,,) we are constrained, (for the reasons x Dr. Moberly, as before, pp. liii.-iv. 7 Minor Works, vol. ii. p. 10. z Hid. p. 6. OUR CHURCH APPEALS TO THE FATHERS. [PROF. already before the reader,) to remonstrate against so misleading and deceitful a way of putting the case. Mr. Jowett desires to be understood not to depreciate " the genius or learning of famous men of old," when he remarks "that Aquinas or Bernard did not shake themselves free from the mystical method of the Patristic times" (Ibid.) But with singular obtuseness, or with pitiful disingenuousness, he does his best by such words to shut out from view the real question at issue, namely, the exegetical value of Patristic Antiquity. For the Church of England, when she appeals, (as she repeatedly does,) to " the Ancient Fathers," does not by any means intend such names as the Abbot of Clairvaux, who nourished in the middle of the twelfth century; or Thomas of Aquinum, who lived later into the thirteenth. It is the spirit of the ante- Nicene age which she defers to ; the Fathers of the Jirst four or jive centuries to whose opinion she gives reverent attention; as her formularies abundantly shew. "Whether therefore Aquinas and Bernard were or were not able to " shake themselves free from the mystical method of the Patristic times" matters very little. The point to be observed is that the Writers of the Patristic times, as a matter of fact, " did not shake themselves free from the mystical method of" CHRIST and His Jpostles ! Yery far am I from denying that " any one who, instead of burying himself in the pages of the com- mentators, would learn the Sacred Writings by heart, and paraphrase them in English, will probably make a nearer approach to their true meaning than he would gather from any Commentary." Quite certain is it that " the true use of Interpretation is to get rid of interpretation, and leave us alone in company with JOWETT.] PRIMITIVE TRADITION. the author." (p. 384.) But this is quite a distinct and different matter, as every person of unsophisticated understanding must perceive at once. The same thing will be found stated by myself, in a subsequent part of the present volume, at considerable length a ; the qualifying condition having been introduced at p. 16. The truth is, a man can no more divest himself of the conditions of thought habitual to one familiar with his Prayer-Book, than he can withdraw himself from the atmosphere of light in which he moves. Not the abuse of Commentators on Holy Scripture, but the principle on which Holy Scripture itself is to be interpreted, is the real question at issue : the fundamental question which underlies this, being of course the vital one, namely, Is the Bible an inspired book, or not ? Apart from what has been already urged concerning " the torrent of Patristic Interpretation b " which flows down not so much from the fountain-head of Scripture, (wherein so many specimens of Inspired Interpretation are preserved,) as from the fontal source of all Wisdom and Knowledge, even the lips of the Incarnate WORD Himself; apart from this, a very important Historical circumstance calls for notice in this place. How did Christianity originate? how did it first establish a footing in the world ? " The answer is, By the preaching of living men, who said they were com- missioned by GOD to proclaim it. That was the origin and first establishment of Christianity. There is in- deed a vague and unreasoning notion prevalent that Christianity was taken from the New Testament. The notion is historically untrue. Christianity was widely extended through the civilized world before the New Testament was written; and its several books were * See Serrn. I. pp. 10-11, 13, &c. b See below, p. 142. n THE CREEDS ARE THE RECORD [PROF. successively addressed to various bodies of Christian believers ; to bodies, that is, who already possessed the faith of CHRIST in its integrity. When, indeed, GOD ceased to inspire persons to write these books, and when they were all collected together into what we call the New Testament, the existing Faith of the Church, derived from oral teaching, was tested by comparison with this Inspired Record. And it hence- forth became the standing law of the Church that nothing should be received as necessary to Salvation, which could not stand that test. But still, though thus tested, (every article being proved by the New Testament,) Christianity is not taken from it ; for it existed before it. "What, then, was the Christianity which was thus established ? Have we any record of it as it existed before the New Testament became the sole autho- ritative standard? I answer, we have. The Creeds of the Christian Church are the record of it. That is precisely what they purport to be : not documents taken from the New Testament, but documents trans- mitting to us the Faith as it was held from the begin- ning ; the Faith as it was preached by inspired men, before the inspired men put. forth any writings ; the Faith once for all delivered to the Saints. Accordingly you will find that our Church in her viiith Article does not ground her affirmation that the Creeds ought to be ' thoroughly received and believed,' on the fact that they were taken from the New Testament, (which they were not;} but on the fact that < they may be proved by most certain warrants of Holy Scripture} ' It follows therefore from what has been said, that even if bad men could succeed in destroying the autho- rity of the Bible as the Word of G OD, all could not be JOWETT.] OF PRIMITIVE CHRISTIANITY. up with Christianity. There would still remain to be dealt with the Faith as it exists in the world; the Faith held from the beginning; the Faith once de- livered to the Saints. None of the assaults on Holy Scripture can touch that ; for it traces itself to an independent origin. The evil work, therefore, would have to be begun all over again. The special doc- trines which are impugned in 'Essays and Ee views' do not stand or fall with the Inspiration or Interpre- tation of Scripture ; but are stereotyped in the Faith of Christendom. " The Fall of Man, Original Sin, the Atonement, the Divinity of CHRIST, the Trinity, all have their place in the Faith held from the beginning. They are imbedded in the Creeds, and in that general scheme of Doctrine which circles round the Creeds, and is involved in them. Nay, curiously enough, or rather I should say providentially, the very point against which the attacks of this book are principally directed, namely the Inspiration of the Old Testament, is in express terms asserted there : the HOLY GHOST ' spake ~by the Prophets V " It remains to shew the bearing of these remarks on Mr. Jowett's Essay. With infinite perseverance, he dwells upon "the nude Scripture, the merest letter of the Sacred Volume, as if in it and in it alone, resided the entire Eevelation of CHRIST, and all pos- sible means of judging what that Eevelation consists of: whereas this is very far indeed from being the c From a Sermon by the Rev. F. "Woodward, quoted below, at p. 249. In illustration of the learned writer's concluding remark, take this from the Creed of Lyons, contained in Irenaeus (A.D. 180), Kat els Ili/eC/ia "Ayiov, TO dia ran/ HpoffrrjT&v KfKrjpvxbs ras otKovopias, KOI Tas cXcvo-eis. In the Creed of Constantinople, we read, To n>eO/*a TO "Aytov ... TO XaAJJo-af 8ta TO>V Hpo^>r]r5>v n2 clxxx THE APOSTLES' CREED, WHAT? [PROF. case. Every single Book of the New Testament was written, as we have seen, to persons already in posses- sion of Christian Truth. It is quite erroneous there- fore, historically and notoriously erroneous, to suppose either that the Divine Institution of the Church, or that its Doctrines, were literally founded upon, the written words of Holy Scripture ; or that they can impart no illustration nor help in the Interpretation of those written words The complete possession of the saving Truth belonged to the Christian Church not by degrees, nor in lapse of time, but from the first. Of that saving truth, thus taught and thus possessed, the Apostles' Creed, growing up as it did on every side of Christendom as the faithful record of the uniform oral teaching of the Apostles, is the true and precious historical monument d ; and I ven- d The Creed of Lyons begins by describing itself as that which t] fj,ev 'EKAcXjjo'ta, Kaincp Kaff 0X775- TTJS OLKovfievrjs etos irepaTcov rfjs yrjs 8i(r7rap[j.evr], Trapa de rail/ c A7rooToX(>i> KOI T>V eKeiva)v /ia0r;rai> Trapa- Xa/3oo-a, K.r.X. Most refreshing of all, however, are the concluding words of that Creed : so comfortable are they that I cannot deny myself the consolation of transcribing them here, where indeed they are very much ad rem : ToCro TO Krjpvypa TrapetXr^wa, Kat ravTrjv rfjv TT'KTTIV^ as 7rpoe(fcafjiev, rj eKKhrjo-ia, Kainep ev oAo> ra> K0(r/xa> 8ie(nrapp,evrj, eVt/ieXa)? s fva OLKOV OlKOVfTO.' Kal O/JLOLO)S TTKTTCVei TOVTOIS) O)S flittV "^V^rjV KOI TTjV aVTTJV Kapdiav KOI (TVfJLffxuvas ravra Krjpixrcrfi) KOI SiSacr/cei, KCU TrapaSi- , &s fv o-To/za KeKTrjfjievr)- Kai yap at Kara rov KOO-/AOI/ StczXeKTOi i, aXX' 17 dvvapts rrjs Trapadocrecas pia Kal rj avrff. Kat ovre at ev pvpevai eKK\rj(riai aXXcoy TreTrto-rf i>Ka(riv, rj aXXco? 7rapaSt8oa(rtj/, OVTC fv raty 'l/Sqpi'at?, ovre ev KfXrois, ovre Kara ras ai/aroXay, ovre ev AlyvTTTta, OIJTC ev Aifivrj, ovre at Kara /weVa roO *c6cr/iov tSpu/xtVat. *AXX* QHTTTfp 6 J^XlOS, TO KTlCTfJia TOV 0eo, CV oXa) r(5 KOCTflft) flS KOI 6 UVTOS, OVT(O Kal TO Krjpvypa TTJS aXrjdeias TravTaxfj (paivei, Kal am'ei Travray dvOpunovs rovs POV\OIJ.VOVS els eiriyvaxriv d\r)6eias e\deiv. Kat oure 6 TrafU dvvaTos ev Xoyo> ran/ ev rais rjcxXiytrtatC irpocaTaTwv erepa TOVTO>V epei, (ovdels yap VTrep TOV StSacr/caXoi',) ovre 6 daQevrjs ev raj Xoyw cXarrwo-et Tr,v napddoaiv. JOWETT.] MR. JOWETT'S WANT OF LEARNING. clxxxi ture to say that if any person claims to reject the Apostles' Creed as an auxiliary, a great and invalu- able auxiliary, in interpreting the writings of the Apostles, he shews himself to be very wanting indeed in appreciation of the comparative value of Historical Evidence, and of the true principles of Historical Philosophy. And not the Apostles' Creed only ; but the whole history and tradition of the universal Church, needing, no doubt, skill and discretion in its application, supply, when applied with requisite skill and discretion, very valuable and real aid in interpreting Holy Scripture 6 ." When therefore Mr. Jowett speaks contemptuously of "the attempt to adapt the truths of Scripture to the doctrines of the Creeds," (p. 353,) the kindest thing which can be said is that he writes like an igno- rant, or at least an unlearned man. " The Creeds" (he says) "are acknowledged to be a part of Chris- tianity .... Yet it does not follow that they should be pressed into the service of the Interpreter." Why not ? we ask. " The growth of ideas" (he replies,) " in the interval which separated the first century from the fourth or sixth makes it impossible to apply the language of the one to the explanation of the other. Between Scripture and the Mcene or Atha- nasian Creeds, a world of the understanding comes in ; and mankind are no longer at the same point as when the whole of Christianity was contained in the words ' Believe on the LORD JESUS CHRIST and thou mayest be saved;' when the Gospel centred in the attach- Mias 1 -yap KOI TTJS avrrjs TTI(TTCQ>S ova-rjs, ovre 6 7roAi> rrepl avrrjs flnelv 7T\e6i>a KOI f) H'KTTIS avrrj, eV oXiyots prjp.acri, iraa-av TTJV ev rfi IlaXata KOI Katvfj rrjs fvarcfteias yvSxnv eyxcxoXTrtcrrat. Cyril. Hieros. Cat. v. 12, quoted by Heurtley. JOWETT.] OUR LORD'S DIVINITY DENIED. of the verse in which, it was found, how can the Nicene or Athanasian Creed be a suitable instrument for the interpretation of Scripture?" (p. 354.) he simply asks a fool's question. The cases are not only not parallel, but there is not even any analogy be- tween them. Let us hear him a little further : " Absorbed as St. Paul was in the person of Christ, .... he does not speak of Him as ' equal to the Father,' or ' of one substance with the Father g .' Much of the language of the Epistles, (passages for example such as Eomans i. 2 : Philippians ii. 6,) would lose their meaning if distributed in alternate clauses between our LORD'S Humanity and Divinity h . Still greater difficulties would be introduced into the Gospels by the attempt to identify them with the Creeds 1 . "We should have to suppose that He was and was not tempted k ; that when He prayed to His Father He prayed also to Himself. 1 ; that He knew and did not know ' of that hour' of which He as well as the angels were ignorant m . How could He have said 'My God, My God, why hast Thou forsaken g Answer. He certainly does not employ the identical language of the Nicene Council, or of the (so called) Athanasian Creed. But what then ? h Ans. Passages of the Epistles " distributed in alternate clauses between our LORD'S Humanity and Divinity," begging Mr. Jowett's pardon, is nonsense. But no passage in St. Paul's Epistles which relates to the Humanity, or to the Divinity of CHKIST, could be said to " lose its meaning" by being unlocked by its own proper clue : or, if the statement be complex, by being distributed under two heads. 1 Ans. But not, I suppose, to reconcile them ? Why use inaccu- rate language on so solemn a subject ? k Ans. Doubtless we have to suppose this ! 1 Ans. Not so. Por " there is one Person of the FATHEE, and another of the SON." m Ans. Doubtless we have to suppose this ! clxxxiv OUR LORD'S DIVINITY DENIED. [PROF. Me ?' or * Father, if it be possible let this cup pass from Me.' How could He have doubted whether 1 when the Son of Man cometh He shall find faith upon the earth n ?' These simple and touching words," (p. 355,) pah ! Now if what precedes means anything at all, (I am by no means certain however that it does !) it means that the writer does not believe in the Divinity of our LORD JESUS CHRIST. Unless the sentence which is without a reference to the foot of the page be not a denial of the fundamental Doctrine of the Faith , I do not understand it. But look at all which precedes ; and then say if those are the remarks of a man entitled to dogmatize " On the Interpretation of Scripture." .... If Mr. Jowett really means that the Creeds cannot be reconciled with the Bible, how can he him- self subscribe to the Ylllth Article? If he means nothing of the kind, why does he write in such a weak, cloudy, illogical way ? But the whole of the case has not even yet been stated. Down from the remote period of which we have been hitherto speaking, the age of primitive Creeds, and oecumenical Councils, and ancient Fathers, in every country of the civilized world to which the Gospel has spread, the loftiest Intellect, the pro- foundest Learning, the sincerest Piety, have invariably endorsed the ancient and original method of inter- pretation. I am not implying that such corrobora- tion was in any sense required ; but the circumstance that it has been obtained^ at least deserves attention. Modes of thought are dependent on times and coun- tries. There is a fashion in all things. Great ad- n Ans. But He did not doubt ! 1 St. John iv. 2, 3.2 St. John ver. 7. JOWETT.] THE LEARNED MODERNS ENDORSE THE ANCIENT. clxXXV vances in Science, grand epochs in civilization, vicissitudes of opinion, difference of institutions, na- tional traditions, and the like, might be supposed to have wrought a permanent change even in this de- partment of Sacred Science. But it is not so. The storm has raged from one quarter or other of the hea- vens, but has ever spent its violence in vain. Still has the Church Catholic retained her own unbroken tradition. To keep to the history of that Church to which we, by GOD'S mercy, belong : The constant ap- peal, at the time of our own great Eeformation, was to the Fathers of the first four centuries. Ever since, the temper and spirit of our Commentators has been to revert to the same standard, to reproduce the same teaching. The most powerful minds and the most holy spirits, English Divines of the deepest thought and largest reading, let me add, of the soundest judgment and severest discrimination, have, in every age, down to the present, gratefully accepted not only the method, but even the very details of primitive Patristic Interpretation. But "the accept- ance of a hundred generations and the growing au- thority arising from it," like " the institutions based upon such ancient writings, and the history into which they have entwined themselves indissolubly for many centuries," all conspire to " constitute a perpetually increasing and strengthening p " body of evidence on the subject of Sacred Interpretation. Now, to oppose (1) to the learning, and piety, and wisdom, of every age of the English Church, (2) to the unbroken testimony of the Church Universal, (3) to the torrent of Patristic Antiquity, (4) to the decision of early Councils, and (5) the * still small p Dr. Moberly, as before, p. xlvii. A HISTORY OF INTERPRETATION. [PROF. voice ' of primitive Creeds, yet more, (6) to the con- stant practice of the Apostles, and, above all, (7) to the indisputable method of our Divine LORD Himself; to oppose to all this mighty accumulation of evi- dence, the simple a priori convictions of Mr. Jowett ! savours so strongly of the ridiculous, that it really seems superfluous to linger over the antithesis for a single moment. 4. Our task might now be looked upon as com- pleted. It only remains, in justice to the gentleman whose method we have been considering, to ascertain by what considerations he is induced to reject that method of Interpretation which, as we have seen, en- joys such overwhelming sanction. (i) In opposition to what goes before, then, he throws out a suggestion, that " nothing would be more likely to restore a natural feeling on this sub- ject than a History of the Interpretation of Scripture. It would take us back to the beginning; it would present in one view the causes which have darkened the meaning of words in the course of ages." (p. 338-9.) " Such a work would enable us to separate the ele- ments of Doctrine and Tradition with which the meaning of Scripture is encumbered in our own day." (p. 339.) Let us here be well understood with our author. The advantage of a good " History of Interpretation" would indeed be incalculably great. But Mr. Jowett, (like most other writers of his class,) assumes the point he has to prove, when he insinuates that the result of such a contribution to our Theological Literature would be to shew that all the world has been in error for 1700 years, and that he alone is right. That ' erring fancy ' has often been at work in the fields of sacred JOWETT.] MR. JOWETT, ILLOGICAL. clxxXVU criticism, who ever doubted ? That there have been epochs of Interpretation, different Schools, and varying tastes, in the long course of so many cen- turies of mingled light and darkness, learning and barbarism ; what need to declare ? A faithful history of Interpretation would of course establish these facts on a sure foundation. But the Eeverend Author forgets his Logic when he goes on from these undoubted generalities to imply that all has been confusion and utter uncertainty until now. Above all, common regard for the facts of the case ought to have preserved him from putting forth so monstrous a falsehood as the following : " Among German Commentators there is for the first time in the history of the world, an approach to agreement and certainty." (p. 340.) Let us however, passing by the many crooked remarks and unsound inferences with which the Eeve- rend writer, (more suo^) delights to perplex a plain question p , invite him to abide by the test which he himself proposes. For 1700 years, (he says,) the Interpretation of Scripture has been obscured and encumbered by successive Schools of Interpretation. The Interpreter's concern (he says) is with the Bible p E. g. " "We should observe how the popular explanations of Pro- phecy, as in heathen (Thucyd. ii. 54,) so also in Christian times, had adapted themselves to the circumstances of mankind." (The Reverend writer can never for a moment divest himself of his theory that Thucydides and the Bible stand on the same footing!) " We might remark that in our own country, and in the present generation especially, the interpretation of Scripture had assumed an apologetic character, as though making an effort to defend itself against some supposed inroad of Science and Criticism." (p. 340.) .... Just as if any other attitude was possible when one has to do with ' Essayists and Reviewers !' clxxxviii MR. JOWETT'S APPEAL [PROF. itself. "The simple words of that book he tries to preserve absolutely pure from the refinements of later times. . . . The greater part of his learning is a know- ledge of the text itself." [He is evidently the very man who sweeps the Jtouse to discover the pearl of great price, (p. 414.)] " He has no delight in the volu- minous literature which has overgrown it. He has no theory of Interpretation. A few rules guarding against common errors are enough for him He wants to be able to open his eyes, and see or ima- gine things as they truly are." (p. 338.) [How crooked by the way is all this ! "He has no theory of Interpretation q ?" Why, no ; for the best of all rea- sons. He denies Inspiration altogether ! His "theory" is that the Bible is an uninspired Book! .... How peculiar too, and how plaintive is the " want " of the supposed Interpreter, "to be able to open his eyes;" glued up, as they no doubt are, by the superstitious tendencies of the nineteenth century, and the tyranny of an intolerant age !] But we may perhaps state the matter more intelli- gibly and simply, thus: In order to ascertain the true principle of Scriptural Interpretation, let us, divesting ourselves of the complicated and voluminous lore of 1700 years, resort to the Bible itself. Let us go for our views to the fountain-head ; and abide by what we shall discover there. A fairer proposal (as I think) never was made. It exactly describes the method which I have humbly endeavoured myself to pursue in the ensuing Sermons. The inquiry will be found elaborated from p. 141 to i One would imagine that the Essayist and his critic were entirely agreed. See below, p. 74, "I refuse to accept any theory whatsoever." And p. 115, "Theory I have none." JOWETT.] TO SCRIPTURE, EAGERLY ACCEPTED. p. 160 of the present volume; and the result is to be read on the last-named page, in the following words : " that it may be regarded as a fundamental rule, that the Bible is not to be interpreted like a common look. This I gather infallibly from the plain fact, that the inspired writers themselves habitually interpret it as no other book either is, or can be interpreted. Next, I assert without fear of contradiction that inspired Interpretation, whatever varieties of method it may exhibit, is yet uniform and unequivocal in this one result; namely, that it proves Holy Scripture to be of far deeper significancy than at first sight appears. By no imaginable artifice of Ehetoric or sophistry of evasion, by no possible vehemence of denial or plau- sibility of counter assertion, can it be rendered pro- bable that Scripture has invariably one only meaning ; and that meaning, the most obvious and easy." Now, the reader is requested to observe that what precedes is the direct contradictory of the position which Mr. Jowett has written his Essay in order to establish. And thus we keep for ever coming back to his irpwrov \jsev8os, the fundamental falsity which underlies the whole of what he has written. (ii) But although we have eagerly resorted to Scrip- ture itself in order to ascertain on what principle Scrip- ture ought to be interpreted, we cannot for a moment allow some of the sophistries which which the Eeverend Author has encumbered the question, to escape with- out castigation. He may not first court an appeal to the School of Apostolical Interpretation; and then, before the result of that appeal has been ascertained, go off in praise of the illumination of the present age ; and claim to represent the Theological mind of Europe in his own person. " Educated persons," (he has the cxc MR. JOWETT'S NOTIONS OF THE VALUE OF [PROF. impertinence to assert,) "are beginning to ask (!), not what Scripture may be made to mean, but what it does. And it is no exaggeration to say that he who in the present state of knowledge will confine him- self to the plain meaning of words, and the study of their context, may know more of the original spirit and intention of the authors of the New Testament than all the controversial writers of former ages put together" (pp. 340-1.) This might be tolerated per- haps, in the self- constituted oracle of a Mechanics' Institute; but as proceeding from a Divinity Lec- turer in one of the first Colleges in Oxford, I hesitate not to declare that such an opinion is simply dis- graceful. Very much of a piece with this, in point of flip- pancy, (though barely consistent with his frequent assertions that the entire subject is hemmed in by grave difficulties,) are the Eegius Professor of Greek's remarks on the value of learning as a help to the Inter- pretation of Holy "Writ. " Learning obscures as well as illustrates." (p. 337.) "There seem to be reasons for doubting whether any considerable light can be thrown on the New Testament from inquiry into the language." (p. 393.) " Minute corrections of tenses or particles are no good." (p. 393.) "Discussions respecting the chronology of St. Paul's life and his second imprison- ment ; or about the identity of James, the brother of the LORD; or, in another department, respecting the use of the Greek article, have gone far beyond the line of utility." (p. 393.) "The minuteness of the study of Greek in our own day has also a tendency to intro- duce into the text associations which are not really found there." (p. 391.) Lastly, he complains of "the error of interpreting every particle, as though it were a JOWETT.] LEARNING TO AN INTERPRETER OF SCRIPTURE. CXC1 link in the argument ; instead of being, as is often the case, an excrescence of style" (p. 391.) So then, in brief, the Fathers are in a conspiracy to mislead : Creeds and Councils encumber the sense : Modern Commentators are not to be trusted : the com- parison of Scripture with Scripture, except it be " of the same age and the same authors," " will tend rather to confuse than to elucidate :" (p. 383 :) " Learning ob- scures," and an accurate appreciation of the meaning of the text is " no good !" " When the meaning of Greek words is once known r , the young student has almost r Had the following passage occurred sooner to my recollection, it should have been sooner inserted: "Are we to conduct the Interpretation of Holy Scripture as we would that of any other writing ? "We are and we are not. So far as THE WORDS are con- cerned, the mere words of Scripture have the same office with those of all language written or spoken in sincerity." They must be studied " by the same means and the same rules which would guide us to the meaning of any other work ; by a knowledge of the lan- guages in which the books were written, the Hebrew, the Chaldee, the Greek, and of those other languages, as the Syriac and Arabic, which may illustrate them ; and of all the ordinary rules of Gram- mar and Criticism, and the peculiar information respecting times and circumstances, history and customs, all the resources, in a word, of the Interpretation of any work of any kind. The Gram- matical and Historical interpretation of profane or sacred writings is the same. ..." All Scripture," meanwhile, "is given ty Inspi- ration of GOD:" and this at once introduces several important differences ; which whoever neglects may yet, with whatsoever ad- vantages of learning and talent, fail to discover the real meaning of the Word of GOD." From Dr. Hawkins (Provost of Oriel) 's In- augural Lecture as Dean Ireland's Professor, delivered in 1847, pp. 29-30. It is but fair to Mr. Jowett to add that, in terms, he has very nearly (not quite) said the self-same thing himself, at p. 337, (upper half the page.) But it is the peculiar method of this most slippery writer, or most illogical thinker, occasionally to grant almost all that haart can desire, as far as words go ; but straightway to deny, or CXC11 MR. JOWETT EXPOSED. [PROF. all the real materials which are possessed ly the great- est Biblical scholar, in the book itself." (p. 384.) In a word, (as Dr. Moberly has had the manliness to remark,) " It simply comes to this : A little Greek, (not too much,) and a strong self-relying imagination, and you may interpret Holy Scripture as well as Mr. Jowett !" (p. hdi,) . . . Benighted himself, the un- happy author of this Essay is so apprehensive lest a ray of light from Heaven shall break in upon one of his disciples, even sideways, as it were, from the margin of the Bible, that he carefully prohibits " the indiscriminate use of parallel passages" as " useless and uncritical." . . . Yet may one not with discrimination refer to the margin? Better not! " No good!" (p. 393.) replies the Oracle. " Even the critical use of parallel passages is not without danger" (p. 383.) . . . O shame ! And all this from a College Tutor and Lecturer on Divinity ! this from one entrusted with the care of educating young men ! this from # Eegius Professor of Greek 6 ! evacuate, or explain away, the tiling which those words ought to signify. Thus, at p. 337, he volunteers the remark that " No one who has a Christian feeling would place Classical on a level with Sacred Literature ;" and at p. 377, he observes that, " There are many respects in which Scripture is unlike any other book." And yet, (as I have shewn, p. cxliii. to p. cl.,) Mr. Jowett puts the Bible on a level with Sophocles and Plato ; and argues throughout as if Scripture were in no essential respect unlike any other book ! 8 " Had this writer reminded us that the New Testament Greek is a Greek of different age from that of the classical writers ; had he simply warned us that we must not press our Attic Greek scholar- ship too far, but study the Alexandrian Greek of the Septuagint, Philo, &c. in order to ascertain the exact meaning of the words and phrases of the writers of the New Testament ; still more, if, as the result of such study on his own part, he had offered us some wcll- digested observations on the use of tenses, articles, or particles in JOWETT.] 19 th CENTURY A CONTRAST TO THE 15 th & 16 th . CXclii Mr. Jowett congratulates himself that " Biblical criticism has made two great steps onward, at the time of the Beformation, and in our own day?"* But his notion is amply refuted by the known facts of the case : for when he adds, " The diffusion of a critical spirit in History arid Literature is affecting the criti- cism of the Bible in our own day in a manner not un- like the burst of intellectual life in the fifteenth or sixteenth centuries* ;" (p. 340 ;) he clearly requires to be reminded that the success of the Divinity of the [Reformation was owing to the grand appeal then made to the Patristic writings. So far then as any of ourselves are resorting to those sources of information, there may be a faint resem- blance in kind between the spirit which animates us, and that which wrought so nobly in the Fathers of our spiritual freedom, Cranmer and Eidley and the other learned and holy men who revised our Offices. But if " German Commentators" and their method be supposed to be the ideals to which the age is tending, then the Theology of the middle of the nineteenth century stands in marked contrast to what prevailed in the middle of the sixteenth ; and our spirit is the very reverse of theirs. But I hasten on. (iii) " The uncertainty which prevails in the Inter- pretation of Scripture," Mr. Jowett proposes to get rid of, (this is in fact the aim of his entire Essay,) the sacred writings; he would have done some service. But this talk about ' excessive attention to the article,' and ' particles being often mere excrescences of style,' is of no effect except to expose the writer to ridicule. It sounds as if he had been accustomed to lay down the law to an admiring audience of ' clever young men,' and had forgotten that there were still 'men in Denmark* who under- stood Greek." Some Remarks on Essays and Reviews, prefixed to Dr. Moberly's 'Sermons on the Beatitudes.' (1861.) pp. Ixii.-iii. cxciv MR. JOWETT'S DISGRACEFUL [PROF. by denying that there are in Scripture any deeper meanings to interpret. In the meantime, by every device in his power, he seeks from a priori conside- rations, (as we have seen,) to shew that no such mean- ings can exist. We allow ourselves to be biassed, to a singular extent, he says, "by certain previous suppositions with which we come to the perusal of Scripture." (p. 342.) But for this, " no one would interpret Scripture as many do." (Ibid.) Let us as- certain then what these erroneous " suppositions" are. (a) " The failure of a prophecy is never admitted, in spite of Scripture and of history, (Jer. xxxvi. 30. Isaiah xxiii. Amos vii. 1017.)" (p. 343.) Now this can only mean two things : viz. first, that a Divine Prophecy is not an infallible utterance : and secondly, that the three places quoted from the Old Testament are proofs of the fallibility of Pro- phecy ; proofs which ought to overcome prejudice, and persuade men to renounce their "previous sup- position" that Prophecy is ^fallible. Certainly the charge is a grave one. For if Pro- pJiecy is untrue, then what becomes of Inspiration ? And yet, how stands the case ? The writer seems to have expected " that no one would refer to the pas- sages that he has bracketed, or that all would be too ignorant to know the utter groundlessness of his as- sumption. If there are, in the whole Scripture, two past prophecies which were signally and remarkably fulfilled, they are the first two which he has selected as instances to be dropped down, without a remark, of the failure of Scripture prophecies ! And as to the third passage, surely it implies an i incuria' which might be deemed ' crassa' to have asserted that it contained an instance of the non-fulfilment of Pro- JOWETT.] BLUNDERS, AND MISSTATEMENTS. CXCV phecy : for it implies that Mr. Jowett has read the verses to which he refers with so little attention as not to have discovered that the prediction which failed of its fulfilment was no utterance of Amos, but was the message of Amaziah, the priest of Bethel, in which he falsely attributes to Amos words he had not spoken ! . . . Surely such slips as these are as discredit- able to a scholar as a Divine* !" And this, from a gentleman who has the imper- tinence to remind us oracularly, that "he who would understand the nature of Prophecy in the Old Tes- tament, should have the courage to examine how far its details were minutety fulfilled !" (p. 347.) Are we then to infer that Mr. Jowett's courage failed him when he came to Amos vii. 10 17 ? (/3) " The mention of a name later than the sup- posed age of the prophet is not allowed, as in other writings, to be taken in evidence of the date. (Isaiah xlv. 1.)" (p. 343.) But what is the meaning of this complaint when applied to Isaiah's well known prophecy concerning Cyrus? In the words of the excellent critic last quoted, " We know not that we could point to such an instance as this in the writings of any other author of credit. Of course, Mr. Jowett knows as well as we do the distinction between History and Prophecy ; and that the mention in any document of the name of one who was unborn at the time fixed as the date of the writing, would be at once a complete disproof of its accuracy as a history of the past, and a proof of its accuracy as a prediction of the future. Of course he also remembers that the point he has to prove is that this passage is History and not Predic- * Quarterly Eeview, No. 217, p. 298. o2 cxcvi MR. JOWETT'S METHOD. [PROF. tion ; and his mode of proving is this ; he assumes that it is a history of the past, advancing as a charge against the believers of Bevelation, that they do not, (as they would in any other History,) reject the genuineness of the passage because it embalms a future name in a past history ! . . . This audacious, (for we cannot use a weaker word,) assumption of what he has to prove, pervades his Essay x ." And thus, into whatever department of speculation we follow this writer, the tortuous path is still found to conduct us back to the same underlying fallacious assumption, viz. that the Bible is like any other Boole ; in other words, is not inspired. (y) Persons in Mr. Jowett's position, " find them- selves met by a sort of presupposition that f GOD speaks not as Man speaks. 7 " (p. 343.) " A sort of presupposition," indeed ! . . . . Does the Eeverend gentleman really expect that we will stoop so low as argue this point also with him ? It shall suffice to have branded him with his own words. " The suspicion of Deism, or perhaps of Atheism, awaits inquiry. By such fears, a good man (!) refuses to be influenced : a philosophical mind (!) is apt to cast them aside with too much bitterness. It is better to close the book, than to read it under conditions of thought which are imposed from without." (p. 343.) Well surely, the proximity to Balliol College of the scene of Cranmer and Bidley's martyrdom, must have turned the brain of the Eegius Professor of Greek ! Let him be well assured however that not rational " Inquiry," but irrational assumption; not the modest cogitations of " a philosophical mind," but the arrogant dreams of a weak and confused intellect, are what have x Quarterly Review, No. 217, pp. 265-6. JOWETT.] HIS CHARGES AGAINST INSPIRATION. CXCvii excited such general indignation of late, among "good men," from one end of the Kingdom to the other. Nor could anything probably of equal pretensions be readily appealed to, which is nevertheless more truly unphilosophical, fallacious, and foolish, than the Essay now under consideration. (iv) Subsequently, (p. 344,) Mr. Jowett professes to grapple with the phenomenon of Inspiration. His method is instructive. He begins by inadvertently advancing a direct untruth: for he asserts that for none " of the higher or supernatural views of Inspira- tion is there any foundation in the Gospels or Epi- stles." (p. 345.) Had he then forgotten St. Paul's statements in Gal. i. 1, 11 17 : ii. 2, 7 9. 1 Cor. xv. 3. Ephes. iii. 3, &c., &c. ? But I have esta- blished the contradictory of the Professor's position in the ensuing Sermons, p. 53 to p. 57, to which the reader must be referred. This done, he proceeds to assert that, . (a) Inspiration does not preserve a writer from inaccuracy. And the charge is substantiated by the following ridiculous enumeration : " One [Evan- gelist] supposes the original dwelling-place of our LORD'S Parents to have been Bethlehem 7 , another Nazareth 2 ." (This from a Lecturer on Divinity ! Does Mr. Jowett then suppose that his readers have never opened the Gospels, and do not know better ? Why, loth his statements are simply false!} " They trace His genealogy in different ways." (Yes. In two. And why not in twenty ? Is Mr. Jowett not aware that a genealogy may be differently traced through different ancestors?) " One mentions the thieves blaspheming : another has preserved to after y St. Matth. ii. 1, 22. St. Luke ii. 41. cxcviii MR. JOWETT'S REMARKS [PROF. ages the record of the penitent thief:" (And why should he not ?) " They appear to differ about the day and hour of the Crucifixion." (Yes, they appear to differ: but they do not differ /) "The narrative of the woman who anointed our LORD'S feet with ointment is told in all four, each narrative having more or less considerable variations." (There is no conceivable reason why this should not have been as Mr. Jowett relates ; but, as a matter of fact, we have here another of this Gentleman's private blunders, shewing what an uncritical reader he must be, of that book concerning which he presumes to dogmatize so freely.) " These are a few instances of the differ- ences which arose in the traditions of the earliest ages respecting the history of our LORD." (Nay, but this is to beg the whole question !) " He who wishes to investigate the character of the sacred writings should not be afraid to make a catalogue of them all, with the view of estimating their cumulative weight." (p. 346.) (Truly, it would be well for Mr. Jowett if he had as little to fear from such " investigations" as the Evangelists !) " In the same way, he who would understand the nature of Prophecy in the Old Testament, should have the courage to examine how far its details were mi- nutely fulfilled. The absence of such a fulfilment may further lead him to discover that he took the letter for the spirit in expecting it." (p. 347.) But really this is again simply to beg the whole question. Unbe- coming in any writer, how absurd also is such a sen- tence from the pen of one who, (as we have lately seen,) no sooner descends to particulars than he makes himself ridiculous by betraying his own excessive ignorance. . . . "The letter for the spirit," also I which JOWETT.] ON INSPIRATION EXAMINED. CXC1X is one of the i cant' expressions of Mr. Jowett and his accomplices in l free handling,' based evidently on a misconception of the meaning of 2 Cor. iii. 6. The contrast recurs at pp. 36, 357, 375, 425, &e., &c. (/3) Still bent on shewing that Inspiration does not secure Scripture from blots and blemishes, Mr. Jowett proceeds as follows. (I must present him to the reader, for a short space, in extenso ; since by no other expe- dient can the complicated fallacies of his very intricate and perverse method be exposed.) " Inspiration is a fact which we infer from the study of Scripture, not of one portion only, but of the whole." (p. 347.) (Now even this is not a correct way of stating the case. Still, because the words may bear an honourable sense, we pass on.) " Obviously then, it embraces writings of very different kinds, the book of Esther, for example, or the Song of Solo- mon, as well as the Gospel of St. John." (That the volume of Inspiration is of this complex character, and that it embraces writings so diverse, is beyond dispute.) " It is reconcileable with the mixed good and evil of the characters of the Old Testament, which nevertheless does not exclude them from the favour of GOD." (Why the Inspiration of a writer should not be < reconcileable ' with any amount of wickedness in the persons about whom he writes, I am quite at a loss to perceive. Neither do I see why "the mixed good and evil " of certain " characters of the Old Tes- tament," (or of the New either,) should " exclude them from the favour of GOD." What else becomes of your hope, and mine, of Eternal Life?) "Inspiration is also reconcileable," (he proceeds,) " with the attri- bution to the Divine Being of actions at variance with that higher revelation which He has given of Himself in cc MR. JOWETT'S REMARKS [PROF. the Gospel" .(Is this meant as an insult to " the Divine Being ?" or simply as a slur on Eevelation ? Either way, we reject the charge with indignation a .) u It is not inconsistent with imperfect or opposite aspects of the Truth, as in the Book of Job or Eccle- siastes :" (Nothing which comes from GOD should be called " imperfect:" but why different aspects of the Truth should not be brought out, by different writers, as by St. Paul and by James, it is hard to see.) " With variations of fact in the Gospels, or the Books of Kings and Chronicles :" (We do not admit that Inspiration is consistent with " variations of fact ;" but with dif- ferent versions of the same incident, it is confessedly compatible.) " With inaccuracies of language in the Epistles of St. Paul." (With grammatical inelegancies, no doubt; but not with logical inaccuracies.') "For these are all found in Scripture :" (This statement, by the way, should have been substantiated by at least as many references as there are heads in the indictment,) " neither is there any reason why they should not be ; except a general impression that Scripture ought to have been written in a way dif- ferent from what it has." (Just as if Mankind for 1800 years had been the victims of an a priori conception as to how Holy Scripture ought to have been written !) u A principle of progressive revelation admits them all ; and this is already contained in the words of our SAVIOUR, ' Moses because of the hardness of your hearts;' or even in the Old Testament, ' Henceforth there shall be no more this proverb in the house of Israel ?' " (0 if Catholic writers were to expound Holy Scripture with the license of these gentlemen ! . . . . That the scheme of Eevelation has been progressive, is * See Sermon YJL, pp. 222232. JOWETT.] ON INSPIRATION EXAMINED. CC1 a Theological truism. What that has to do with the question in hand, I see not.) " For what is progres- sive is necessarily imperfect in its earlier stages :" (" Imperfect " in what sense?) "and even erring to those who come after." (No, not in that sense im- perfect, certainly !)..." There is no more reason why imperfect narratives should be excluded from Scripture than imperfect grammar ; no more ground for expect- ing that the New Testament would be logical or Aris- totelian in form, than that it would be w r ritten in Attic Greek." (Now why this cloudy shuffling about "imperfect narratives," instead of saying what you mean, like a man ! Further, Is Mr. Jowett so weak as not to perceive that there is no force whatever in his supposed parallel? The Discourses of the Incarnate SON, for instance, are certainly anything but " Aris- totelian in form." His dialect, (Angels bowed to catch it, I nothing doubt !) was that of the despised Galilee. But need the teaching it conveyed have there- fore been " imperfect ?" Why may not the least per- fect Greek be the vehicle for the more perfect Doctrine? What connexion is there between the casket and the jewel which it encloses ?) (7) The Eeverend writer promises us help, from " another consideration which has been neglected by writers on this subject." (The announcement makes us attentive.) "It is this, that any true Doctrine of Inspiration must conform to all well -ascertained facts of History or of Science." (We scarcely see the drift of this ill- worded proposition ; but are disposed to assent.) "The same fact cannot be true and un- true," (Who ever supposed that it could?) "any more than the same words can have two opposite meanings." (But why glide at once into a gross fal- ccii MR. JOWETT'S REMARKS [PROF. sity ? Are there not plenty of words and speeches, of the kind called ' equivocal ' or ' ambiguous,' which are of this nature ? I am content to refer this writer to his own pages, for the abundant refutation of his own assertion. No man in the world knows better than Mr. Jowett that "the same words can have two opposite meanings") " The same fact cannot be true in Eeligion, when seen by the light of Faith; and untrue in Science, when looked at through the me- dium of evidence or experiment." (Why not ? For example, ' He maketh His Sun to rise.' ' If GOD so clothe the grass of the field.' l GOD said, Let there be light.' Who sees not that the view which Faith and which Physical Science respectively take of the same phenomenon, may essentially differ?) "It is ridiculous to suppose that the Sun goes round the Earth in the same sense in which the Earth goes round the Sun;" (Very ridiculous.) "or that the world appears to have existed, but has not existed, during the vast epochs of which Geology speaks to us." (Leave out the words, "appears to have," and this also is undeniable.) "But if so, there is no need of elaborate reconcilements of Eevelation and Science." (How does that follow ? If what is thought to be Di- vinely revealed, and what is thought to be scienti- fically ascertained, seem to be conflicting truths, why should not an effort be made to reconcile them ?) " They reconcile themselves the moment any scientific truth is distinctly ascertained." (Yes : by the Human simply trying to thrust the Divine out of doors !) " As the idea of Nature enlarges, the idea of Eeve- lation also enlarges :" (I deny that there is any such intimate connexion as this author supposes between Physical Science and Divinity,) "it was a temporary JOWETT.] ON INSPIRATION EXAMINED. CClll misunderstanding which severed them." (But when were Nature and Eevelation ever for an instant "severed?") "And as the knowledge of Nature which is possessed by the few is communicated in its leading features at least, to the many, they will re- ceive it with a higher conception of the ways of GOD to Man. It may hereafter appear as natural to the majority of Mankind to see the Providence of GOD in the order of the world, as it once was to appeal to in- terruptions of it." (p. 349.) (As if an increased know- ledge of Nature were the condition of Theological en- lightenment !....! presume that the latter clause, so hazy and the reverse of obvious in its meaning ! is intended to convey the sentiment which Mr. Baden Powell expresses as follows : " The inevitable pro- gress of research must, within a longer or shorter period, unravel all that seems most marvellous ; and what is at present least understood will become as familiarly known to the Science of the future, as those points which a few centuries ago were involved in equal obscurity, but now are thoroughly under- stood V) (&) We are next informed " that there are a class of scientific facts with which popular opinions on The- ology often conflict Such especially are the facts relating to the formation of the Earth and the begin- nings of the Human Kace." (p. 349.) (And pray, what "facts" are these, relative to the "beginnings of the Human Bace," which conflict with Scripture ?) .... "Almost all intelligent persons are agreed that the earth has existed for myriads of ages :" (Which is perfectly true.) " The best informed are of opinion that the history of nations extends back some thousand b Essays and Reviews, p. 109. cciv MR. JOWETT'S REMARKS [PROF. years before the Mosaic Chronology.'' (Which is de- cidedly false.) " Eecent discoveries in Geology may perhaps open a further vista of existence for the hu- man species ; while it is possible, and may one day be known, that Mankind spread not from one but from many centres over the globe ; or, (as others say,) that the supply of links which are at present wanting in the chain of animal life may lead to new conclusions respecting the origin of Man." (A cool way, this, of anticipating that something which ^may] (or may not!} be discovered hereafter, will demonstrate that the beginning of the Bible is all a fable !) "Now," (proceeds our author,) "let it be granted that" " the proof of some of these facts, especially of those last- mentioned, is wanting ; still it is a false policy to set up Inspiration or Revelation in opposition to them, a principle which can have no influence on them, and should be kept rather out of their way." (Considerate man !) " The Sciences of Geology and comparative Philology are steadily gaining ground. Many of the guesses of twenty years ago have been certainties ; and the guesses of to-day may hereafter become so. Shall we peril Religion (!) on the possibility of their untruth ? on such a cast to stake the life of Man, im- plies not only a recklessness of facts (!), but a mis- understanding of the nature of the Gospel. If it is fortunate for Science, it is perhaps more fortunate for Christian Truth, that the admission of Galileo's dis- covery has for ever settled the principle of the rela- tions between them." (pp. 349-50.) .... Now, what a curious picture of a perverse and crooked mind does such a sentence exhibit ! Divine Revelation can " have no influence" of course, on facts of any kind, (including facts in Physical Science,) JOWETT.] ON INSPIRATION EXAMINED. CCV when once those facts have been well ascertained. But, in the entire absence of such facts, why should we refuse to listen to the well ascertained Revelation of GOD? Nothing is more emphatic, for example, than the Divine declaration that the whole Human family is derived from a single pair ; and the origin of Man is plainly set down in Genesis. Why then oppose to this, the confessedly undiscovered fact that " mankind spread from many centres ;" and the purely specula- tive possibility that, hereafter, a certain theory " may lead to new conclusions respecting the origin of Man ?" As for "Beligion" being " perilled on the possi- bility" of the truth or untruth of the Sciences of Geo- logy and comparative Philology; we really would submit that GOD may be safely left to take care of His own; and that "peril," there is, there can be, none ! And then, the maudlin tenderness of an " Essayist and Ke viewer" (of all persons in the world !) for "the life of Man" meaning thereby his Christian hope, and Faith in the EEDEEMER ! . . . As if, (first,) Man's "Life" were in any sense endangered, by our uphold- ing the honour and authority of the Bible ! And (secondly,) as if the age had shewn itself in the least degree impatient of scientific investigation ! And (thirdly,) as if Religion depended, or could be made to depend, on Physical phenomena, or on the progress of Natural Science, at all! . . . . I scruple not to say that arguments like these impress me with the mean- est opinion of Mr. Jowett's intellectual powers : while they prove to demonstration that he does not in the least understand the subject on which he yet writes with such feeble vehemence. But I may not proceed any further, or my pages ccvi MR. JOWETT'S OPINIONS. [PROF. will equal in extent those of the gentleman already named. Indeed, to follow that most confused of thinkers, and crooked of disputants, through all his perverse pages ; to expose his habitual paltry evasive dodging, rhis shifting equivocations, his misappli- cations of Scripture, his unworthy insinuations, his plaintive puerilities of thought and sentiment ; would require a thick volume. If Mr. Jowett does not deny the Personality of the HOLY GHOST, he ought to be thoroughly ashamed of himself for pen- ning sentences which can lead to no other inference. For he ought to know that when men talk of words " receiving a more exact meaning than they will truly bear;" and of what "is spoken in a figure being con- strued with the severity of a logical statement, while passages of an opposite tenour are overlooked or set aside:" (p. 360.) men mean to repudiate the doctrine which those words are thought to convey; not to imply their acceptance of it. So again, if Mr. Jowett holds the doctrine of Original Sin, he ought to be heartily ashamed of himself for having insinuated that it depends " on two figurative expressions of /St. Paul to which there is no parallel in any other part of Scrip- ture" (p. 361.) Nor, however moderate his attain- ments as a teacher of Divinity, ought he to be capable of putting forth such a notorious misstatement as that the doctrine of Infant Baptism rests upon a verse in the Acts (xvi. 33,) which verse has really nothing whatever to do with the question*, (p. 360.) Professor Jowett shuts up his Essay with a passage which, for a certain amount of tender pathos in the sentiment, has been often quoted, and sometimes ad- mired. He says : c See Dr. Moberly, (as before,) p. Iv. Ix. JOWETT.] MR. JOWETT'S PERORATION. ccvii "The suspicion or difficulty which attends critical inquiries is no reason for doubting their value. The Scripture nowhere leads us to suppose that the cir- cumstance of all men speaking well of us is any ground for supposing that we are acceptable in the sight of God. And there is no reason why the con- demnation of others should be witnessed to by our own conscience. Perhaps it may be true that, owing to the jealousy or fear of some, the reticence of others, the terrorism of a few, we may not always find it easy to regard these subjects with calmness and judgment. But, on the other hand, these accidental circumstances have nothing to do with the question at issue ; they cannot have the slightest influence on the meaning of words, or on the truth of facts. . . . " Lastly, there is some nobler idea of truth than is supplied by the opinion of mankind in general, or the voice of parties in a Church. Every one, whether a student of Theology or not, has need to make war against his prejudices no less than against his pas- sions ; and, in the religious teacher, the first is even more necessary than the last He who takes the prevailing opinions of Christians and decks them out in their gayest colours, who reflects the better mind of the world to itself is likely to be its favourite teacher. In that ministry of the Gospel, even when assuming forms repulsive to persons of education (!), no doubt the good is far greater than the error or harm. But there is also a deeper work which is not depen- dent on the opinions of men, in which many elements combine, some alien to Eeligion, or accidentally at variance with it. That work can hardly expect to win much popular favour, so far as it runs counter to the feelings of religious parties. But he who bears a ccviii MR. JOWETT'S PERORATION. [PROF. part in it may feel a confidence, which no popular caresses or religious sympathy could inspire, that he has by a Divine help heen enabled to plant his foot somewhere beyond the waves of Time. He may depart hence before the natural term, worn out with intellec- tual toil; regarded with suspicion by many of his contemporaries ; yet not without a sure hope that the love of Truth, which men of saintly lives often seem to slight, is, nevertheless, accepted before GOD." (pp. 432-3.) My respect for a fellow-man induces me to offer a few remarks on all this. Let me be permitted then to declare that I am as incapable as any one who ever breathed the air of this lower world, of making light of the sentiments of true genius. I can respond with my whole heart to the passion-stricken cry of one who, when " regarded with suspicion by many of his contemporaries," is observed to hail his fellows with confidence, across the gulph of Time ; and as it were implore them, after many days, to do him right. Nay, were I to behold a man of splendid, but misguided powers, elaborating from GOD'S Word a plausible system of his own, whereby to bring back the Golden Age to suffering Humanity ; and in- sisting that he beheld in the common revelations of the SPIRIT, the unsuspected outlines of such a form of polity as Man never dreamed of, (nor, it may be, Angels either ;) I should experience a kind of gener- ous sympathy with this bright-eyed enthusiast; even while I proceeded to test his wild dream by what I believed to be the standard of right Eeason. Then, as the specious fabric was seen suddenly to collapse and melt away, should I not, with affectionate sorrow, secretly mourn that such brilliant parts had not been JOWETT.] MR. JOWETT'S ABSURD POSITION. ccix enlisted on the side of Truth ? and feel as if I could have been content to go about for life maimed in body, or hopelessly impoverished in estate, if so great a dis- aster could but have been prevented as the loss of one who ought to have been a standard-bearer in Israel ? Once more. Although the cold shade of unbelief has never for an instant, (thank GOD !) darkened my spirit ; so that one may not be very apt to sympathize with men who walk about hampered with a doubt; yet, were one to know, (as one has often known, too often, alas !) that the arrow was rankling in a friend's heart, who by consequence shunned the society of his fellows, and walked in moody abstraction, look- ing as if life had lost its charm, and as if nothing on the earth's surface were any longer to him a joy ; would one not be the first to go after such a sufferer ; and seek whether a firm hand and steady eye might not avail to extract the poisoned shaft ? If that might not be, at least by daily acts of unaltered kindness, and the ways which brotherly sympathy suggests, who would not strive to recover such an one? If all other arts proved unavailing, it would remain for a man with the ordinary instincts of humanity, in silence and sorrow at least, to look on, while the solitary doubter was paying the bitter penalty, doubtless, of his sin. But how widely different, rather, how utterly dissimilar, is the phenomenon before us! Here is a singularly confused and shallow thinker oppressed with the vastness of his discovery, that the Bible has nothing in it ! Here is a Clergyman of the Church of England, and a Lecturer in Divinity, whose diffi- culty is how he shall convince the world that the Bible is like any other look ! Here is the sceptical P ccx MR. JOWETT'S DISCOVERY THAT [PROF. fellow of a College, conspiring with six others, to produce a volume of which Germany itself, (having changed its mind,) would already be ashamed ! . . . Mr. Jowett is enthusiastic for a negation I Without belief himself, he cannot rest because Christendom has, on the whole, a good deal of belief remaining ! If he may but unsettle somebody's mind, his Essay will have achieved its purpose, and its author will not have lived in vain ! . . . Sublime privilege for " the only man in the University of Oxford who" is said to " exercise a moral and spiritual influence at all corresponding to that which was once wielded by John Henry Newman d !" I shall be thought a very profane person, I dare say, by the friends and apologists of Mr. Jowett, if I avow that the passage with which he concludes his Essay, instead of sounding in my ears like the plain- tive death-song of departing Genius, sounds to me like nothing so much as the piteous whine of a school- boy who knows that he deserves chastisement, and perceives that he is about to experience his deserts. System, or Theory, the Eeverend Gentleman has none to propose. Yiews, except negative ones, Mr. Jowett is altogether guiltless of. Can anybody in his senses suppose that a man "has, by a Divine help (!)$ been enabled to plant his foot somewhere bet/ond the waves of Time," (p. 433,) who doubts everything, and be- lieves nothing? Can any one of sane mind dream that posterity will come to the rescue of a man who, when he is asked for his story, rejoins, (with a well- known needy mechanic,) that he has "none to tell, Sir?" What then is posterity to vindicate? What has the Eegius Professor of Greek written so many d Edinburgh Review, (April, 1861,) p. 476. JOWETT.] THE BIBLE HAS NOTHING IN IT. CCX1 weak pages to prove ? Just nothing ! If Mr. Jowett's Essay could enforce the message it carries, the result would simply be that the world would become dis- believers in the Inspiration of the Bible : they would ^believe that Scripture has any sense but that which lies on the surface : they would therefore disbelieve the Prophets and Evangelists and Apostles of CHRIST : they would ^believe the words of our LORD JESUS CHRIST Himself! . . . Has Mr. Jowett, then, grown grey under the laborious process of arriving at this series of negations ? "When he anticipates u departing hence before the natural term," does he mean that he is " tvorn out with the intellectual toil" of propounding nothing ! and that he expects the sympathy and grati- tude of posterity for what he has propounded ? But this is not all. Instead of coming abroad, (if come abroad he must,) in that garb of humility which befits doubt, that self-distrust which becomes one whose fault, or whose misfortune it is, that he simply cannot believe, Mr. Jowett assumes throughout, the insolent air of intellectual superiority ; the tone of one at whose bidding Theology must absolutely ' keep moving.' A truncheon and a number on his collar, alone seem wanting. The menacing voice, and autho- ritative air, are certainly not away, as I proceed to shew. " It may be observed that a change in some of the prevailing modes of Interpretation, is not so much a matter of expediency as of necessity. The original meaning of Scripture is beginning to be understood" (p. 418.) " Criticism has/r more power than it formerly had. It has spread itself over ancient, and even modern history. . . . Whether Scripture can be made an exception P 2 CCxii SPECIMENS OF [PROF. to other ancient writings, now that the nature of both is more understood ; whether . . . the views of the last century will hold out, these are questions respecting which" (p. 420.) it is hard to judge. " It has to be considered whether the intellectual forms under which Christianity has been described, may not also be in a state of transition" (p. 420.) " Now, as the Interpretation of Scripture is receiving another character, it seems that distinctions of Theology which were in great measure based on old Interpre- tations, are beginning to fade away." . . . " There are other signs that times are changing, and we are changing too." (p. 421.) "These reflections bring us back to the question with which we began, What effect will the critical Interpretation of Scripture have on Theology?" (p. 422.) Again : " As the time has come when it is no longer possible to ignore the results of criticism, it is of importance that Christianity should be seen to be in harmony with them." (p. 374.) (The sentences which immediately follow shall be exhibited in distinct paragraphs, in order that they may separately enjoy admiration. Each is a gem or a curiosity in its way.) " That objections to some received views should be valid, and yet that they should be always held up as the objections of Infidels, is a mischief to the Christian cause." "It is a mischief that critical observations which any intelligent man can make for himself (!), should be ascribed to Atheism or Unbelief." " It would be a strange and almost incredible thing that the Gospel, which at first made war only on the vices of mankind, should now be opposed to one of the highest and rarest of human virtues, the love of Truth" JOWETT.] INSOLENT ASSUMPTIO^ CCXlii "And that in the present day the great object of Christianity should be, not to change the lives of men, but to prevent them from changing their opinions ; that would be a singular inversion of the purposes for which CHRIST came into the world." We are really constrained to pause for a moment, and to inquire what this last sentence means. Are not "the lives of men" mainly dependent on " their opinions ?" Why then contrast the two ? And which of our " opinions" does Mr. Jowett desire to see changed? Would he have us resign our belief in the Atonement ? reject the Divinity of CHRIST ? deny the Personality of the HOLY GHOST ? put the Bible on a level with Sophocles and Plato ? ridicule the idea of Inspiration ? . . . How would it be a " singular inversion of the purposes of CHRIST'S Coming," that Christianity should "prevent" mankind from "changing" such " opinions" as these ? " The Christian religion is in a false position when all the tendencies of knowledge are opposed to it^ (All the tendencies of knowledge, then, are opposed to the Christian Religion !) " Such a position cannot be long maintained, or can only end in the withdrawal of the educated classes from the influences of Eeligion." (So we are to look for " the withdrawal of the educated classes from the influences of Religion*!") e The Rev. H. B. "Wilson says, " If those who distinguish them- selves in Science and Literature cannot, in a scientific and literary age, be effectually and cordially attached to the Church of their nation, they must sooner or later be driven into a position of hos- tility to it." (p. 198.) This is one of the many notes, if not of "concert and comparison," at least of intense sympathy between the Essayists and Reviewers. CCxiv INSOLENT ASSUMPTION OF [PROF. After anticipating " religious dissolution," because of "the progress of ideas, (!) with which Christian teachers seem to be ill at ease," (!) Mr. Jowett, (who we presume is speaking of himself,) says, " Time was when the Gospel was before the Age :" (The Gospel is therefore now behind the age !) " when the difficulties of Christianity were difficulties of the heart only :" (When was that?) "and the highest minds found in its truths not only the rule of their lives, but a well- spring of intellectual delight." (All this then has ceased to be the case ! " The highest minds" being of course represented by Mr, Jowett !) " Is it to be held a thing impossible that the Chris- tian Eeligion, instead of shrinking into itself, (!) may again embrace the thoughts of men upon the earth?" (that is to say, " embrace the thoughts" of Mr. Jowett !) " Or is it true that since the Reformation 6 all intellect has gone the other way ?'" " But for the faith that the Gospel might win again the minds of intellectual men" (such men as Mr. Jowett?) "it would be better to leave Religion to itself, instead of attempting to draw them together." (p. 376.) Now this kind of language, in daily life, would be called sheer impertinence ; and the person who could talk so before educated gentlemen would probably receive an intimation that he was making himself offensive. He would certainly be looked upon as a weak and conceited person. I really am unable to see why things should be written and printed which no one would presume to say ! . . . Encircled by a little atmosphere of fog of his own creating, Mr. Jowett is evidently under the delusion that his own confused vision and misty language are the result of the giddy JOWETT.] INTELLECTUAL SUPERIORITY. CCXV eminence to which, (leaving his fellow -mortals far behind him,) he has contrived, all alone, to soar. He anticipates the complaint of some unhappy dis- ciple, that he " experiences a sort of shrinking or dizziness at the prospect which is opening before him :" whereupon Mr. Jowett invites the " highly edu- cated young man," (p. 373,) to consider " that he may possibly not be the person who is called upon to pursue such inquiries." Who are they /or, then? "No man should busy himself with them who has not clearness of mind enough to see things as they are." (p. 430.) The clearness of mind, for example, which belongs to Mr. Jowett ! True enough it is that had such airs been assumed by such an one as Eichard Hooker, who achieved the first four books of his ' Laws of Ecclesiastical Polity' before he was 40 ; and dying in his 46th year, proved himself to be the greatest genius of his age : had language like Mr. Jowett's been found on the lips of Joseph Butler, who when he was 44 produced his immortal < Analagy, 7 and at the age of 26 delivered his famous Eolls ' Sermons:' had Bishop Bull been betrayed into the language of self-complacency when, at the age of 35, he made himself famous by his ' Har- monia Apostolica :' the proceeding would have been intelligible, however much one might have lamented such an exhibition of weakness. . . . But when the speaker proves to be one of the very shallowest of thinkers, and most confused of reasoners; a man who, although grey-headed, has done nothing what- ever for Literature, sacred or profane ; nor indeed is known out of Oxford except for having been thought to deny the Doctrine of the Atonement; a man who dogmatizes in a Science of which he clearly does CCXVI MR. JOWETT. [PROF. not know so much as the very alphabet; and pre- sumes to dispute about a Bible which he has evidently not read with the attention which is due even to a first-rate uninspired book ; then, one's displeasure and impatience assume the form of indignation and disgust. The Divine who, purposing to prove that Holy Scripture is in kind like any other book, does so by inveighing against those who .treat it differently ; and indeed, on every occasion, assumes as proved the thing he has to prove f : is obviously the very man to vaunt the privileges of the intellect. The student of the Bible who mistakes the utterance of a lying prophet for the language of Amos, and then boldly charges the lie upon the inspired author of a book of Canonical Scripture ; is of course a proper person to discuss the Prophetic Canon. The gentleman who flatters himself that he has been sweeping the house to find the pearl of great price, (p. 414,) is a very pretty person, truly, to lecture about the Gospel ! . . . I forbear reproaching Mr. Jowett with his invariable misapplications or misapprehensions of the meaning of Scripture : his false glosses, and truly preposterous specimens of exegesis g . I am content to take leave of him, while he is flattering himself that he has "found the pearl of great price, after sweeping the house ;" (p. 414 :) and under that melancholy delusion, I fear he must be left, holding the broom in his hands. On a review of these Seven Essays, few things strike one more forcibly than the utterly untenable ground occupied by their authors. They are " in a position f Quarterly Review, No. 217, p. 266. g See at pp. 351, 352, 357, 358, 361, 365, 367, 413, &c. JOWETT.] SYSTEM OF ESSAYS AND REVIEWS. CCXVli in which it is impossible to remain. The theory of Mr. Jowett and his fellows is as false to philosophy as to the Church of England. More may be true, or less ; but to attempt to halt where they would stop is a simple absurdity h ." To exactness of method or System, their work can hardly pretend; and yet they have a system, which has only not been rounded into symmetry, by the singular circumstance that these seven writers " have written in entire independence of one another, and without concert or comparison." They avow a common purpose, however; for they "hope" that their joint labours " will be received as an attempt to illus- trate," (whatever that may mean,) " the advantage derivable to the cause of Eeligion and Moral Truth" from what they have here attempted ; and which they justly characterize as "free handling" Putting one- self in their position, it is easy to imagine the sorrow and concern, the horror rather, with which a good man, when the first edition of ' Essays and Keviews' made its appearance, would have discovered the kind of complicity into which he had been inadvertently betrayed ; and how eagerly he would have withdrawn from a literary partnership which had resulted so dis- astrously. At the end of nine large editions, how- ever, the corporate responsibility of each individual author has become fully established ; and besides the many proofs of sympathy between the several authors which these pages contain 1 , it is no longer doubtful h Quarterly Review, as before, p. 282. 1 Take a few instances : Mr. Wilson and Mr. Jowett speak of the Gospels as more or less accurately embodying a common tradition, pp. 161 and 346. Dr. Temple and Mr. Jowett propose the heart and conscience, as the overruling principle, pp. 42-5, and 410: CCXviii NOTES OF SYMPATHY IN ESSAYS AND REVIEWS. [PROF. that the sentiments of the work are to be quoted with- out reference to the individual writers. It would be unfair to assume that not one of these seven men has had the manliness to avow that his own individual convictions are opposed to those of his fellows. We are compelled to regard their joint labours as one pro- duction. It is the corporate efficacy of the several con- tributions which constitutes the chief criminality of the volume. It is to the respectability and weight of the conjoined names of its authors, and to their combined efforts, that ' Essays and Eeviews' are indebted for all their power. What then is the system, or theory, or view, advo- cated by these seven Authors ? They are all agreed that we are "placed evidently at an epoch when and insist that the Bible is " a Spirit, not a Letter," pp. 36 and 357, 375, 425. Dr. Temple and Dr. Williams regard the Bible as the voice of conscience, pp. 45 and 78 : look fur a verifying faculty in the individual, pp. 45 and 83 : dwell on the " interpolations" in Scripture, pp. 47 and 78. Mr. Wilson and Mr. Jowett insist on the meaning which Scripture had to those who first heard it, as its true meaning, pp. 219, 223, 230/232, and 338, 378 : on the neces- sity of reconciling Intellectual men to Scripture, pp. 198 and 374. Professor Powell and Mr. Jowett are of one mind as to Miracles, pp. 109 and 349. Dr. Temple and Mr. Jowett delight in the same image of the Colossal Man, pp. 1 49 and 331, 387, 422. Dr. Williams and Mr. Jowett coincide in their estimate of the German Commentators, pp. 67 and 340. Dr. Temple and Dr. Williams are of one mind as to the past training of our Kace, pp. 1 49, and 51. They are generally agreed as to the untrustworthiness of Genesis, and of the Scripture generally, the hopeless contradictions between the Evangelists, &c., &c. They hold the same language about our having outlived the Faith, (' Traditional Christianity,' as it is called ;) the impossibility of freedom of thought ; the necessity of providing some new Religious system ; the effete nature of Creeds and formularies of Belief; the advance in Natural Science as likely to prove fatal to Theology, &c., &c. JOWETT.] SYSTEM OF ESSAYS AND REVIEWS. CCxix Humanity finds itself under new conditions, to form some definite conception to ourselves of the way in which Christianity is henceforward to act upon the world which is our own." (p. 158.) To do this, we must emerge from our " narrow chamber of Doctrinal and Ecclesiastical prepossessions." (Ibid.) Accord- ingly, we find insinuated " a very wide-spread aliena- tion, both in educated and uneducated persons, from the Christianity which is ordinarily presented in our Churches and Chapels." (p. 150.) There has been "a spontaneous recoil." (p. 151.) We cannot " resist the tide of civilization on which we are borne." (p. 412.) " The time has come when it is no longer pos- sible to ignore the results of criticism." It is there- fore " of importance that Christianity should be seen to be in harmony with them." (p. 374.) " The argu- ments of our genuine critics, with the convictions of our most learned clergy" (p. 66) are all opposed to the actual teaching of the Church. Meantime, " the Christian Eeligion is in a false position when all the tendencies of knowledge are opposed to it." (p. 374.) " Time was when the Gospel was before the age : . . . when the highest minds found in its truths not only the rule of their lives, but a well-spring of intellectual delight. Is it to be held a thing impossible that the Christian Eeligion may again embrace the thoughts of men upon the earth?" (pp. 374-5.) In the mean time, THE BIBLE is a stubborn fact in the way of the new Eeligion. Nay, the English Book of Common Prayer is a great hindrance; for those " formulae of past thinkings, have long lost all sense of any kind;" (p. 297 ;) so that the Prayer-book " is on the way to become a useless encumbrance, the rubbish of the past, blocking the road." (Ibid.) But the CCXX THE SYSTEM ADVOCATED [PROF. Prayer-book confessedly stands on a different footing from the Bible. The Bible erects itself hopelessly in the way of " the negative religion." (p. 151.) those many prophecies, which for 4000 long years sustained the faith of GOB'S chosen people, and at last found fulfilment in the person of CHRIST, or in the circumstances which attended the establishment of His Kingdom ! that glorious retinue of types and shadows which heralded MESSIAH'S approach ! . . . And then, the miraculous evidence which attested to the reality of His Divinity k ! the confirmation, (to those who needed it,) when He walked the water, and stilled the storm, and cast out devils by His word, and by one strong cry broke the gates of Death, and caused Lazarus to " Come forth !" . . . O the solemn independent testimony borne by Creeds, from the very birthday of Christianity, (whether planted in Syria or in Asia Minor, in Africa or in Italy, in Greece or in Gaul ; "in Germany or in Spain, among the Celts or in the far East, in Egypt or in Libya, or in the middle regions of the globe 1 .") Lastly, the adoring voice of the whole Church Catholic throughout the world, for many a succeeding century, translating, expounding, defining, explain- ing, defending to the death ! . . . How shall all this formidable mass of evidence possibly be set aside ? It is plain that Prophecy must be evacuated of its meaning ; or rather, must be denied entirely : and to do this, falls to the share of the vulgar and violent Vice-Principal of Lampeter College. Disprove he cannot; so he sneers and rails and blusters instead. Prophecy, he calls'" omniscience;" " a notion of fore- k See St. John iii. 2 : v. 36 : x. 25, 37-8 : xiv. 11 : xv. 24 : St. Luke vii. 20-22, &c., &c. 1 Creed of Lyons, A.D. 180; see above, p. clxxx., note. JOWETT.] BY ESSAYS AND REVIEWS. CCXxl sight by vision of particulars;" (p. 70;) "a kind of clairvoyance," (p. 70,) and " literal prognostication." (p. 65.) Mr. Jowett (as we have lately seen m ,) lends plaintive help : but indeed Dr. Williams does not lack supporters. To deny the truth of Miracles falls to the lot of the Savilian Professor of Astronomy. His method has the merit of extreme simplicity : for it is based on the ground that, in the writer's opinion, Miracles are impossible, which of course must be held to be decisive of the question. The battle against the Inspiration of the Word of GOD is reserved for the Eegius Professor of Greek ; who requires for his purpose twice the space of any of his fellows. His method is also -of the simplest kind, when divested of its many encumbrances. He simply assumes it as proved that the Bible is a book not essentially different from Sophocles and Plato. In other words he assumes that the Bible is not in- spired ; and reproaches, pities, or sneers at every one who is not of his opinion. In the meantime, What is Prophecy ? What are Miracles ? Of what sort is that Bible which has im- posed upon mankind so grossly, and so long ? They are facts, and must be explained. What are they ? Prophecy, then, is " only the power of seeing the ideal in the actual, or of tracing the Divine Government in the movements of men." (p. 70.) As for Miracles, " their evidential force is wholly relative to the ap- prehensions of the parties addressed. . . . Columbus' prediction of the Eclipse to the native islanders," (p. 115,) is advanced as an illustration of the nature of the argument from Miracles. By whatever method m pp. cxciv.-v. CCXxii THE SYSTEM ADVOCATED [PROF. the Bible has attained its present footing in the world, it is a book which has been hitherto misunderstood ; and it must plainly be dealt with after a new fashion. Our Lord's Incarnation, Temptation, Death and Burial, Resurrection and Ascension into Heaven, all His Miracles, in short, will be best interpreted Ideologi- cally ; in other words, by a principle " which resolves into an ideal the whole of the historical and doctrinal person of JESUS." (p. 200.) So interpreted, " the Gospel may win again the minds of intellectual men ;" (p. 376 ;) but it will find it no easy matter. There is in fact " a higher wisdom" than the Gospel, " which is known to those who are perfect," " that reconcile- ment," namely, " of Faith and Knowledge which may be termed Christian Philosophy." (p. 413.) The great object, in short, is to bring about " a re- conciliation" (p. 375,) between " the minds of in- tellectual men" (p. 376,) and Christianity. Such a reconciliation is to be regarded as a " restoration of belief." (p. 375.) And it is to be effected by " taking away some of the external supports, because they are not needed and do harm : also because they interfere with the meaning." (p. 375.) Those " ex- ternal supports" are (1) a belief in the Inspiration of the Bible; (2) the writings of the Fathers and Doctors of the Church ; (3) Creeds and the decisions of Councils; (4) the works of Anglican Divines; (5) Learning ; (p. 337 ;) (6) a profound acquaintance with the Greek language ; (p. 393 ;) (7) a minute knowledge of Greek Grammar ; (p. 391 ;) (8) the Doctrine of the Greek Article; (9) the free use of the parallel passages. . . . The Bible, when interpreted by any self-relying young man who knows a little Greek, and attends to the meaning of 'words , will be JOWETT.] BY ESSAYS AND REVIEWS. CCXxiti seen in all the freshness of its early beauty, like an old picture which has been recently cleaned. " A new interest" will be excited by this new Bible, which will " make for itself a new kind of authority." By being thus literally interpreted, it will be trans- formed into a a spirit." Then, (but not before) the Bible will enjoy the sublime satisfaction of keeping pace with the Age. It may so, even yet, " embrace the thoughts of men upon the earth." But what kind of thing will this Bible be ? The beginning of Genesis, (pp. 207 253,) is to be rejected because it "is not an authentic utterance of Divine knowledge, but a human utterance, which it has pleased Providence to use in a special way for the education of mankind." (p. 253.) We are invited to " a frank recognition of the erroneous views of Nature which the Bible contains." (p. 211.) Thus, all mira- culous transactions will have to be explained away. The volume of Prophecy will have to be regarded as a volume of History. The very History will have to be read with distrust. Like other records, it is sub- ject to the conditions of " knowledge which existed in an early stage of the world." (p. 411.) It does not even begin to be authentic, until B.C. 1900 ; or rather, until B.C. 900 n . What remains is to be looked upon as " the continuous witness in all ages of the higher things in the heart of man," (p. 375,) (whatever that may happen to mean.) The Gospel is to be looked upon as " a life of CHRIST in the soul, instead of a theory of CHRIST which is in a book, or written down," (p. 423.) "The lessons of Scripture, when disengaged from theological formulas, have a nearer way to the hearts of the poor." (p. 424.) Even "in n See pp. 57 and 170. CCXxiv THE SYSTEM OF ESSAYS AND REVIEWS. [PROF. Missions to the heathen, Scripture is to be treated as the expression of universal truths, rather than of the tenets of particular men and Churches." (p. 423.) It is anticipated that this " would remove many ob- stacles to the reception of Christianity." (Ibid.) " It is not the Book of Scripture which we should seek to give the heathen ;" " but the truth of the Book ; the mind of CHRIST and His Apostles, in which all lesser details and differences should be lost and absorbed ;" "the purer light or element of Eeligion, of which Christianity is the expression." (p. 427.) .... Such is the ghostly phantom, by the aid of which the Heathen are to become evangelized ! But this historical Bible is not to be regarded as the rule of a man's life, or indeed as an external Law at all. (pp. 36, 45.) "We walk now by Eeason and Conscience alone?'* (p. 21.) The Bible is to be identi- fied "with the voice of Conscience," (p. 45,) which it has " to evoke, not to override." (p. 44.) " The prin- ciple of private judgment . . . makes Conscience the supreme interpreter." (p. 45.) Ours is " a law which is not imposed upon us by another power ', but by our own enlightened will:" (p. 35:) for the "Spirit, or Con- science" " legislates" henceforth " without appeal ex- cept to himself." (p. 31.) Having thus disposed of " Traditional Chris- tianity," (p. 156,) it is not obscurely hinted that something quite different is to be substituted in its place. And first, next to " a frank appeal to Eeason, and a frank criticism of Scripture," (p. 174,) the nature and " office of the Church is to be properly understood." (p. 194.) The Church then is a spontaneous development of the State, as "part of its own organization," (p. 195,) JOWETT.] THE NEW RELIGION. CCXXV purely secular Institution. The:' State will " de- velop itself into a Church" by " throwing its elements, or the best of them, into another mould; and con- stituting out of them a Society, which is in it, though in some sense not of it (?), which is another (?), yet the same." (p. 194.) The nation must provide, from time to time, that the teaching of one age does " not traditionally harden, so as to become an exclusive barrier in a subsequent one ; and so the moral growth of those who are committed to the hands of the Church be checked." (Ibid.} The Church is founded, therefore, not upon " the possession of a supernaturally communicated speculation (!) concerning GOD," but " upon the manifestation of a Divine Life in Man" " Speculative doctrines should be left to philosophical schools. A national Church must be concerned with the ethical development of its members." (p. 195.) It should be " free from dogmatic tests, and similar in- tellectual bondage;" (p. 168;) hampered by no Doc- trines, pledged to no Creeds. These may be retained indeed; but " we refuse to be bound by them" (p. 44.) The Subscription of the Clergy to the Articles should also be abolished: for "no promise can reach fluc- tuations of opinion, and personal conviction." (! ! !) Open heretical teaching may, to be sure, be dealt with by the Law; but the Law " should not require any act which appears to signify ' I think. 7 " (p. 189.) Witness " the reluctance of the stronger minds to enter an Order in which their intellects may not have free play." (p. 190.) . . . Such then is the Negative Ee- ligion ! Such is the new faith which Doctors Temple and Williams, Professors Powell and Jowett, Messieurs Wilson, Goodwin, and Pattison, have deliberately combined to offer to the acceptance of the World ! CCXXvi A REMONSTRANCE. [PROF. It is high time to conclude. I cannot lay down my pen however until I have re-echoed the sentiments of one with whom I heartily agree. I allude to Dr. Moberly ; who professes that he is " struck almost more with what seems to him the hardheartedness, and exceeding unkindness of this book, than with its unsoundness. Have the writers," (he asks,) " con- sidered how far the suggesting of innumerable doubts, doubts unargued and unproved, will check honest devotion, and embolden timid sin ? For whom do they intend this book ? Is it written for the mass of general readers ? Is' it designed for students at the Universities ? Do they suppose that this multitude of random suggestions will be carefully wrought out by these readers, and be rejected if unsound ; so as to leave their faith and devotion untarnished ? . . . Have they reflected how many souls for whom CHRIST died may be slain in their weakness by their self-styled strength ?" " Suppose, for a moment, that the Holy Scriptures are (p. 177,) the Word of the Spirit of GOD, that the Miracles, (cf. p. 109,) including the Resurrection of CHRIST, are actual objective facts, which have really happened, that the Doctrines of the Church are true, (p. 195,) and the Creeds (p. 355,) the authoritative expositions of them, and that men are to reach Salva- tion through faith in CHRIST, Virgin-born, according to the Scriptures, and making atonement (cf. p. 87,) for their sins upon the Cross. Ox THIS SUPPOSITION, Is not the publication of this book an act of real hos- tility to Govs Truth ; and one winch endangers the Faith and Salvation of Men ? And is this hostility less real, or the danger diminished, because the writers are, all but one, Clergymen, some of them Tutors and School- JOWETT.] A FAREWELL. CCXXVU masters ; because they wear the dress, and use tho language of friends, and threaten us with bitter oppo- sition if we do not regard them as such" ?" With this I lay down my pen. My last words shall be simple and affectionate, addressed solely to yourselves. I trace these concluding lines, (of a work w T hich, but for you, would never have been undertaken,) in a quite empty College ; and in the room where we have so often and so happily met on Sunday evenings. Can you wonder if, at the conclusion of what has proved rather a heavy task, (so hateful to me is con- troversy,) my thoughts revert with affectionate soli- citude to yourselves, already scattered in all direc- tions; and to those evenings which more, I think, than any other thing, have gilded my College life? ... In thus sending you a written farewell, and pray- ing from my soul that GOD may bless and keep you all, I cannot suppress the earnest entreaty that you would remember the best words of counsel which may have at any time fallen from my lips : that you would persevere in the daily study of the pure Book of Life ; and that you would read it, not as feeling yourselves called upon to sit in judgment on its adorable con- tents ; but rather, as men who are permitted to draw near ; and invited to listen, and to learn, and to live* And so farewell ! . . . " Watch ye, stand fast in the Faith," nay, take it in the original, which is far better: TprjyoptiTe, or^/eere eV rrj TT/OTCI, avSpi- n Some Remark*) fyc., pp. xxiii. xxv. A FAREWELL. [PROF. JOWETT. , Kparaiovo-Oe. irdvra V/JLCOV ev dyaTrr) yiviarQw. *H \OLpts TOV Kvplov 'Irjcrov \PLOTTOV fjieff VJJLCOV. rj dydirr) /mov perd jrdvrwv V/JLCOV. \ Your friend, J. W. B. ORIEL, June 22nd, 1861. &ermon& SUBJECTS OF THE SERMONS. (For a detailed account of the Contents of these Sermons, the Reader is referred to the beginning of the Volume?) I. THE STUDY OF THE BIBLE RECOMMENDED; AND A METHOD OF STUDYING IT DESCRIBED . . , , p. l II. NATURAL SCIENCE AND THEOLOGICAL SCIENCE p. 23 III. INSPIRATION OF SCRIPTURE. GOSPEL DIFFICULTIES. THE WORD OF GOD INFALLIBLE. OTHER SCIENCES SUBORDINATE TO THEOLOGICAL SCIENCE , . p. ,53 IV. THE PLENARY INSPIRATION OF EVERY PART OF THE BIBLE, VINDICATED AND EXPLAINED. NATURE OF INSPIRATION, ^-THE TEXT OF SCRIPTURE . , p. 91 V. INTERPRETATION OF HOLY SCRIPTURE. INSPIRED IN- TERPRETATION. THE BIBLE IS NOT TO BE INTER- PRETED LIKE ANY OTHER BOOK. GOD, (NOT MAN,) THE REAL AUTHOR OF THE BIBLE , , , , p. 139 VI. THE DOCTRINE OF ARBITRARY SCRIPTURAL ACCOM- MODATION CONSIDERED , ,,,,... p. 183 VII. THE MARVELS OF HOLY SCRIPTURE, MORAL AND PHYSICAL, JAEL'S DEED DEFENDED. MIRACLES VINDICATED ,.,,*, p. 221 PR.EVENERUNT OCULI MEI AD TE DILUCULO, UT MEDITARER ELOQUIA TUA, QUAM DULCIA FAUCIBUS MEIS ELOQUIA TUA I SUPER MEL OKI MEO. 1UCERNA PEDIBUS MEIS VERBUM TUUM, ET LUMEN SEMITIS MEIS. fli KAAfU nOIEITE nPO2EXONTE2, n5 ATXNn* *AINONTI EN AYX- MHPHi Torm/, Ens OT HMEPA AIATFA^H*, KAI *n2*op^2 ANATEIAH* EN TAI2 KAPAIAU TMilN, DOMINE DEUS metis, . . . sint castae deliciae meee ScriptureB Tuae. Nee fallar in eis, nee fallam ex eis.- AUGUSTINUS, Confessiones, lib, xi. c. ii. 3. The Book of this Law we are neither able nor worthy to look into. That little thereof which we darkly apprehend we admire : the re3t with religious ignorance we humbly and meekly adore. HOOKER, EccL Pol., B. i. ch. ii. 5, SEKMON I, a THE STUDY OF THE BIBLE RECOMMENDED ; AND A METHOD OE STUDYING IT DESCRIBED. ST. JOHN vi. 68. LORD, to idiom shall we (jo ? Thou hast the words of Eternal Life. TT was probably in that synagogue which the faithful -*- Centurion built at Capernaum b that our SAVIOUR had been discoursing. At the end of His discourse, it is related that "many of His Disciples went back, and walked no more with Him." Thereupon, He asked the Twelve, "Will ye also go away?" the very form of His inquiry (M?) KOL tyzets') implying the an- swer which the Divine Speaker expected and desired. And to this challenge of Love to Faith, St. Peter replied, not only on behalf of his fellow- Apostles, but on behalf of all faithful men to the end of time: "LORD, to ^vhom shall we go? Thou hast the words of Eternal Life !" You perceive that St. Peter's confession takes a pe- culiar form, resting the impossibility of unfaithful- ness in the Apostles on the gracious discourse of Him to whom they had been listening. "A hard saying," and unpalatable, it had proved to many; but to his own taste it had seemed " sweeter than honey and the a Preached in Christ-Church Cathedral, Oct. 21st, 1860. b rr)v crvitaywyr)!/, from which it would appear that there was but one. See Bishop Micldleton on St. Luke vii. 5. B 2 ANALOGY BETWEEN THE WRITTEN [SERM. honeycomb." So that while, to those others, it had been an occasion of going back, and walking with CHRIST no more, to himself it had been a reason why he could never, as he felt, be persuaded to forsake CHRIST. Nay, it was to himself, (and, as he boldly assumed, to his fellow- Apostles, ) a sufficient evidence that the Speaker was none other than the SON of GOD. " And we believe, and are sure, that Thou art the CHRIST, the SON of the living GOD !" Here then, surely, a very solemn picture is set before us. The same message proves, in the case of some, the savour of death unto death : in the case of others, of life unto life. It is an image of what is still taking place in the world. The Gospel, whe- ther veiled in the Old Testament, or unveiled in the New, is confessedly "a hard saying:" >to some, their very crown and joy; to others, only an occasion of distress and downfall. It was so, when proclaimed not by the tongue of men and of angels, but by the lips " full of grace and truth " of the Incarnate WORD Himself : and it is so still. The temper of mankind is still the same as it was of old, and the instrument of man's trial is still the same. Of the written Gospel, many of the self-same things are said in Scripture which ar^said of Him by whom that Gospel was preached. Thus, it is proclaimed to be "the power of GOD to salvation ." It is de- scribed as "a discerner of the thoughts and intents of the heart d ." It is declared to be eternal, a thing which " shall never pass away e ." " In the last day," it is prophesied that the words which CHRIST has spoken "shall judge" men f . The very Name by ' Bom. i. 16. d Heb. iv. 12. St. Matth. xxiv. 35, &c. f St. John xii. 48. I.] AND THE INCARNATE WORD. 3 which. St. John designates the Eternal SON, in the forefront of his Gospel g , is the appellation by which the Gospel is emphatically known. But even more remarkable are the analogies which subsist between the written record of our LORD'S Life and Teaching, and the actual person of our LORD. And proposing, as I now do, to say a few earnest words to the younger men in recommendation of a more punctual, metho- dical, as well as attentive study of the Bible, than, I am persuaded, is practised by one young man in a thousand, it may not prove unavailing in awaken- ing attention, if I advert, in passing, to some of the circumstances whereby an even balance, (so to speak,) is established between the opportunities of the men of this generation, and of those who were blessed with the oral teaching of the Son of Man. 1. Thus, if the record has its difficulties, and its seeming contradictions, so had He. It did not appear that "JESUS of Nazareth" was born, (according to the prophet Micah's prediction,) at Bethlehem*. His title perplexed even Nathanael 1 . He was called the son of Joseph, even by the Blessed Virgin^. How then could He be the SON of GOD ? And how was the famous prophecy of Isaiah fulfilled in Him 1 ? He grew up in a lowly estate. Once He is called " the carpenter m ." How then could He be of the Eoyal House of David? And so, in many other respects, did He, in His own person, present the self-same class of difficulties to the world's eye which His Gospel presents to ours: "the sixteenth of Tiberius," the two genealogies, " Cyrenius," " the days of Abia- thar," " Jeremy the prophet," and so on. * St. John i. 1, &c. b Ibid. vii. 4043. l Ibid. i. 45, 46. k St. Luke ii. 48. l Is. vii. 14. ro St. Mark vi. 3. B2 4 ANALOGY BETWEEN THE WRITTEN [SERM. 2. Somewhat less, obvious, but not less true, is the unattractive aspect, at first sight, of the Gospel. Yerily there is, until we become intimately acquainted with it, "no beauty that we should desire" it. The style, (full of interest, to those who have tried to understand it a little,) is not, I suppose, what critics would call altogether a good style. The Greek is not what learned men call pure. Many a word, (brimfull of meaning to those who will give to the words of the Gospel their best care,) reminds one, that neither did He speak what, in the capital of Jewry, was accounted a classical idiom. He employed the accent of the despised Galilee. The very reasoning, (until you give it your heart's homage and best attention,) often seems to be either inconsequential, or to contain a fal- lacy. Certain words of our LORD have been even cited as fallacious by a celebrated Divine whose writings we are all familiar with n . Now, His words were dis- regarded, cavilled at, made light of, in just the same manner. 3. Most surprising of all is the analogy observable between the union of the Divine and the human element in the Gospels, and the strictly parallel union, as it seems, of the two natures, the Divine and the Human, in the person of our LORD. As He was perfect and faultless, so do we deem it infallible also, without spot or blemish of any kind. "We reject as monstrous any ' theory of Inspiration, 7 (as it is called,) which imputes blunders to the work of the HOLY GHOST. As, further, we claim for our LORD'S recorded human actions mysterious significancy, so do we seem warranted in looking for a mysterious pur- n Our LORD'S words in St. John viii. 47 are so cited by Archbishop "Whately in the Appendix of his Logic. (App. II. No. 12, p. 418.) I.] AND THE INCARNATE WORD. 5 pose, a divine meaning, in every expression of the written Word. Lastly, although we may, nay we must, admit such a Divine and such a human element, we must altogether deny the possibility of separating the one from the other. "We cannot separate Scripture into human and Divine. Like the Incarnate WORD, the Gospel is at once both human and Divine, yet one and indivisible. And the method of its inspiration is as great a difficulty in its way, and as much beyond our ken, as the nature of the union of the Godhead and the Manhood in the one person of CHRIST. For whatever reason, and whether you please to accept the foregoing remarks or not, it is a plain fact that the Gospel is now in the world, fulfilling the same office towards mankind, which our Saviour CHRIST Himself fulfilled, and experiencing the same treatment at the hands of men in return. It is leaven- ing society indeed, and remodelling the world, even while it is practically overlooked by politicians or experiencing evil treatment from them. It wins its way silently and secretly, yet surely; and it works miracles here and there. Moreover, it divides opi- nion; separating, as it will for ever separate, the light from the darkness . It is slighted, and over- looked, and neglected by some ; even while, by others, it is embraced with joy unspeakable. c The humble and meek ' adore it ; even while, by the proud and rebellious, it is after a most strange fashion cavilled at, called in question, and denied. We specify the Gospel, instinctively, as that part of the Inspired Word which chiefly concerns ourselves, as Christian men; but the entire deposit shares the same fate. I do not think I am delivering a paradox when I say Consider all such places as St. John xi. 45, 46. 6 PRECIOUSNESS OF THE DIVINE RECORD. [SERM. that the Bible is generally very little read. That the amount of study commonly bestowed upon it bears no proportion whatever to its transcendent importance and paramount value, shall not be any paradox at all; but a mere truism. For I entreat you to consider, (trite and obvious as it may sound,) What have we, in the whole wide world, which may be put in competition with that Book which contains GOD'S revelation of Himself to man ? In its early portions, how does it go back to the very birthday of Time, and discourse of things which were done in the grey of that early morning ! How mysterious is the record, so methodical, so par- ticular, so unique ; preserving the very words which were syllabled in Paradise, and describing transactions which no one but the HOLY GHOST is competent to declare ! Come lower down, and where will you find more beautiful narratives, still fresh at the end of three and four thousand years, than those stories of Patriarchs, Judges, Kings, which wrap up divinest teaching in all their ordinary details: where every word is weighed in a heavenly balance, fraught with a divine purpose, and intended for some glorious issue : where the very characters are adumbrations of personages far greater than themselves ; and where the course of events is made to preach to us, at this distant day, of the things which concern our peace ! Is it a light thing again to know in what terms Isaiah, and the rest of " the goodly fellowship," when they opened their lips to speak in that remote age, foretold of the coming of the Son of Man ? . . . But all seems to grow pale before the Everlasting Gospel, and the other writings of the New Testament. Surely we have become too familiar with the providence which I.] THE AGE UNLEARNED, AS WELL AS UNFAITHFUL. 7 has preserved to us the very words of the four Evan- gelists, if we can bend our thoughts in the direction of the Gospel without a throb of joy and wonder not to be described, at having so great a treasure placed within our easy reach. Can it indeed be, that I may listen while the disciple whom JESUS loved is dis- coursing of the miracles, and recalling the sayings of his LORD ? May I hear St. Peter himself address the early Church, or know the precise words of the message which St. Jude sent to the first believers, or be shown the Epistle which the LORD'S cousin addressed "to the Twelve Tribes scattered abroad"? How does it happen that the Book is not for ever in our hands which comes to us with such claims to our undivided homage ? But, on the contrary, it has become the fashion in certain quarters, on every imaginable pretext, to* call in question the credibility of the Bible. It seems to be the taste of the age to invent hazy difficulties and dim objections to its statements. Inspiration, under a miserable attempt to explain it, is openly explained away. And the theory, however crude and pre- posterous, is tolerated : at least it escapes castigation. It cannot fail but that the unlearned and thoughtless ones of this generation will be growing up in a notion that these are open questions after all, and that " Truth" is but a name, not a thing worth contend- ing, aye dying for, if need be ! The reason is but too obvious. It must be, partly, because we do not in reality prize the deposit nearly so much as we sup- pose. Partly, because of the indifferentism which is everywhere so prevalent. Partly too because, not- withstanding our intellectual activity, we are not a really learned body. And partly, it must be con,- 8 DUTY OF LABORIOUSLY [SERM. fessed, the reason is, because Theology has become so nearly a prostrate study with us, and because men really able to do battle for the Truth are somewhat hard to find. Nor is there any reasonable prospect of improvement either ; for those who go forth from this place into the Ministry, go with such slender preparation, that it would be truer to say that they go with none at all. Now, it would be a mere waste of time, to inveigh for half an hour against the indifferentism, or the spurious liberality, of the age : and it would be a most unbecoming proceeding, (not to say a highly distasteful one,) from this place to be suggesting remedies for an evil which already lies very near the heart of every serious man among us; and which, if discussed at all, must be discussed elsewhere. To say the truth, while the neglect of Theology, and the low ebb of Theological attainments in our Clergy, is generally recognized, the remedy for the evil is by no means so clear. From this subject, then, I pass at once : and I shall content myself with the far humbler task, of urging upon the younger men pre- sent, those especially who are destined for the Mi- nistry, one act of preparation, one duty, about which, at all events, there cannot be any difference of opinion : I mean the duty of applying themselves, now, to the patient study of the Bible. The thing is soon said ; but the hint requires ex- panding a little, in order that it may become of any practical use. By the " study of the Bible," I do not mean a chapter occasionally read with care : nor even a chapter regularly conned over at night ; when a convivial meeting has blunted the edge of observation, or severe study has exhausted the powers of the brain. I.] STUDYING THE BIBLE. 9 The devotional use of a portion of Holy Scripture is quite a distinct affair. Still less would the practice satisfy me of following the lessons in the College Chapel : and this for reasons so obvious that I will not stop to point them out. Nor even is the reading of the Bible in College Lecture, the thing I mean; for reasons also which any acute person will readily ascertain for himself. None of these methods of ac- quainting yourselves with the contents of the Bible come up to the thing I contemplate, although each is good in its way ; and of course I am not speaking in disparagement of any. No. The thing I would so strenuously urge upon you, is, that, during your undergraduate period, you should read the whole Bible consecutively through, from one end to the other, by yourself and for your- self, with consummate method, care, and attention. The fundamental conditions of such a study of the Bible, in order to make it of any real use, are these : 1. First, that you should deliberately apportion to this solemn duty the best and freshest and quietest half-hour in the whole day ; and then, that you should determine, let what will go undone, never to abridge that half-hour. You may sometimes be enabled to afford a little more time to the chapter : but you will find it quite fatal ever to devote a shorter period to it. And half an hour, if you employ it in right good earnest, at present, must be thought enough. 2. Next, (except on Sundays and in Vacation, when you may safely double your daily task and your daily time,) be persuaded to read each, day exactly one chapter. On no account attempt to go reading on; but rather spend the moments which remain over, 10 CONDITIONS OF A SUCCESSFUL [SERM. (they cannot be many !) in reviewing that day's por- tion ; or referring to some of the places indicated in the margin ; or glancing over yesterday's chapter. The effect of building up your Bible knowledge in this manner, bit by bit, is what you would not anti- cipate. The whole acquires a solidity and compact- ness not to be attained by any other method. You will find at the end of many days, not only that the structure has attained to symmetry and beauty, but that the disposition of its several parts, in some re- spects, has become intelligible also : while, (what is not of least importance,) the foundation on which all the superstructure rests, proves wondrous secure and strong. 3. Then, while you read, safe from the risk of interruption, (as I began by supposing,) and with every faculty intent on your task, try, as much as possible, to go over the words as if they were new to you ; and watch them, one by one, so that nothing may by any possibility escape your notice. Do not slumber over a single word. Nothing can be unim- portant when it is the HOLY GHOST who speaketh. It is an excellent practice to mark the expressions which strike you ; for it is a method of preserving the memory of what is sure else soon to pass away. 4. And next, be persuaded to read without ex- traneous helps of any kind; except, of course, such help as a map, or the margin of your Bible, supplies. Pray avoid Commentaries and notes. First, you can- not afford time for them : and secondly, if you could, they would be as likely to mislead you as not. But the real reason why you are so* strenuously advised to avoid them, is, because they will do more to nullify your reading, than anything which could be imagined. I.] STUDY OF THE SACRED VOLUME. 11 Your object is to obtain an insight into Holy Scrip- ture, by acquiring the habit of reading it with intel- ligence and care : not to be saved trouble, and to be shown what other persons have thought about it. 5. But then, though you are entreated not to have recourse to the notes of others, you are as strongly advised to make brief memoranda of your own : and the briefer the better. Construct your own table of the Patriarchs, your own analysis of the Law, your own descent of the Kings, your own enumeration of the Miracles. A pedigree fall of faults, made by yourself, will do you more good than the most accu- rate table drawn up by another : but if you are at all attentive and clever, it will not be full of faults. You will perhaps make the parables 56 instead of 30 : you will have gained 26 by your honest industry. Nay, keep a record of your difficulties, if you please ; or of anything which strikes you, and which you would be sorry to forget. But, as a rule, it is well to write little, and to give your time and thought to the record before you. 6. Above all, is it indispensable that your reading of the Bible should be strictly consecutive ; and on no account may any one pretend to begin such a study of that book as I am here recommending, except at the first Chapter of Genesis. It is a great mistake, (though one of the commonest of all,) for a man to imagine that he knows the beginning of the Bible pretty well. I say it advisedly, that it would be easy to write down twelve interesting questions on that first chapter, of which none of the younger men present would be able to answer three, and yet, they should all be questions of such a sort that a labouring man's child with an 12 VIGILANCE NECESSARY, AND [SERM. open Bible would be able infallibly to answer them every one. 7. It will follow from what has been offered, that you are invited to read every book in the Bible in the order in which it actually stands, never, of course, skipping a chapter * much less a Book. In every mere catalogue of names, be resolved to find edification. Feel persuaded that details, seemingly the driest, are full of GOD. Eemember that the difference between every syllable of Scripture and all other books in the world is, not a difference of degree, but of kind. All books but one, are human : that one book is Divine ! Now, you will perceive that the kind of study of the Bible here recommended, is somewhat different from what is commonly pursued. I contemplate the continued exercise of a most curious and prying, as well as a most vigilant and observing eye. No diffi- culty is to be neglected ; no peculiarity of expression is to be disregarded; no minute detail is to be over- looked. The hint let fall in an earlier chapter is to be compared with a hint let fall in the later place. Do they tally or not ? and what follows ? The chrono- logical details spontaneously evolved by the narrative, are to be unerringly discovered by the student for himself. The course of every journey is to be atten- tively noted. Things omitted are to be spied out as carefully as things set down ; and whatever can pos- sibly be gathered in the way of necessary inference, is to be industriously ascertained. The imagination is not to slumber either, because no pains are taken by the sacred writer to move the feelings or melt the heart. How soon will any one who takes the trouble to I.] UNFLAGGING ATTENTION TO DETAILS. 13 read the Bible after this fashion, be struck with a hundred things which he never knew before, indeed, which are not commonly known ! How will he be for ever eliciting unsuspected facts, detecting undreamed of coincidences, but which are as important as they are true, accumulating materials of value quite ines- timable for future study in Divine things ! However unpromising a certain collection of references may be, he is careful to extend it, convinced, like a wise householder, that there will come an use for it after many days. His whole aim is to master thoroughly the record which he has undertaken to study. Let me not be misunderstood if it is added that the Bible should be read, I do not say in the same manner, that is, in the same temper and spirit, but at least with the same attention, as is bestowed upon a merely human work. In truth, it should be read with much more attention. But that diligence which a student commonly bestows on a difficult moral treatise, or an obscure drama, or a perplexed history, analyzing it, comparing passage with passage, and learning a great deal of it by heart, I am quite at a loss to understand why a student of the Bible should be a stranger to. " I do much condemn, 77 (says Lord Bacon), " I do much condemn that Interpretation of the Scripture which is only after the manner as men use to interpret a profane book." So do I. Scripture is to be approached and handled in quite a different spirit from a common history. The mind, the heart rather, must bow down before its revelations, in the most suppliant fashion imaginable. The book should ever be approached with prayer : " LORD, open Thou mine eyes that I may see the wondrous things of Thy Law !" The very printed pages should be handled 14 A CAUTION. [SERM. with reverence, in consideration of the message they contain. But what I am saying is, that none of the methods which diligence and zeal have ever invented to secure a complete mastery of the contents of any merely human performance, may be overlooked by a student of the Bible. To what has gone before I will add one caution, and will trouble you with one only. It would be easy to multiply cautions : but I am talking to highly intel- ligent men ; and there is only one rock which I am really fearful of your running against. It was the advice of a great and good man, (to his clergy, I suspect,) that they should read the Bible with a special object: and an excellent recent writer has repeated the same advice ; namely that men should " read with a view to some particular inquiry, with purpose to clear up some peculiar question of interest, which," (says he,) " you may create for yourselves" 1 ." I entreat you to do nothing of the kind. Whatever advantages may result to an advanced student from adopting this practice, to you it must be fraught with unmingled evil. You will.be tempted to overrate the importance of everything you discover which suits your present purpose : you will disregard all that looks in a different direction : you will be disappointed if you meet with nothing ad rem : you will get a habit of slurring over many chapters, many whole books of the Bible. A very little reflection will convince you that it must be as I say. Who, for example, could be expected to find delight and edification in the calendar of the Deluge, who had determined to read Genesis with a view to discovering what knowledge existed in the patriarchal age of a future life ? No. Your wisdom 9 Blunt's Duties of a Parish Priest, p. 81. I.] SPIRIT OF CLOSE OBSERVATION. 15 will be to divest your minds, as much as possible, of any preconceived notion as to what the Bible contains, or was intended to teach you. You should wish to find there nothing so much as the authentic evidence of what Divine Wisdom hath seen fit to communicate to man. Eead it therefore, if you are wise, with un- affected curiosity : settling down upon every flower, in order to find out, if you can, where the honey is : clinging to it rather, until you have found the honey. Say to yourself,- " It cannot be that all these details of months and days should be given in vain r . I must find out the reason of it." And, at last, you will find, what you will find. " Very strange," (you will learn to say to yourself,) " that the history of nearly 1600 years should be curdled into one short chapter 8 ; and yet that three verses of the Bible should be devoted to the history of a man's losing his way in a field, and then finding it again* !" The subject may be worth thinking about. You are perhaps naturally disposed to take what you are pleased to call "a common sense view" of the meaning of Holy Scripture ; and to inter- pret it after a very dry unlovely fashion of your own : to evacuate its deeper sayings, and to doubt the mys- terious significancy of its historical details. You will speedily perceive, however, that the Apostles and Evangelists of CHRIST, as many as were moved by the HOLY SPIRIT of GOD, and spoke not their own words but His, that all these are against you: and the effect of this discovery on an honest and good heart, reading not in order to be confirmed in some preconceived opinion, but with a sincere desire of en- lightenment in Divine things, may be anticipated. r Gen. vii. 4 to viii. 14. * Ibid. v. * Ibid, xxxvii. 15, 16, 17. 16 MEN NOT TO MAKE THEIR OWN Bishop Horsley relates that by a yet simpler process he became disabused of a favourite fancy with which he set out, namely, that prophecy must of necessity carry a single meaning 11 . The attitude of mind which I so strongly recommend you to assume, (and it de- pends on an act of the "Will, whether you assume it or not,) is very exactly represented by the cry of the child Samuel, " Speak LORD, for Thy servant heareth !" It seems right, in the fewest words, to state what we do, and what we do not, expect to result from such a study of the Bible as this ; in other words, to assign the office of unassisted Biblical study. I would not willingly have my meaning mistaken here. It is not implied then, for a moment, that a man is either at liberty, or able, to gather his own Eeligion for himself out of the Bible. The very thought were monstrous. But it is a widely different thing for one of yourselves to read his Bible patiently, and humbly, and laboriously, through, without prejudice or theory, - unmolested by critical notes, undistracted by human comments, uninfluenced by party views : all this, I say, is a widely different thing from a man's in- venting his own system of Divinity. Members of the Catholic Church, born in a Christian country, educated amid the choicest influences for good, you are by no means so left to yourselves. The BOOK or COMMON PRAYER is your sufficient safeguard. The framework of the Faith, the conditions under which you may lawfully speculate about Divine mysteries, are all prescribed for you : and within those limits you cannot well go wrong. On the other hand, the outlines of Moral Theology, u See Appendix A. I.] RELIGION : YET COMPETENT TO OBSERVE. 17 (as it may be called), you are fully competent to de- tect for yourselves. GOD'S strictness in punishing sin, as in the case of Moses x ; the efficacy of repent- ance, as in the case of Ahab y ; the sure answer to prayer, (to forgotten prayer, it may be !) as in the case of Zacharias z ; the seemingly roundabout methods of GOD'S providence, (as in the case of Abraham,) yet conducting inevitably to a blessed issue at the last ; : the rewards of obedience a ; the faithfulness of the Divine promises ; the boundless wealth of the Divine contrivance, which, on man's repentance, is able to convert even a curse into a blessing, as in the case of Levi b ; the peace and joy surely in reserve for those who fear GOD, as in the case of Joseph ; the extent to which things seemingly trivial are noticed by the Ancient of Days, as every page of the Bible shows ; these, and a hundred points like these, not only a man can gather for himself out of the Book of GOD'S Law, but no one else can do the work for him. He must discover all such matters for himself. And need I point out, for a minute, the immense advantage with which a mind so stored with Divine knowledge will approach the Ministry; and finally take in hand the actual oversight of the flock ? It is really not to be expressed. The Bishop's examination for Orders will become nothing but an agreeable ex- ercise, instead of an object of dread. You are quite sure of a few approving words in that quarter. But, (what is a thousand times more important,) you your- Deut. iii. 25, 26. y 1 Kings xxi. 2729. z St. Luke i. 13. * Jerem. xxxv. 18, 19. b Comp. Gen. xlix. 5 7, "with Exod. xxxii. 26 28, (alluded to in Deut. xxxiii. 9,) and finally Numb. iii. 9 and 45, and Josh. xxi. 38. 18 GAIN OF BEIXG FAMILIAIl WITH [SERM. self feel safe and strong. You begin to read some treatise on Divinity; and you find yourself in some degree competent to test the writer's statements, to endorse or to suspect his conclusions, because you are familiar with the Eule of Faith which he himself em- ployed. It becomes your turn at last to instruct others, from the pulpit for example ; and instead of timid truisms, and vague generalities, you are able to draw a bold clear outline round almost any depart- ment of Christian doctrine. You can explain with authority. You are not afraid to catechize before the congregation : for although your Theological attain- ments are but slender after all, yet, you know your Bible well ; and even if an absurdly wrong answer is given you, you know how to single out from the hank the golden thread of Truth, and to display it before the eyes of men and Angels. And let me tell you, by way of ending the subject, we should hear less about dull sermons, and inattentive congregations, and badly filled churches, as well as about the astounding ignorance of many among the upper classes, in Divine things, if our younger Clergy knew the Bible a great deal better than they do. Aye, and we should not have so many unsound re- marks about Holy Scripture either, so many mis- taken views of doctrine, so many crude remarks about Inspiration, made ly persons who ought to know letter. You will perceive that I am saying all this, (ex- cept the last few words,) at you, (the younger men present;) because in you I see many of the future Clergy of England. And I say it, because, (for the last time,) I do entreat you, one and all, to follow the advice I have been giving you ; and to set about such I.] SCRIPTURE. REGULAR STUDY RECOMMENDED. 19 a careful study of. the Bible, at once. Do not put it off for a single day. Begin it tomorrow morning. You will then have mastered Genesis this term, finish- ing the last chapter on Sunday the 10th of December; and on Monday, the llth, you will have to read the first chapter of Exodus. I am confident that you will remember this day and hour with gratitude to the end of your lives, if you will but make the experiment and persevere. And just one word to those who aspire, (and all should aspire,) to University honours. You will not find what I have been recommending any hindrance to you at all. But even supposing you do, now and then, find the inexorable daily half-hour stand in the way of something else, shall not the very thought of Him whose Voice you have deliberately resolved to hear daily at that fixed time, make you full amends ? Shall you resolve to pluck so freely of the Tree of Knowledge, and yet begrudge the approach once a day to the Tree of Life, which grows in the midst of the Paradise of GOD ? Shall ample time be found for works of fiction, for the Eeview, and the Magazine, and the newspaper, yet half an hour a day be deemed too much to be given to the "Word of GOD ? What ? room for everything and everybody ; yet still " no room in the Inn" for ORRIST! .... I have, (I speak honestly,) I have far too high an opinion of your in- stincts for good, to think it possible. You have plenty of faults, (Goo knoweth !), but I am very much deceived indeed if there be not a spirit stirring among the young men of this place, overflowing with promise; a real inclination, (obscured at times, but still very energetic,) for whatever things are pure, and lovely, and of good report. c2 20 ADVICE TO STUDENTS, AND [sERM. Of course, it is implied by what % goes before, that you will read no work of Divinity just at present. Be counselled, on no account, to read any. Above all, shun the partial, ill- digested pamphlet, and the one- sided review, and the controversial letter, and the Essay which seems to have been written. in order to prove nothing, Be content,^ for the next three years, to study no book of Divinity but the Bible. And the study of that Book, I repeat, you will find no hindrance, no impediment, no burthen to you at all. On the contrary. It will render you a very singular service, let your classical and logical studies be as severe as they will ; (and they cannot well be too severe, too engrossing, for this is your golden oppor- tunity which never will, never can, come back again !) The undersong of "Siloa's brook that flows, fast by the oracle of GOD," will many a time soothe and refresh your else dry and weary spirit. What was begun as a task will soon come to be regarded as a privilege. That jealously-guarded half-hour will be found to be the one green spot in the whole day, like Gideon's fleece, fresh with the dew of the early morning, when it is "dry upon all the earth beside." Your secret study of that Book of Books, I say, will render you a very singular service. The contrast between the Divine and Human method will strike you with ever- recurring power. Unlike every other History, the Bible removes the veil, and discovers the causes of things, including the First Great Cause of all, who dwelleth in Light unapproachable, but who yet hum- bleth Himself to behold, and to controul, and to over- rule for good, the things which are done in Heaven and on Earth. And thus, it is not too much to say that the Bible, to one who reads its pages aright, is I.] TO CANDIDATES FOR THE MINISTRY. 21 a certain clue to- every other History, as well as a perpetual commentary on every other Book. It informs the judgment, and cleanses the eye, through- out the whole department of Morals : and as for His- tory, what is it all, but the evidence of GOD in the world, " traces of His iron rod, or of His Shepherd's staff 6 ?" Profoundly sensible am I, that these have been very unintellectual, and somewhat common-place re- marks : but I would rather, a hundred times, be of use to the younger men present; I would rather, a hundred times, succeed in persuading one of them, to adopt that method of reading the Bible which I have been recommending; than try to say some- thing which might be thought fine and clever Let me only, in conclusion, faithfully remind them, that the true office of the study of Divine things is not, by any means, that which, for obvious reasons, I have been rather dwelling and enlarging upon. It is not merely to inform the understanding, that Holy Scripture is to be read with such consummate atten- tion, and studied with such exceeding care. It is not for the illustration of History, or in order that it may be made a test of the value of other systems of Morals. Not, by any means, in order to facilitate admission into Holy Orders, (for which only some of you are destined;) or to render a man's pulpit- addresses attractive and agreeable ; or even to enable a parish priest to teach with confidence and authority ; is he entreated now to " prevent the night watches," if need be, that he may be occupied (like one of old time d ,) with GOD'S "Word. no ! It is, in order c The Rev. C. Marriott's Sermons, vol. I. p. 441. d Ps. cxix. 148. 22 TRUE OFFICE OF BIBLICAL KNOWLEDGE. [SERM. I. that his inner life may be made conformable to that outer Law e : that his aims may be ennobled, and his motives purified, and his earthly hopes made consistent with the winning of an imperishable crown ! It is in order that when he wavers between Eight and "Wrong, the unutterable Canon of GOD'S Law may suggest itself to him as a constraining motive. Its aim, and purpose, and real function, is, that the fiery hour of temptation may find the Christian soldier armed with "the sword of the Spirit, which is the Word of GOD f :" that the dark season of Adversity may find his soul anchored on the Eock of Ages, which alone can prove his soul's sufficient strength and stay. ... Of a truth, as Life goes on, Men will find the blessedness of their Hope ; if they have not found it out already. Under every form of trial, and under every strange vicis- situde; in sickness, and in perplexity, and in bereavement, and in the hour of death; " LORD, to whom shall we go? Thou, Thou hast the words of Eternal Life !" 6 Not so Essays and Reviews, pp. 36 and 45. f Eph. vi. 17. SEEMON NATURAL SCIENCE AND THEOLOGICAL SCIENCE. HEBREWS xi. 3. Through Faith, we understand that the worlds were framed by the Word of GOD. 8T. PAUL, in a famous and familiar chapter of his Epistle to the Hebrews, having declared "what Faith is," proceeds, (as the heading of the chapter expresses it), to note "the worthy fruits thereof in the Fathers of old time." The Book of Genesis was obviously in his hands, or in his heart, while he wrote : for he appeals to the transactions there re- corded, in the very order, and often in the very words, of Moses. The HOLY GHOST, I say, directs our attention to what is contained in the ivth, vth, vith, xiith, xviith, xxiind, xxviith, xlviiith, and 1th chapters of Genesis. But He begins with a yet earlier chapter. He begins with the first. Abel, Enoch, JSToah, Abraham, Sarah, Isaac, Jacob, Joseph; these stand forward as samples of GOD'S faithful ones. But with them, the HOLY GHOST proposes to associate us. Moreover, He gives us the place of honour. Before mentioning one of their acts of Faith, He mentions one of ours. "We come first, then they. And the particular field in which we shine out so conspicuously, the special province * Preached in Christ- Church Cathedral, Nov. llth, 1860. 24 OUR PORTION IN HEB. XI. [SERM. which is assigned to us, that portion of the inspired Narrative wherein you and I are supposed to shew a degree of undoubting faith which entitles us to rank with those " Fathers of old time," is found to be the first chapter of the Book of Genesis. " Through Faith we understand that the worlds were framed by the "Word of GOD." An honourable place, and an honour- able function truly ! I would to GOD that it might be as gratifying to every one of the congregation, as it is to the preacher, to discover that this is the special stand-point which has been reserved for him and for them. Since, however, it is impossible to forget that we have sometimes seen heads, which are supposed to be very much indeed in advance of the age, shaken omi- nously at the very chapter which the text bequeaths and commends to the special acceptance of you and me, I propose that, in the very briefest manner, we now review the contents of that chapter; in order that we may discover what is the special absurdity, or impossibility, or improbability, or by whatever other name the thing is to be called, which makes it quite out of the question that you or I should undertake the act of Faith here assigned us. I read then, that " In the beginning, GOD created the Heaven and the Earth :" by which I under- stand, that, at some remote period, which may or may not baffle human Arithmetic b , it was the plea- b "The whole period, from the beginning of the primary fossili- ferous strata to the present day, must be great beyond calculation, and only bear comparison with the astronomical cycles, as might naturally be expected ; the earth being without doubt of the same antiquity with the other bodies of the solar system," Mrs. Somer- ville's Physical Geography. II.] " IN THE BEGINNING." 25 sure of GOD the FATHER, GOD the SON, GOD the HOLY GHOST, three Persons, coeternal and coequal, one GOD, out of nothing, to create the entire Universe. " All things that are in Heaven, and that are in Earth, visible and invisible, whether they be thrones, or do- minions, or principalities, or powers : all things were created by Him c ;" and they were created out of no- thing. The word in the original does not indeed ne- cessarily imply as much : but since there is no word in Hebrew, (any more than there is in Greek, Latin, or .English,) peculiarly expressive of the notion of creating out of nothing, it need not excite our surprise that Moses does not employ such a word to describe what GOD did "in the beginning." Then it was, in the grey of that far distant morning I mean, that all those glittering orbs which sow the vault of Heaven with brightness and with beauty, flashed into sudden being. " Thou, even Thou, art LORD alone: Thou hast made Heaven, the Heaven of Heavens, with all their host*." Suns, the centres of systems, many of them so distant from this globe of ours, that sun and system scarce shew so bright as a single lesser star: suns, I say, with their marvellous equipage of attendant bodies, our sun among the rest, with all those wandering fires which speed their unwearied courses round it: suns, and planets with their moons, bathed once and for ever in the fountain of that Light which GOD in^ habited from all Eternity, then marshalled themselves in mysterious order, according to " the counsel of His will 6 :" yea, and with their furniture, unimagined and unimaginable, went careering through the un- trodden realms of space, each on its several errand of glory, because of obedience to its Maker's sovereign c Col. i. 16. d Keh. ix. 6. Eph. i. 11. 26 PROVINCE OF GEOLOGY. [SERM. Law f . " By the Word of the LORD," (as it is written,) "were the Heavens made; and all the hosts of them by the breath of His mouth g !" 'Now, it is reserved to the geologist, (Nature's High-priest !) to guess at the condition of this Earth of ours throughout all the long period of un- chronieled ages which immediately succeeded the birthday of Time. It is for him to guess at the suc- cessive changes which this globe of ours underwent ; and the progressive cycles of Creation of which it was the theatre ; and the many strange races of crea- tures which, one after another, moved upon its sur- face, walking the dry, or inhabiting the moist. He shall guess ; and / will sit at his feet and listen, with unfeigned gratitude, wonder, and delight, while he reports to me his guesses : (for the really great man is eager to assure me that they are no more.) But when his tale of perplexity is ended, and the last 6,000 years of this world's History have to be discussed, the geologist's function is at an end. I bid him, in GOD'S Name, be silent ; for now it is GOD that speak- eth. If any question be moved as to how that actual system of things to which Man belongs, began, I bid him come down, and take the learner's place ; for now / mean to assume his vacant chair. This time, there shall at least be no guess-work. GOD is now the Speaker: and what GOD revealeth unto me, that I promise faithfully to report to him. There was a time, then, and it was certainly less than 6,000 years ago, when " the Earth was without form, and void ; and darkness was upon the face of the deep." What catastrophe it was which had caused that the fountains of the abyss should be broken up, f Hooker's Eccl. Pol., B. I. c. iii. 2. g Ps. xxxiii. 6. II.] GENESIS I. 2. 27 and the solid Earth submerged, I am not concerned to explain : nor how it had come to pass that from a world of seas and continents, it had become a watery ball, wrapped about with superincumbent vapour: nor how the blessed sunlight had suffered dire eclipse ; so that the Earth revolved in a horror of great dark- ness. My faith however is not troubled, nor even perplexed, by the strangeness of these things. Shall I think it a mere matter of course that one little flaw in a pipe shall, in a second of time, transform the orderly well-compacted seats of a goodly Church to one unsightly mass of shapeless and disordered ruin h ; and shall I pretend to stand aghast at the strangeness of a similar overthrow of this Earth's furniture at the mere fiat of the Most High ? Behold, " He mea- sureth the waters in the hollow of His Hand, and weigheth the mountains in scales V "What if the Creator of the earth and the sea shall bid them of a sudden change places ? Think you that they would hesitate to obey Him ? Or what if He " calleth for the waters of the Sea, and poureth them out upon the face of the Earth*?" Then further, if I believe, (as I do believe,) that when the Jews crucified the LORD of Glory " there was darkness over all the land" from the sixth hour unto the ninth k ; nay, that when " Moses stretched forth his hand toward Heaven, there was a thick darkness in all the land of Egypt," even darkness which might be felt, for three whole days 1 : h Alluding to a catastrophe which had recently occurred at St. Mary's Church, and which necessitated considerable repairs ; in consequence of which, the first four of these Sermons were preached in the Cathedral. 1 Is. xl. 12. j Amos v. 8 and ix. 6. k St. Matth. xxvii. 45. l Exod. x. 2123. 28 WORK OF THE FIRST DAY. [SERM. more than that ; if I believe, (as I do believe,) the solemn prediction of my LORD, that at the consum- mation of all things, " The Sun shall be darkened, and the Moon shall not give her light, and the Stars shall fall from Heaven" 1 :" shall it move me to incredulity, if GOD tells me, that six thousand years ago it was His Divine pleasure that the same phenomenon should prevail for a season ? Surely, (I say to myself,) surely this is He " which remove th the mountains, and they know not : which shaketh the Earth out of her place, and the pillars thereof tremble. Which commandeth the Sun, and it riseth not ; and sealeth up the Stars"!" 1. But it was now GOD'S pleasure to bring Beauty out of Chaos, and to establish a fresh order of things upon the surface of our Earth. And, as the first step thereto, " the SPIRIT of GOD moved upon the face of the waters." The Hebrew phrase implies no less than the tremulous brooding as of a bird, causing the dreary waste to heave and swell with coming life. " And GOD said, Let there be Light. And there was Light." " He spake and it was done ." From Him- self, who is " the true Light," (not from the Sun, which, - like the rest of the orbs of Heaven, is but a lamp of His kindling) ; from Himself, I say, a ray of Light went forth ; and that is why He was pleased to praise it. Look through the chapter, and you will find that it is the only one of His creatures of which it is specially said that " GOD saw that it was good p ." . . . Thus, one hemisphere was illumined, whereby " GOD divided the light from the darkness ;" and when the Earth had completed a single revolution, there had m St. MattL. xxiv. 29. n Job ix. 57. Ps. xxxiii. 9. P Gen. i. 4. II.] WORK OF THE SECOND, AND THIRD DAYS. 29 been a Day and there had been a Night, so named by the Word of GOD : " and the evening and the morning were the first Day q ." ... Do you see any impossibility so far ? I, certainly, see none. It does not seem to me absurd that " the Light of the world r ," " dwelling in the light which no man can approach unto 8 ," should cause "the light to shine out of dark- ness 1 ." We shall perhaps come upon the absurdity by and by. Let us hasten forward. 2. " And GOD said, Let there be a firmament in the midst of the waters, and let it divide the waters from the waters." The Hebrew word (an expansion), and the context, shew plainly enough what is meant. The atmosphere was now created, whereupon the watery particles either subsided into sea, or rose aloft in the form of clouds. " And the evening and the morning were the second Day," which is the only day of which it is not said that GOD saw that it was good. 3. " And GOD said, Let the waters under the Heaven be gathered together unto one place, and let the dry land appear." Then it was that these con- tinents were upheaved, other than those which had been continents before; and the sea sank into the cavities which had been ordained for its reception; Then, " GOD saw that it was good." The sentence of approval which had been withheld from the work of yesterday, because that work, (namely, of dividing the i "Can any one sensible of the value of words suppose," (asks Mr. Goodwin,) " that nothing more is here described, or intended to be described, than the partial clearing away of a fog?" (Essays and Reviews, pp. 227-8.) No one, we answer. But to the ques- tion, we venture to rejoin another. To whom does this philosopher suppose his pleasantry likely to prove injurious? Is he making Moses ridiculous, or himself? r St. John ix. 5, &c. 1 Tim. vi. 16. * 2 Cor. iv. 6. 30 WORK OF THE FOURTH AND FIFTH DAYS. [SERM. waters from the waters,) was incomplete, is freely bestowed to-day. And it may have been to teach us that no incomplete work is " good," in GOD'S sight. Next, the Creator called into being every extant form of vegetable life. So that, instead of a world of waters, which was all that was to be seen yesterday, not only cliffs, and mountains, and bays, but green hills, and fertile valleys, and grassy meadows had come to view, with lakes, and rivers, and fountains, and falls of water. Again it is written, concerning Earth's green furniture, " GOD saw that it was good." " And the evening and the morning were the third Day." 4. " And GOD said, Let there be Lights in the firma- ment of the Heaven to divide the day from the night : and let them be for signs, and for seasons, and for days, and for years." And so it was. Sun, moon, and stars, came to view u ; and this globe of ours, no longer illumined, as, for three days, it had been, re- joiced in the sun's. genial light by day, and by night in the splendours of the paler planet. And thus was also gained an easy measure for marking time, the succession of months and years, as well as of days. " And GOD saw that it was good." " And the evening and the morning were the fourth Day." 5. "And GOD said, Let the waters bring forth abundantly the moving creature that hath life." Thus the inhabitants of the sea and of the air were called into existence ; and it was from the sea that GOD seems to have commanded that they should derive their being. He saw that it was good, and He blessed 11 " Whether the writer regarded them as already existing, and only waiting to have a proper place assigned them, may be open to question." (E. and R., p. 221.) We accept the alternative given us by Mr. Goodwin. II.] WORK OF THE SIXTH DAY. 31 the fish and the winged fowl; "and the evening and the morning were the fifth Day." 6. It remained only to provide for the dry land its occupants ; and the Earth was accordingly commanded to bring forth the living creature after his kind, beast and cattle and creeping thing. Unlike that first Creation which was of all things out of nothing, the work of the six days was a creation of new things out of old. To the Creation of Man, His crowning work, GOD is declared to have come with deliberation ; as well as to have announced His purpose with sig- nificant solemnity of allusion. " Let us make Man in our image, after our likeness ; and let them have do- minion over the fish of the sea, and over the fowl of the air, and over the cattle." " And the LORD GOD formed Man of the dust of the ground, and breathed into his nostrils the breath of life; and Man became a living soul." Transferred to the Garden of GOD'S planting in Eden, to dress it and to keep it, (for in- activity is no part of bliss !) and brought into solemn covenant with GOD, to Adam, GOD brings the beasts of the field and the fowls of the air, of set purpose that GOD may "see what he will call them:" a wondrous tribute, truly, to the perfection of understanding in which Man had been created ! . . . " And the LORD GOD caused a deep sleep to fall upon Adam, and he slept : and He took one of his ribs, and closed up the flesh instead thereof; and the rib which the LORD GOD had taken from man, made He a woman, and brought her unto the man. And Adam said, This is now bone of my bone, and flesh of my flesh : she shall be called woman, because she was taken out of man. Therefore shall a Man leave his Father and his Mother, and shall cleave unto his wife, and they shall be one flesh." . . . 32 MARRIAGE, AND THE SABBATH. [sERM. Man's creation was the crowning wonder, to which all else had, in a manner, tended Truly when we think of him, newly made in GOD'S image, surveying this world, yet fresh with the dew of its birth, and beautiful as it came from the Hands of its Maker, it seems scarcely the language of poetry that then " the morning stars sang together and all the sons of GOD shouted for joy V I have preferred thus to complete the history of Man's Creation; which presents us with the primal institution of all, that, namely, of Marriage. " On the seventh Day, GOD rested from all His work which He had made ; and blessed the seventh Day, and sanctified it ; because that in it He had rested from all His work." This then is the other great primaeval institution ; more ancient than the Fall, the Law of the Sabbath ; which in the sacred record is brought into such august prominence. And never do we ponder over that record, without apprehension at what may be the possible results of relaxing the stringency of enactments which would seem to be, to our nature, as the very twin pillars of the Temple, its establishment and its strength 2 ". Now, on a review of all this wondrous History, I profess myself at a loss to see what special note of impracticability it presents that I should hesitate to embrace it, in the plain natural sense of the words, with both the arms of my heart. That it is not such an account of the manner of the Creation as you or I should have ourselves invented, or anticipated, or on questionable testimony have felt disposed to accept, is very little to the purpose. Apart from Eeve- lation, we could really have known nothing at all v Job xxxviii. 7. x Alluding to 1 Kings vii. 21. II.] THE HISTORY OF CREATION TRUE. 33 about the works of the Days of the first Great "Week. Ejaculations therefore concerning the strangeness of the record, and cavils at the phraseology in which it is propounded, are simply irrelevant. There exists however a vague suspicion after all that the beginning of Genesis is a vision, or an alle- gory, or a parable, or anything you please, except true History. It is hard to imagine why. If there be a book in the whole Bible which purports to be a plain historical narrative of actual events, that book is the book of Genesis. In nine-tenths of its details, it is as human, and as matter of fact, as any book of Biography or History that ever was penned. Why the first page of it is to be torn out, treated as a myth or an allegory, and in short explained away, I am utterly at a loss to discover. There is no difference in the style. Long since has the theory that Genesis is composed of distinguishable fragments, been ex- ploded 7 . There is no pretence for calling this first chapter poetry, and treating it by a distinct set of canons. It is a pure Revelation, I admit : but I have yet to learn why the revelation of things intelligible, where the method of speech is not such as to challenge a figurative interpretation, is not to be taken literally : unless indeed it has been discovered that a narrative must of necessity be fabulous if the transactions re- ferred to are unusually remote and extraordinary. The events recorded are unique in their character, true. y The test of Elohim and Jehovah has been, by the Germans them- selves, given up ; " and for this plain reason, that in many parts of Genesis, [e.g. ch. xxviii. 16 22 : xxxi. : xxxix., &c.] it is utterly untenable ; the names being so intermingled as to admit of no such division." See the Appendix (C) to the Eev. Henry John Eose's Hulsean Lectures for 1833, p. 233. D 34 CERTAIN OBJECTIONS DISPOSED OF. [SERM. But this happens from the very necessity of the case. The creation of a world, to the inhabitants of that world is an unique event. But we are assured that some of the statements in this first chapter of Genesis are palpably untrue ; as when it is said that the Sun, Moon, and Stars were created on the fourth Day, which, it is urged, is a physical impossibility: for what forces else sus- tained, and kept this world a sphere? The pheno- mena of Geology again prove to demonstration, it is said, that the structure of the earth is infinitely more ancient than the Mosaic record states : and also that there must have been Light, and sunshine too, at that remote epoch, which fostered each various form of animal and vegetable life. Further, we are assured that it is unphilosophical to speak of the creation of Light before the creation of the Sun. Then, the simplicity of the language is objected to: "the greater light to rule the day, and the lesser light to rule the night :" " dividing the light from the dark- ness :" " waters above the firmament :" and so forth. The very ascription of speech to GOD, gives offence. Again, some raw conceit of the advanced state of the human intellect rejects with scorn the notion of Adam oracularly bestowing names on GOD'S creatures. Finally, the creation of Eve, moulded by GOD from the side of the Protoplast, is declared to savour so plainly of the mythical, allegorical, or figurative ; that the narrative must be allowed to be altogether un- worthy of such wits as ours. But we have seen that the creation of Sun, Moon, and Stars is not assigned to the fourth day but to " the beginning." The antiquity of this Earth we affirm to be a circumstance left wholly untouched by II.] WHY SPEECH IS ATTRIBUTED TO GOD. 35 the Mosaic record : or, if touched, it is rather con- firmed; for, before beginning to describe the work of the first Day, Moses describes the state of "the Earth" by two Hebrew words of most rare occurrence 2 , which denote that it had become waste and empty: while " the deep" is spoken of as being already in existence. There is nothing at all unphilosophical in speaking of Light as existing apart from the Sun. Eather would it be unphilosophical to speak of the Sun as the source and centre of Light. I see nothing more childish again in the mention of " the greater and the lesser light," than in the talk of " sun-rise" and " sun-set," which is to this hour the language of the Observatory. As for attributing speech to GOD, I am content to remind you of Hooker's explanation of the design of Moses therein, throughout the pre- sent Chapter. " Was this only his intent," (he asks ? ) " to signify the infinite greatness of GOD'S power by the easiness of His accomplishing such effects without travail, pain, or labour ? Surely it seemeth that Moses had herein besides this a further purpose; namely, first to teach that GOD did not work as a necessary, but a voluntary agent, intending beforehand and de- creeing with Himself that which did outwardly pro- ceed from Him ; secondly, to shew that GOD did then institute a Law natural to be observed by Creatures, and therefore according to the manner of laws, the institution thereof is described, as being established by solemn injunction. His commanding those things to be which are, and to be in such sort as they are, to keep that tenure and course which they do, importeth x Besides in Gen. i. 2, the expression (iohu loJiu} recurs in Jer. iv. 23 and Is. xxxiv. 11, both, times with clear reference to the earlier place. Jeremiah in fact quotes Genesis. D2 36 ADAM'S KNOWLEDGE. [SERM. the establishment of Nature's Law And as it cometh to pass in a kingdom rightly ordered, that after a Law is once published, it presently takes effect far and wide, all states framing themselves thereunto ; even so let us think that it fareth in the natural course of the world. Since the time that GOD did first proclaim the edicts of His Law upon it, Heaven and Earth have hearkened unto His voice, and their labour hath been to do His will a ." " He spake the wor^ and they were made : He commanded and they were created. He hath made them fast for ever and ever. He hath given them a law which shall not be broken*" Whether or no South overestimated Adam's know- ledge, I will not pretend to decide : but I am convinced the truth lies more with him than with certain modern wits, when he says concerning our first Father: "He came into the world a philosopher; which suffi- ciently appeared by his writing the nature of things upon their names . . . His understanding could almost pierce into future contingents; his conjectures im- proving even to prophecy, or the certainties of pre- diction. Till his Fall, he was ignorant of nothing but sin ... There was then no struggling with memory, no straining for invention. His faculties were ready upon the first summons . . . "We may collect the ex- cellency of the understanding then, by the glorious remainders of it now : and guess at the stateliness of the building by the magnificence of its ruins . . . And certainly that must needs have been very glorious, the decays of which are so admirable. He that is comely when old and decrepit, surely was very beautiful when lie was young ! An Aristotle was but the rubbish Eccl. Pol, B. I. c. iii. 2. b Ps. cxlviii. 5, 6. II.] THE DAYS OF GEN. I., REAL DAYS. 37 of an Adam ; and Athens but the rudiments of Paradise c ." And lastly, as for so much of the Divine narrative as concerns the Creation of the first human pair, I am content to remind you of a. circumstance which in ad- dressing believers ought to be of overwhelming weight : namely, that our SAVIOUR and His Apostles, again and again, refer to the narrative before us in a manner which precludes the notion of its being anything but severest History. Our SAVIOUR CHRIST even resyl- lables the words spoken by the Protoplast in Para- dise ; and therein finds a sanction for the indissoluble nature of the marriage bond d . I take leave to add that even the respectful attempt to make Genesis accommodate itself to the supposed requirements of Geology, by boldly assuming that the days of Creation were each a thousand years long, seems inadmissible. Even were such an hypothesis allowed, nothing would be gained : for Geology does not by any means require us to believe that after a thousand years of misty light, there came a thousand years of ocean deposit : and again, a thousand years of moist and dry, during which vegetable life alone prevailed: and then a thousand years of sun, moon, and stars. The very notion seems absurd 6 . But, c South's Sermons, (Serin. II.) d See St. Matth. xix. 4 to 6, where Gen. i. 27 as well as Gen. ii. 24, are quoted by our SAVIOUR. e " Holding," (says Hugh Miller,) "that the six days of the Mosaic account were not natural days, but lengthened periods, I find myself called on, as a geologist, to account for but three out of the six. Of the period during which light was created ; of the period during which a firmament was made to separate the waters from the waters ; or of the period during which the two great lights of the earth, with the other heavenly bodies, became visible from 38 THE DAYS OF GEN I., REAL DAYS. [SERM. what is more to the purpose, such an interpretation seems to stultify the whole narrative. A week is de- scribed. Days are spoken of, each made up of an evening and a morning. GOD'S cessation from the work of Creation on the Seventh Day is emphatically ad- duced as the reason of the Fourth Commandment, the mysterious precedent for our observance of one day of rest at the end of every six days of toil, "for in six days" (it is declared,) "the LOTID made Heaven and Earth V You may not play tricks with language plain as this, and elongate a week until it shall more than embrace the span of all recorded Time. Neither am I able to see what would be gained by proposing to prolong the Days of Creation indefi- nitely, so as to consider them as representing vast and unequal periods; (though I am far from presuming to speak of any pious conjecture with disrespect.) My inveterate objection to this scheme is again two- fold. (1) The best-ascertained requirements of Geo- logy are not satisfied by a sixfold division of pheno- mena corresponding with what is recorded in Gene- sis of the Six Days of Creation. (2) This method does even greater violence to the letter of the in- spired narrative than the scheme of reconcilement last hinted at. I dare not believe that what has been spoken will altogether meet the requirements of minds of a certain the Earth's surface ; we need expect to find no record in the rocks." Testimony, &c., p. 134. This is ingenious, and is piously meant. But the first three days remain to be accounted for ly somebody, all the same. If the last three days represent " lengthened periods," so, I suppose, do i\& first three. ' Exod. xx. 11. II.] " MODESTY OF ASSERTION." 39 stamp. A gentleman, who certainly has the advan- tage of appearing in good company, has lately favoured the world with the information that the first chapter of Genesis is the uninspired speculation of a Hebrew astronomer, who was bent on giving " the best and most probable account that could be then given of GOD'S universe g ." The Hebrew writer asserts indeed " solemnly and unhesitatingly that for which he must have known that he had no authority 11 ;" but we need not therefore " attribute to him wilful misrepresenta- tion, or consciousness of asserting that which he knew not to be true 1 ." If this " early speculator" "as- serted as facts what he knew in reality only as pro- babilities," it was because he was not harassed by the scruples which result " from our modern habits of thought, and from the modesty of assertion which the spirit of true science has taught us j ." The history of this important discovery and of others of a similar nature, (which, by the way, are one and all announced with the same " modesty of assertion" as what goes before,) would appear to be this. Natural science has lately woke up from her long slumber of well nigh sixty ages ; and with that immodesty for which youth and inexperience have ever been proverbial,' she is impatient to measure her crude theories against the sure revelation of GOD'S Word. Where the two differ, she assumes that of course the inspired Oracles are wrong, and her own wild guesses right. She is even indecent in her eagerness to invalidate the testimony of that Book which has -been the confidence and stay of GOD'S Servants in all ages. On any evidence, or on none, she is prepared to hurl to the winds the * Essays and Reviews, p. 252. h Hid. 1 Id. p. 253. ' Id. p. 252. 40 THE PRETENCE THAT THE BIBLE IS [SERM. august record of Creation. Inconveniently enough for the enemies of GOD'S Word, every advance in Geological Science does but serve to corroborate the record that the Creation of Man is not to be referred to a remoter period than some six thousand years ago. But of this important fact we hear but little. On the other hand, no trumpet is thought loud enough to bruit about a suspicion that Man may be a creature of yet remoter date. Thus, fragments of burnt brick found fifty feet below the surface of the banks of the Nile, were hailed as establishing Man's existence in Egypt more than 13,000 years; until it was unhappily re- membered that burnt brick in Egypt belongs to the period of the Eoman dominion. More recently, im- plements of chipped flint found, with some bones, in a bed of gravel, have been eagerly appealed to as a sufficient indication that the Creation of Man is to be referred to a period at least 10,000 years more re- mote than is fixed by the Chronology of the Bible. . . . Brick and flint ! a precious fulcrum, truly, for a theory which is to upset the World ! But I shall be told, with that patronizing air of conscious intellectual superiority which a certain class of gentlemen habitually assume on such occasions, that I mistake the case completely : that no wish is entertained in any quarter to invalidate the truth of Eevelation, or to shake Men's confidence in the Bible as the Word of GOD : that it has been the way of narrow-minded bigots in all ages, and is so in this, to raise an outcry of the Bible being in danger, and so to rouse the prejudices of mankind : that the error lies in claiming for the Bible an office which it no- where claims for itself, and which it was never meant to fulfil : that the harmony between the Bible and II.] NOT A SCIENTIFIC BOOK, CONSIDERED. 41 Nature is complete, but that it is not such a harmony as is sometimes imagined : that the Bible is not a scientific book, and was never meant to teach Natural Science : that it was designed to inculcate moral good- ness, and is clearly full of unscientific statements, which it is the office of Science to correct; and, if need be, to remove. All this, and much beside, I shall be told. Such fallacious platitudes have been put forth by men who are neither Divines nor Philoso- phers, ad nauseam, within the last forty or fifty years. Now, in reply, we have a few words to say. The profession of faithfulness we hail with pleasure : the imputation of imbecility we accept with unconcern. But when gentlemen tell us that the Bible was never meant to teach Science ; and that wherever its state- ments are opposed to the clear inductions of reason; they must give way ; and so forth : we take the liberty of retaliating their charge. We inform them that they really mistake the case entirely. When they go on to tell us that they believe in the truth of the Bible as sincerely as ourselves : that its harmonies are com- plete, but not such as we imagine ; and so forth ; we venture to add that they really know not what they assert. In plain language, they talk nonsense. Of a simple unbeliever we know at least what to think. But what is to be thought of persons who disbelieve just whatever they dislike, and yet profess to be just as hearty believers as you or I ? That the Mosaic record of Creation has been thought at variance with certain deductions of modern obser- vation, is not surprising: seeing that the deductions of each fresh period have been at variance with the deductions of that which went before ; and seeing that the theory of one existing school is inconsistent 42 THE PRETENCE THAT THE BIBLE IS [SERM. with the theory of another. That the Bible is not, in any sense, a scientific treatise again, is simply a truism : (who ever supposed that it was ?). Moses writes " the history of the Human Eace as regards Sin and Sal- vation: not a cosmical survey of all the successive phenomena of the globe k ." Further, that he employs popular phraseology when speaking of natural pheno- mena, is a statement altogether undeniable. But such remarks are a gross fallacy, and a mere deceit, if it be meant that the statements in the Bible partake of the imperfection of knowledge incident to a rude and primitive state of society. To revive an old illustra- tion, Is a philosopher therefore a child, because, in addressing children, he uses language adapted to their age and capacity ? GOD speaks in the First Chapter of Genesis, hath spoken for three and thirty hundred years, as unto children : but there is no risk there- fore that in what He saith, He either hath deceived, or will deceive mankind. You are never to forget the great fundamental posi- tion, that the Bible claims to be the Word of GOD ; and that Gows Word can never contradict or be contra- dicted ly GOD'S works. We therefore reject, in limine, all insinuations about the " unscientific" character of the Bible. A scientific man does not cease to be sci- entific because he does not choose always to express himself scientifically. Again. A man of universal Science does not forfeit his scientific reputation, if, in the course of a moral or religious argument, his allusions to natural phenomena are expressed in the ordinary language of mankind. Even so, Almighty GOD, "in whom are hid all the treasures of wisdom k Pattison's The Earth and the World, p. 99. II.] NOT A SCIENTIFIC BOOK, CONSIDERED. 43 and knowledge 1 ," speaking to us by the mouth of His holy Prophets, never, that I am aware, teaches them to speak a strictly scientific language, except when the Science of Theology is being discoursed of. On other occasions, He suffers their language to be like yours or mine. " Sun, stand thou still upon Gibeon m :" "The clouds drop down the dew n :" "The wind bloweth where it listeth ." Not so when Theology is the subject. Then the language becomes scientific. " Except a man be born of water and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the Kingdom of GOD P :" "Take, eat, This is My Body q :" "Before Abraham was, I am r :" " I and the FATHER are One 8 ." But there is this great difference between the cases supposed. A man of universal scientific attainment will be less strong in one subject than another: and in the course of his Geological allusions, if Mechanical Science be his forte, in the course of his Metaphysical allusions, if. Mathematical Science be his proper depart- ment, he may easily err. Above all, the limits of the knowledge of unassisted Man must infallibly be those of the age in which he lives. But, with the Ancient of Days, it is not so. He at least cannot err. Nothing that man has ever discovered by laborious induction was not known to Him from the beginning : nothing that He hath ever commissioned His servants to deliver, will be found inconsistent with the anterior facts of History. " He that made the eye, shall He not see*?' 7 The records of Creation then cannot be incorrect. The course of Man's history must be that 1 Col. ii. 3. m Josh. x. 12. n Prov. iii. 20. St. John iii. 8. p St. John iii. 5. 1 St. Matth. xxvi. 26. r St. John viii. 58. * St. John x. 30. * Ps. xciv. 9. 44 THE HISTORICAL TRUTH OF THE [SERM. which, speaking by the mouth of His Prophets, GOD hath described. " I never said the contrary," is the reply. " All I say is that you interpret the records of Creation wrongly: and that you are disposed to lay greater stress on the historical accuracy of the Bible than the narrative will bear." but, sir, whoever you may be who censure me thus, let me in all kindness warn you of the pit, at the very edge whereof you stand ! Ear be it from such an one as the preacher to assume that he so apprehends the First Chapter of Genesis, that if an Angel were to turn interpreter, he might not convince me of more than one misapprehension in matters of detail. But of this, at least, I am quite certain; that when I find it recorded that GOD took counsel about Man's Creation : and made him in " His own image," and u breathed into his nostrils the breath of life," whereby man became "a living soul:" and further, when I find it stated that Adam bestowed names upon all creatures : and spake oracularly of his spouse : I am certain, I say, when I read such things, that GOD intended me to believe that Man was created with a Godlike understanding, and with the perfect fruition of the primaeval speech. Further, I boldly assert that he who could prove the contradictory, would make the Bible, even as a Theological Book, nothing worth, to you and me. The same must be said of the Bible chronology. And here I will adopt the words of one who is justly entitled to be listened to in this place ; and who must at least be allowed to be a competent judge of the matter, for he made Chronology his province. Mr. Clinton says : " Those who imagine themselves at II.] BIBLE MUST BE INSISTED ON. 45 liberty to enlarge the time [which elapsed from the. Creation to the Deluge, and from the Deluge to the Birth of Abraham,] to an indefinite amount, mistake the nature of the question. The uncertainty here is not an uncertainty arising from want of testimony : (like that which occurs in the early chronology of Greece, and of many other countries ; when the times are uncertain because no evidence is preserved.) . . . The uncertainty here is of a peculiar character, be- longing to this particular case. The evidence exists, but in a double form ; and we have to decide which is the authentic and genuine copy. But if the one is rejected, the other is established:" the difference be- tween the two being exactly 1,250 years. Men are free to reject the evidence, to be sure; but we defy them to explain it away. The chronological details of the Bible are as emphatically set down as anything can be ; and, (with the exception of a few particulars, chiefly in the Book of Kings, which are to the record what misprints are to a printed book,) they are en- tirely consistent; and hang perfectly well together. Let us not be told, then, that we entertain groundless apprehensions for the authority of GOD'S Word when we hear it proposed to refer the Creation of Man to a period of unheard-of antiquity. Destroy my con- fidence in the Bible as an historical record, and you destroy my confidence in it altogether ; for by far the largest part of the Bible is an historical record. If the Creation of Man, the longevity of the Patri- archs, the account of the Deluge; if these be not true histories, what is to be said of the lives of Abra- ham, of Jacob, of Joseph, of Moses, of Joshua, of David, of our SAVIOUR CHRIST Himself? But there is a scornful spirit abroad which is not 46 ALL SCRIPTURE TO BE BELIEVED, OR NONE. [SERM. content to allegorize the earlier pages of the Bible, to scoff at the story of the Flood, to reject the out- lines of Scripture Chronology ; but which would dis- pute the most emphatic details of Eevelation itself. Consistent, this method is, at all events. Let it have the miserable praise which is so richly its due. To logical consistency, it may at least lay claim. It re- fuses to stop anywhere : as why should it stop ? Faith is denied her office, because Eeason fails to see the rea- sonableness of Faith : and accordingly, unbelief enters in with a flood-tide. Miracles, for example, are now to be classed, (we learn,) among " the difficulties " of Christianity u . It was to have been expected. ( Who foresees not what must be the fate of such " dif- ficulties " as these ?) And will you tell me that you may reject the miraculous transactions recorded in the Old and New Testaments, and yet retain the nar- rative which contains them? That were indeed ab- surd ! "Will you then reject one miracle and retain another ? Impossible ! You can make no reservation, even in favour of the Incarnation of our LORD, the most adorable of air miracles, as it is the very key- stone of our Christian hope. Either, with the best and wisest of all ages, you must believe the whole of Holy Scripture ; or, with the narrow-minded infidel, you must &believe the whole. There is no middle course open to you. Do we then undervalue the discoveries of Natural Science ; or view with jealousy the progress she has of late been making? GOD forbid ! With unfeigned joy we welcome her honest triumphs, as so many fresh evidences of the wisdom, the power, the good- ness of GOD. "Thou, LORD, -hast made me glad u On this subject, the reader is referred to Senn. VII. II.] SCIENCE AND THEOLOGY. 47 through Thy works x !" The very guesses of Geology are precious. What are they but noble endeavours to unfold a page anterior to the first page of the Eible ; or rather, to discover what secrets are locked up in the first verse of it? But when, instead of being a faithful Servant, Natural Science affects the airs of an imperious Mistress, what can she hope to incur at the hands of Theology, but displeasure and contempt? She forgets her proper place, and over- looks her lawful function. She prates about the laws of Nature in the presence of Him who, when He created the Universe, invented those very laws, and impressed them on His irrational creatures. Does it never humble her to reflect that it was but yesterday she detected the fundamental Law of Gravitation? Does she never blush with shame to consider that for well nigh six thousand years men have been inquisi- tively walking this Earth's surface ; and yet, that, one hundred years ago, the prevalent notions concerning fossil remains, and the Earth's structure, were such as now-a-days would be pronounced incredibly ridi- culous and absurd ? To conclude. The very phraseology with which men have presumed to approach this entire question, is insolent and unphilosophical. The popular phrase- ology of the day, I say, hardly covers, so as to conceal, a lie. "We constantly find SCIENCE and THEOLOGY opposed to one another : just as if Theology were not a Science ! History forsooth, with all her inaccuracy of observation, is a Science: and Geology, with all her weak guesses, is a Science : and comparative Ana- tomy, with nothing but her laborious inductions to boast of, is a Science : but Theology, which is based * Ps. xcii. 4. 48 THEOLOGY THE QUEEN OF SCIENCES. [SERM. on the express revelation of the Eternal, is some other thing ! What do you mean to tell us that The- ology is, but the very queen of Sciences? Would Aristotle have bestowed on Ethic the epithet apxireK- rovLKrj, think you, had he known of that Oelos Aoyo?, which his friend, "not blind by choice, but des- tined not to see 7 / 7 felt after yet found not? that "more excellent way," which you and I, by GOD'S great mercy, possess ? Go to ! For popular purposes, if you will, let the word " Science " stand for the knowledge of the phenomena of Nature ; somewhat as, in this place, the word stands for the theory of Morals, and some of the phenomena of Mind : and so, let SCIENCE be contrasted with THEOLOGY, without offence taken, because none is intended. But let it never be forgotten that Theology is the great Science of all, the only Science which really deserves the name. What have other sciences to boast of which Theology has not? Antiquity, such as no other can, in any sense, lay claim to : a Literature, which is absolutely without a rival : a Terminology, which reflects the very image of all the ages: Professors, of loftier wit, from the days of Athanasius and Augustine, down to the days of our own Hooker and Butler, men of higher mark, intellectually and morally, than adorn the annals of any other Science since the World began: above all things, a subject-matter, which is the grandest imagination can conceive ; and a foundation, which has all the breadth, and length, and depth and height z , which the Hands of GOD Himself could give it. For subject-matter, what Science will you compare with this ? All the others in the world will not bring y Cowper. z Eph. iii. 18. II.] PRAISE OF THEOLOGICAL SCIENCE. 49 a man to the knowledge of GOD and of CHRIST ! They will not inform him of the will of GOD, although they may teach him to observe His Works. " The Heavens declare the glory of GOD," but, as Lord Bacon re- marked long since, we do not read that they declare His will. Neither do the other sciences of necessity lead to any belief at all in the GOD of Eevelation a . And, for that whereon they are built, what Science again will you compare with this ? Let the pretender to Geological skill, (I say not the true Geologist, for he never offends !) let the conceited sciolist, I say, go dream a little longer over those implements of chipped flint which have called him into such noisy activity, and discover, as he will discover, that the assumed inference from the gravel and the bones is fallacious after all b . Let the Historian go spell a little longer over that moth-eaten record of dynasties which never were, by means of which he proposes to set right the clock of Time c . Let the Naturalist walk round the stuffed or bleached wonders of his museum, and guess again d . Theological Science not so! Her evidence is sure, for her Eule is GOD'S Word. No laborious Induction here, fallacious because imperfect ; imper- fect because human : but a direct message from the presence-chamber of the LORD of Heaven and Earth, decisive because inspired ; infallible because Divine. The express Eevelation of the Eternal is that whereon Theological Science builds her fabric of imperishable a This paragraph is mostly copied from a Sermon (MS.) preached before the University by the late Professor Hussey, Oct. 12, 1856. b Professor Phillips refers me to a paper by Mr. Prestwich in the Proceedings of the Royal Society, 1859, vol. x. No. 35, p. 58. Also in the Transactions of the R. 8. for 1860, p. 308. c I allude to the supposed disclosures of Egyptian monuments. d I allude to a recent work on the Origin of Species. 50 SHAM LIBERALITY. [SERM. Truth : that fabric which, while other modes change, shift, and at last become superseded, shines out, yea, and to the very end of Time will shine out, un- conscious of decay, incapable of improvement, far, far beyond the reach of fashion : a thing unchanged, because in its very nature unchangeable e ! O sirs, we are constrained to be brief in this place. The field must perforce be narrowed ; and so, for this time, it must suffice to have warned you against the men who resort to the armoury of Natural Science for weapons wherewith to assail GOD'S Truth. Re- gard them as the enemies of your peace ; and learn to reject their specious, yet most inconsequential rea- sonings, with the scorn which is properly their due. Contempt and scorn GOD implanted in us, precisely that we might bestow them on reasonings worthless in their texture, and foul in their object, as these ; which teach distrust of the earlier pages of GOD'S "Word, on the pretence that they are contradicted by the evidence of GOD'S Works. Learn to abhor that spurious liberality which is liberal only with what is not its own ; and which reminds one of nothing so much as the conduct of leprous persons who are said to be for ever seeking to communicate and extend their own unhappy taint to others. I allude to that sham liberality which under pretence of extending the common standing ground of Christian men, is in reality attenuating it until it proves incapable of bearing the weight of a single soul. There is room on the Eock for all ; but it is only on the Eock that we are safe. To speak without a figure, He who surrenders the first page of his Bible, surrenders all. He knows not e The reader is requested to read what Bishop Pearson has most eloquently written on this subject. It will be found in the Appendix (B). II.] ST. JOHN, THE EVANGELIST OF DOGMA. 51 where to stop. Nay, you and I cannot in any way afford to surrender the beginning of Genesis ; simply because upon the truth of what is there recorded depends the whole scheme of Man's salvation, the need of that " second Man" which is " the LORD from Heaven f ." It is not too much to say that the begin- ning of Genesis is the foundation on which all the rest of the Bible is built g . We may not go over to those who would mutilate the Book of Life, or evacuate any part of its message. It is they, on the contrary, who must come over to us. Much has it been the fashion of these last days, (I cannot imagine why,) to vaunt the character and the Gospel of St. John, " the disciple of Love," as he is called ; as if it were secretly thought that there is a latitudinarianism in Love which would wink at Doctrinal obliquity ; whereas St. John is the Evangelist of Dogma ; and if there be anything in the world which is jealous, that thing is Love. Indiffer- ence to Truth, and laxity of Belief, are the grow- ing characteristics of the age. But you will find that St. John has about four or five times as much about TRUTH as all the other three Evangelists ; while the act of Faith receives as frequent mention in his writings alone as in all the rest of the New Testament Canon put together h . Let me end, as the manner of preachers is, by gathering out of what has been spoken one brief prac- tical consideration. This whole visible frame of things wherein we play our part, is hastening to decay. Everything we behold, ourselves included, carries f 1 Cor. xv. 47. g Ibid. xv. 22, &c. h Hums does not occur once in St. John's Gospel : Tria-reixo (which, is found about thirty-five times, in all, in the first three Gospels,) occurs about one hundred times, in the Gospel of St. John alone. E2 52 EXHORTATION TO FAITHFULNESS. [SERM. II. with it the prophecy of its own speedy dissolution. What, amid the wreck of worlds, will be our con- fidence ? ... It is an inquiry worth making, in these the days of health, and vigour, and security, and peace. O my soul, (learn to ask yourselves,) my soul, when the Heavens shall depart, and the Earth reel before the Second Advent of its Maker; when the Sun puts on mourning, and the very powers of Heaven are shaken ; what shall be our confidence, our hope, in that tremendous day? Whither shall we betake ourselves, amid the overthrow of universal Nature, but to the sure mercies of Him who u in the beginning created the Heaven and the Earth ?" To those strong Hands, we intend, (Goo helping us !) with unswerving confidence to commend our fainting spirits 1 . . . . Him, then, in life let us learn to reve- rence, on whom in death we propose so implicitly to lean ! And we only know Him in, and through, and by His WORD. Nor can we in any surer way shew Him reverence or dishonour, than by the manner in which we receive His message, yea, by the spirit in which we unfold this, the first page of it, where stands recorded that primaeval act of Almighty power which is the ground of all our confidence, the very warrant for our own security. . . . " Blessed" of a truth, in that day, will he be, "that hath the GOD of Jacob for his help, and whose hope is in the LORD his GOD : who made the Heaven and the Earth, the Sea and all that therein is: who keepeth His promise for ever k !" * St. Luke xxiii. 46, (quoting Ps. xxxi. 5:) words which are alluded to in 1 St. Pet. iv. 19. k Ps. cxlvi. 5, words quoted by the early Church of Jerusalem, Acts iv. 24. SERMON HI,' INSPIRATION OF SCRIPTURE. GOSPEL DIEEICULTIES.- THE WORD OE GOD INFALLIBLE. OTHER SCIENCES SUBORDINATE TO THEOLOGICAL SCIENCE. 2 TIM. iii. 16. All Scripture is given by inspiration of GOD. T)UT that is not exactly what St. Paul says. The ^ Greek for that, would be Trao-a 'H ypa^rj not Tracra ypa(f>r) QeoTrisevaro?. St. Paul does not say that the whole of Scripture, collectively, is inspired. More than that : what he says is, that every writing, every several look of those lepa ypa^ara^ or Holy Scriptures, in which Timothy had been instructed from his childhood, is inspired by GoD b . It comes to very nearly the same thing; but it is not quite the same thing. St. Paul is careful to remind us that every Book in the Bible is an inspired Book c . And a Preached in Christ-Church Cathedral, 25th Nov. 1860. b Uaa-ai at 0eo7ri/eucrroi ypcxpai, as it is worded in the Epistle sent by the Council of Antioch in the case of Paul of Samosata, A.D. 269. (Routh Reliqq. iii. 292.) See Middleton on the Greek Article, (Rose's ed.) in loc. And so, in effect, "Wordsworth and Ellicott. It is right to add that it has been contended that Tracra ypcxpt) = " the whole of Scripture." See Lee on Inspiration, p. 263, (note.) So Athanasius seems to have taken it: Uda-a f) *a0' f^as ypaVii certainty 1 : (as when our LORD asks, "Doth he thank that servant because he did the things com- manded him ? ov o/cc3," I fancy not indeed m !) On St. Paul's lips, as every scholar knows, the phrase is not one of doubt, but one of indignant, or at least emphatic asseveration 11 . A man had need be very sure he understands the record, (let me just remark in passing,) before he presumes to criticize it. " The Spirit of CHRIST" is said by St. Peter to have h 1 Cor. vii. 10. 1 1 Cor. vil. 6. (ToCro Se Xe-yo) Kara a~vyyv6}p.r]V 1 ov Kar* eVtrayTyi/.) k St. Matth. xix. 6 (= St. Mark x. 9 :) and the following places, St. Matth. v. 32 : xix. 9 (=St.Markx. 11, 12.): St.Lnkexvi. 18. 1 Montfaucon, prcsf. ad Euseb. Comm. in Psalm. , cap. x. See also ^Esch. Prom. V. v. 289. m St. Luke xvii. 9. So St. Mark x. 42. St. Luke viii. 18. St. John v. 39. n Comp. 1 Cor. iv. 9 : Gal. ii. 9 : Heb. iv. 1. 56 HOLY SCRIPTURE ATTRIBUTED IN [SERM. been "in the prophets :" and in another place he de- clares that they "spake as they were moved by the HOLY GHOST*." The HOLY GHOST accordingly is said to have spoken the xlist Psalm "by the mouth of David q ." The xcvth Psalm is declared absolutely to be the utterance of the HOLY GHOST r . Once, the cxth Psalm is ascribed simply to GOD s ; and once, to David speaking under the influence of the HOLT GHOST*. The iind Psalm is described as the language of GOD the FATHER "by the mouth of His Servant David u ." " Well spake the HOLY GHOST by Esaias the Prophet unto our Fathers x ," was the exclamation of the Apostle Paul, quoting the 9th and 10th verses of his vith chapter. When Jeremiah speaks, the HOLY GHOST is declared, (not Jeremiah, but the HOLY GHOST) to wit- ness unto us y . The assertion is express that it was "Goo" who, "by the mouth of all His Prophets" foretold the Death of CHRIST z : " the LORD GOD of Israel" who, " by the mouth of His holy Prophets of old" gave pro- mise of CHRIST'S coming a . " The HOLY GHOST signified" To ev avTots Tlvevpa Xpicrrov. 1 St. Pet. i. 11. p viro Tlvev/Jiaros 'Ayiov (pepofjifvoi \d\r)o~av oi ayioi Qeov av6puiroi.~ 2 St. Pet. i. 21. (lit. "impelled, "like a ship before the wind.) 1 Trpoewre TO Hvevpa TO "Ayiov 8ta oro/xaros Aa/3i8. Acts i. 16. r Kadtos Ae-yei TO Tlvevpa TO *A.yiov. Heb. iii. 7. s VTTO TOV &OV. Heb. V. 10. * AajSiS eiTTfv fv T< Ili/ev/icm rv 7Tpov avTOv rradelv TOV Xpio~Tov. Acts iii. 18. a Kvpios 6 Qfbs TOV 'lo-paf]\ .... \d\rjo-c dia (rro/xaros TO>V dyiuv TO>V air alo>vos Trpov auroC. St. Luke i. 68, 70. III.] SCRIPTURE, TO THE HOLY GHOST. 57 what the Mosaic Law enjoined b . "It is not ye that speak, but the HOLY GHOST*" was our SAVIOUR'S word of promise and of consolation to the Twelve : and, on an earlier occasion, " It is not ye that speak ; but the SPIRIT of your Father, which speaJceth in you d ." And this promise became so famous, that St. Paul says the Corinthians challenged him to prove that CHRIST was speaking in him 6 . . . . But why multiply places? The use which our SAVIOUR makes in the New Testament of the words of the Old, from the writings of Moses to the writings of Malachi, would be simply nugatory unless those words were much more than human. And the record of the Apostle is express and emphatic : " All Scripture every Book of the Bible, is given ~by Inspiration of GOD." In the face of such testimony, by the way, we deem it not a little extraordinary to be assured (by an indi- vidual who has acquired considerable notoriety within the last few months) that "for any of the higher or supernatural views of Inspiration there is no founda- tion in the Gospels or Epistles V Strange to say, there is a marvellous indisposition in Man to admit the notion of such a heaven-sent message. Not to dispute with those who deny Inspi- ration altogether, (for that would be endless,) there are many, and, we fear, a daily increasing number of persons, who, admitting Inspiration in terms, yet so mutilate the notion of it, that their admission be- b TOVTO $T]\OVVTOS TOV HvcvpaTOs TOV 'Ayi'ou. Heb. ix. 8. c oi> yap fare {/pels ot \a\ovvrcs, dXXa TO Hvevp-a TO "Ayiov. St. Mark xiii. 11. d ov yap vfMfls fare 01 XaXouwrey, aXXa TO Ili/eC/ua TOV IlaTpos vp.S>v TO XaXoCi/ eV vp.1v. St. Matth. x. 20. e eVei $OKip.r)V ^riirc TOV ev e/iol XaXovvTOS XpioroO. 2 Cor. Xlii. 3. f Kev. B. Jowett, in E. and R. t p. 345. Yet see Acts iii. 18, 21. 58 DIFFERENT FORMS OF [SERM. comes a practical lie. " St. Paul was inspired, no doubt. So was Shakspeare." He who says this, intending no quibble, declares that in his belief St. Paul was not inspired at alL But this is a monstrous case, with which I will not waste your time. Far more numerous are they, who, admitting that the Authors of the Bible were inspired in quite a different sense from Homer and Dante, are yet for modifying and qualifying this admission after so many strange and arbitrary fashions, that the resi- duum of their belief is really worth very little. One man has a mental reservation of exclusion in favour of the two Books of Chronicles, or the Book of Esther, or of Daniel. Another, is content to eliminate from the Bible those passages which seem to him to run counter to the decrees of physical Science ; the His- tory of the Six Days of Creation, of the Flood, of the destruction of Sodom, and of Joshua's address to Sun and Moon. Another regards it as self-evident that nothing is trustworthy which savours supremely of the marvellous; as the Temptation of our first Parents, the Manna in the "Wilderness, Balaam re- proved by the dumb ass, and the history of Jonah. There are others who cannot tolerate the Miracles of the Old and the New Testament. The more timid, explain away as much of them as they dare. What remains, troubles them. The more logical sweep them away altogether. A miracle (they say) cannot be true because it implies a violation of the fixed and im- mutable laws of Nature. And then, (so strangely constituted are some men's minds,) there are not a few persons who, without exactly denying the inspiration of the Bible in any of its more marvellous portions, (for that would be an III.] MODERN UNFAITHFULNESS. 59 inconvenient proceeding,) are yet content to regard much of it as a kind of inspired myth. This is a class of ally (?) with whom one really knows not how to deal. The man does not reason. He assumes his right to disbelieve, and yet will not allow that he is an unbeliever. The world is singularly indulgent toward persons of this unphilosophical, illogical, pre- sumptuous class. Now, I shall have something to say to all these different kinds of objectors, on some subsequent occa- sion. But I shall be rendering the younger men a far more important service if to-day I address my remarks to a different class of objectors altogether : that far larger body, I mean, who without at all de- siring to impugn the Inspiration of GOD'S Oracles, yet make no secret of their belief that the Bible is full of inaccuracies and misstatements. These men ascribe a truly liberal amount of human infirmity to the Authors of the several Books of the Bible ; slips of memory, misconceptions, imperfect intelligence, partial illumination, and so forth; and, under one or other of those heads, include whatever they are themselves disposed to reject. The writers who come in for the largest share of this indulgence, are the Evangelists ; because the Historians of our LORD'S life, having hap- pily left us four versions of the same story, and often three versions of the same transaction, the evidence whereby they may be convicted of error is in the hands of all. Truly, mankind has not been slow to avail itself of the opportunity. You will seldom hear a Gospel difficulty discussed, without a quiet assump- tion on the part of the Eeverend gentleman that he knows all about the matter in question, but that the Evangelist did not. His usual method is, calmly to 60 IMPERTINENCE OF MODERN WRITERS [SERM. inform us that it is useless to look for strict con- sistency in matters of minute detail; that general agreement between the four Evangelists there does exist, and that ought to be enough. The inevitable in- ference from his manner of handling the Gospels, is, that if his actual thoughts could find candid expression, we should hear him address their blessed authors some- what as follows: "You are four highly respectable characters, no doubt; and you mean well. But it cannot be expected that persons of your condition in life should have described so many intricate trans- actions so minutely without making blunders. I do not say it unkindly. I often make blunders myself, /, who have a " clearness of understanding," " a power of discrimination between different kinds of Truth g " unknown to the Apostolic Age !" . . . Of course the preacher does not say all this. He has too keen a sense of " the dignity of the pulpit." And so he puts it somewhat thus : " While we are disposed to recognize substantial agreement, and general con- formity in respect of details, among the synoptical witnesses, in their leading external outlines, we are yet constrained to withhold our unqualified accept- ance of any theory of Inspiration which should claim for these compilers exemption from the oscitancy, and generally from the infirmities of humanity." . . . This sounds fine, you know ; and is thought an ingenious way of wrapping up the charge which the Eeverend preacher brings against the Evangelists ; of having, in plain terms, made blunders. It will be convenient that we should narrow the ground to this single issue: for the time is short. And in the remarks I am about to offer, I shall not e Dr. Temple, in Essays and Reviews, p. 25. III.] IN SPEAKING OF THE EVANGELISTS. 61 imitate the example of those preachers who dress out an easy thought in a superfluity of inflated language, only in order that its deformity may escape detection. Be not surprised if I speak to you this morning in uncommonly plain English ; for I am determined that the simplest person present shall understand at least what / mean. The dignity of the Blessed Evangelists, who walked with JESUS, and whom JESUS loved, the dignity of that Gospel which I believe to be pene- trated through and through with the Holy Spirit of GOD, for that, I confess to a most unbounded jealousy. As for the " dignity of the pulpit," I hate the very phrase ! It has been made too often the shield of impiety and the cloak of dulness. To begin, then, Is it, I would ask you, a reason- able anticipation that the narrative of one inspired by GOD would prove full of inconsistencies, misstate- ments, slips of memory : or indeed, that it should contain any misstatements, any inaccuracies at all? "What then is the difference between an inspired and an uninspired writing, the "Word of GOD and the Word of Man? The answer which I shall receive, is obvious. As a matter of fact (it is replied) there are these in- accuracies : that is, the same transaction is described by two or more writers, and their accounts prove in- consistent. Thus, St. Matthew begins his account of the healing of the blind at Jericho, with the words, "And as they were going out of Jericho:" but St. Luke, " While He was drawing nigh to Jericho." There are these slips of memory ; as when St. Matthew ascribes to " Jeremy the prophet" words which are found in the prophet Zechariah. There are these misstatements, as where the Census of the Nativity 62 THERE IS BUT ONE GOSPEL. [SERM. is said to have taken place under the presidentship of Cyrenius. And these are but samples of a mighty class of difficulties, (it is urged :) the two Genealo- gies; the Call of the four Disciples; the healing of the Centurion's servant ; the title on the Cross ; the history of the Eesurrection : and again, "the six- teenth of Tiberius;" "the days of Abiathar;" with many others. Let me then briefly discuss the three examples first cited, which really came spontaner ously. Each is the type of a class ; and the answer to one is, in reality, applicable to all the rest. I humbly ask for your patience and attention ; promising that I will abuse neither, though I must tax both. The great fundamental truth to be first laid down, is this, that the Gospels are not four but one. The Ancients knew this very well. EuayyeA^crrai peis recrcrapes, EuayyeAtoy e ev says Origen h : " the Gospel-writers are four, but the Gospel is one." And the ancients recorded this mighty verity four times over on the first page of the Gospel, lest it should ever be forgotten ; and there it stands to this day : the Gospel, the one Gospel Kara, according to St. Matthew, according to St. Mark, according to St. Luke, according to St. John. Like that river which went out of Eden to water the Garden, it was by the HOLY GHOST " parted, and became into four heads." The Gospels therefore, (to call them by their common name,) are not to be regarded as four witnesses, or rather as four culprits, brought up on a charge of fraud. Eather are they Angelic voices singing in sweetest harmony, but after a method of Heavenly counterpoint which must be studied before it can be understood of Men. h Contra Marcion, sect. I. p. 9. III.] REMARKS ON TESTIMONY. 63 And next, There is one great principle, and one only, which needs to be borne in mind for the effec- tual reconciliation of every discrepancy which the four narratives present : namely, that you should approach them in exactly the same spirit in which you ap- proach the statement of any man of honour of your acquaintance. Whether the Apostles of the LAMB, men whom we believe to have been inspired by the Holy Spirit of the Everlasting GOD, are not entitled to far higher respect, far higher consideration, at our hands, I leave you to decide. As one whose joy and crown it has been to weigh every word in the Gospel in hair-scales, I am prepared to risk the issue. Be only as fair to the four Evangelists as you are to one another; and I am quite confident about the result. I appeal to the experience of every thoughtful man among you who has at all given his mind to the sub- ject of evidence, whether it be not the fact, (1st) That when two or more persons are giving true ver- sions of the same incident, their accounts will some- times differ so considerably, that it will seem at first sight as if they could not possibly be reconciled : and yet (2ndly), That a single word of explanation, the discovery of one minute circumstance, perfectly na- tural when we hear it stated, yet most unlikely and unlooked-for, will often suffice to remove the diffi- culty which before seemed unsurmountable ; and fur- ther, that when this has been done, the entire con- sistency of the several accounts becomes apparent ; while the harmony which is established is often of the most beautiful nature. (3rdly) That when (for what- ever reason) two or more versions of the same inci- dent are not correct, no ingenuity can ever possibly 64 UNFAIR TREATMENT OF THE EVANGELISTS. [SERM. reconcile them, as they stand. They lean apart in hopeless divergence. In other words, they contradict one another. Now, these principles are fully admitted in daily life. If your friend comes to you with ever so im- probable a tale, the last thing which enters into your mind is to disbelieve him. Is he in earnest ? Yes, on his honour. Is he sure he is not mistaken ? That very doubt of yours requires an apology : but your friend says, " I am as sure as I am of my existence." " Give it me under your hand and seal then." Your friend begins to suspect your sanity ; but the matter being of some importance, he complies. " It must be so then," you exclaim, " though I cannot understand it." .... I only wish that men would be as fair to the Evangelists as they are to their friends ! You are requested to observe, for really you must admit, that any possible solution of a difficulty, how- ever improbable it may seem, any possible explanation of the story of a competent witness, is enough logi- cally and morally to exempt that man from the im- putation of an incorrect statement. The illustration which first presents itself may require an apology; but the dignity of the pulpit shall not outweigh the dignity of His Gospel after whose blessed Name this House is called 1 : and I can think of nothing as ap- posite as what follows. It is a conceivable case, that, hereafter, three per- sons of known truthfulness should meet, in a Court of Justice at the Antipodes ; where the entire difficulty should turn on a question of time. The case is con- ceivable, that the first should be heard to declare that at Oxford, on such a day, of such a year, he had seen 1 See the first foot-note, p. 53. III.] SUPPOSED CASE OF TESTIMONY. 65 such an one standing before Carfax Church while the clock was striking one : that the second should declare that he also, on the same day of the same year, had seen the same person passing by St. Mary's, when the clock of that Church was also striking one : that the third should stand up and assert, " I also saw the same person on that same day, but it was on the steps of the Cathedral I met him ; and I also remember hearing the clock at that moment strike one." Now I can conceive that the result of such evidence would be adverted upon in some such way as the following : a While we are disposed to recognize the sub- stantial agreement, and general conformity in respect of details, among the synoptical witnesses, in their leading external outlines, we are yet constrained," and the rest of the impertinence we had before. "Whereas you and I know perfectly that the three clocks in question were, till lately, kept five minutes apart: a sufficient interval, (I beg you to observe in passing,) for the individual in question to have been seen by you walking in an easterly direction ; and by me due west ; and by a third person, due east again. Highly improbable circumstances, I freely grant, every one of them ; and yet, by the hypothesis, all perfectly true ! Meantime, it is conceivable that Judge and jury would have the indecency openly to tax the three men I spoke of with inexactitude in their statements: and it is conceivable that those three honest men (the only true men, it might be, in the Colony, after all,) would carry to their grave the imputation of untruth. Here and there, a gene- rous heart would be found to say to them, /share not in the vulgar cry against you ! / nothing doubt that it all fell out precisely as you assert. Either, 66 . THE HOURS OF ST. JOHN. [sERM. the clocks in Oxford went wrong that day ; or there had been some trick played with the clocks ; any how, / believe you, for I have evidence that you are marvellously exact in all your little statements ; and you cannot have been mistaken in a plain matter like this. I have heard too that you are not the ordinary men you seem The men make no answer. They care nothing for your opinion, and my opinion. The rashness of mankind may astonish the Angels perhaps ; but the Apostles and Evangelists of CHRIST are already safe within the veil ! The difficulty supposed is not an imaginary one. St. John says that when Pilate sat in judgment on the LORD of Glory, "it was about the sixth hour j ." But since St. Mark says that at the third hour they crucified Him k , the two statements seem inconsis- tent. The ancients, (giants at interpretation, babes in criticism,) altered the text. Peter, Bishop of Alex- andria, A.D. 300, says that he had seen it in the very autograph of St. John 1 . A learned man of our own, however, a hundred years ago, ascertained that, in the Patriarchate of Ephesus, the hours were not com- puted after the Jewish method : but, (strange to say,) exactly after our own English method. And yet, not so strange either ; for the Gospel first came to us from there. You see at a glance that all the four mentions of time of day in St. John n , which used to occasion so much difficulty, become beautifully in- telligible at once. j St. John xix. 14. k St. Mark xv. 25. 1 The passage may be seen in -John Bois' Vet. Interpretis cum Heza aliisque recentioribus collatio, (1655,) p. 333. m See a Dissertation by Dr. Townson at the end of his admirable book on the Gospels. n Yiz. St. John i. 39 : iv. 6, 52 : xix. 14. III.] THE BLIND MEN AT JERICHO. 67 To come then to the three samples of difficulty propounded a moment ago. And first, for the blind men of Jericho. I. The difficulty lies all on the surface. Listen to a plain tale. Our SAVIOUR, attended by His Disciples and fol- lowed by a vast concourse of persons, had reached the outskirts of Jericho. A certain blind man was sitting by the roadside begging. He heard the noise of a passing crowd, and inquired what it meant ? He was told that Jesus of Nazareth was passing by. He rose at once, hastened down the main street through which, in due time, CHRIST perforce must come ; joined another blind man, (named Bartimseus, a well-known character, who, like himself, was ac- customed to sit and beg by the road side ;) and the two companions in suffering, having stationed them- selves at the exit of Jericho, waited till the Great Physician should appear. The crowd begins to approach ; and the two blind men implore the Son of David to have pity on them. So importunate is their suit, that the foremost of the passers-by rebuke them. The men grow more urgent. Our SAVIOUR pauses, and orders that they shall be called. At this gracious summons, both draw near; the more remarkable applicant flinging his outer gar- ment from him as he rises from his seat; but both, when they appear in our SAVIOUR'S presence, making the same request. The Holy One, touched with com- passion, laid His Hands upon their eyes, and grants their prayer: whereupon they both follow Him in the way. Well, (you will ask,) what then ? " What then ?" I answer. Then there is no difficulty in the three F2 68 CHARACTERISTICS OF AN [SERM. accounts about which you spoke so unbecomingly a moment ago. Assume this plain, and not at all im- probable version of the incident, to be true, and you will find that no difficulty remains whatever. Every recorded circumstance is accounted for, and fits in exactly with it. I wish there were time to enlarge on some of the details, and to make some remarks on the manner of the Evangelists in relating events : but there is no time. Besides, without a huge copy of the Gospel open before us all, I could not hope to make my meaning understood. For of course you are to believe that he who would understand the Gospel must first study it. You must ascertain, by some crucial test, confirmed by a large and careful induction, what the character of a narra- tive purporting to be inspired, is. You have no right first to assume exactly what Inspiration shall result in, and then to deny that there is Inspiration be- cause you fail to discover your assumed result . That were foolish. I shall perhaps be thought to lay myself open to the rejoinder, " Neither have you any right to assume that Inspiration will result in Infallibility." But the retort is without real point. I do but assert that, just as every man of honour claims to be believed until he has been convicted of a falsehood, inspired Prophets, Evangelists, and Apostles have a right to our entire confidence in the scrupulous accuracy of every word they deliver, until it can be shewn that they have once made a mistake. If you will take the trouble to compare any of the And yet, we hear it asserted that we cannot " suppose the Spirit of absolute Truth" "to suggest accounts only to be reconciled in the way of hypothesis and conjecture." J7. and R., p. 179. III.] INSPIRED NARRATIVE. 69 cases, in Genesis for example, where a conversa- tion is first set down, and then reported by one of the speakers, you will find that it is deemed allowable to omit or to add clauses, even when the discourse is related in the first person p . Something before in- serted, is withheld : or something before withheld, is inserted. No discourse was probably ever set down, word for word, as it was delivered. In sacred, as in profane writings, the exact substance, or rather, the real purport, of what was spoken, very reasonably stands for what was actually spoken. The differ- ence is this ; that a narrative, by man abridged, may convey a wrong impression : whereas an inspired abridgement of any history soever cannot mislead. Other characteristics of an inspired narrative, the lesser Laws of the Divine Harmony, as they may be called, will be discovered by the attentive reader. For example, that intervening circumstances are often passed over, without any notice taken of them what- ever: while yet it is singular how often the Evan- gelist shews himself conscious of what he omits by some very minute allusion to it q . This must suffice however. It would require a whole sermon, a whole volume rather, to enumerate all the features of the Evangelical method. P E.g. Gen. xxiv. 2 8, compared with ver. 37 41 ; and again, ver. 12 14, compared with ver. 42 44. Again, Gen. xlii. 10 13, compared with ver. 31, 32 : and again, ver. 14 16, compared with ver. 33, 34. Again, Gen. xlii. 36 8, compared with xliv. 27 29, &c., &c., &G. i Instances of this will be very familiar to every attentive student of the Gospels. Thus St. Matth. xxvi. 68 implies acquaintance with a minute circumstance which is stated in St. Luke xxii. 64 : St. llatth. x. 13 implies what is expressed in St. Luke x. 5, &c., &c., &c. 70 " JEREMY THE PROPHET." CYRENIUS. [SERM. II. The next sample of difficulty will not occupy us long. St. Matthew is charged with a bad memory, because he ascribes to " Jeremy the prophet r " words which are said to be found in Zechariah. Strange that men should be heard to differ about a plain mat- ter of fact ! / have never been able to find these words in Zechariah yet ! . . . There are words some- thing like them, but not those very words, by any means, in Zech. xi. 12. "Why then is St. Mat- thew to be taxed with a bad memory? Are there not other prophecies quoted in the New Testament not to be found in the Old ? Yes s . Is not the self- same prophecy sometimes found in two different pro- phets, as in Isaiah and Nahum? Yes*. Are not some prophetic passages common to Jeremiah and Zecha- riah ? Yes u . The Jews even had a saying that the Spirit of the one was in the other. Where then re- mains a pretence for supposing that St. Matthew was troubled with a bad memory ? III. So, it is generally assumed that St. Luke made a mistake when he said that the census of the Nativity was made when Cyrenius was President of Syria, because not Cyrenius but Varus is known to have been President about that time. Now, there are three fair conjectures, each of which is sufficient to meet this difficulty : but instead of developing them, I will simply remind you of a minute circumstance in Jewish story which shews how dangerous it is to press a general fact against a particular statement. r St. Matth. xxvii. 9. 8 E.g. St. Jude ver. 14, 15. * Is. lii. 7, and Nahum i. 15. Is. ii. 2, 3, 4, and Micah iv. 1, 2, 3. Micah iv. 6, and Zeph. iii. 19. Is. xi. 9, and Hab. ii. 14. Micah iii. 12, and Jer. xxvi. 18, & fifv ovv lutra ev rj piav Kfpaiav ov Trioreuo) -Kevfjv clvat Oeiav . OBIGENES, Comment, in S. Matth. torn. xvi. c. 12. p. 734. Tavra fMoi c?pT)Tai . . Trpos (rv(TTav prjfjuuriv 6 Kvpios. ATHANASIUS, ad Marcellinum. *O(ra T) dfia ypavai. GEEGOEIUS KYSSEN. Contr. Eunom. Orat. vi. Cedamus igitur et consentiamus auctoritati SanctaB Scripturse, nescit falli nee fallere. AUGUSTINFS, De Peccator. Merit, lib. i. c. 22. SERMON IV, 1 THE PLENARY INSPIRATION OF EVERY PART OF THE BIBLE, VINDICATED AND EXPLAINED. NATURE OF INSPIRATION. THE TEXT OF SCRIPTURE. ST. JOHN xvii. 17. Thy Word is Truth. T THANKFULLY avail myself of the opportunity -1 which, unexpected and unsolicited, so soon pre- sents itself, to proceed with the subject which was engaging our attention when I last occupied this place. Let me remind you of the nature of the present inquiry, and of the progress which we have already made. Taking Holy Scripture for our subject, and urging, as best we. knew how, its paramount claims on the daily attention of the younger men, who at present are our hope and ornament; to be hereafter, as we confidently believe, our very crown and joy; even while we held in our hands that volume which our Fathers were content to call the volume of Inspiration, we were constrained to recollect that its claim to be inspired has of late years been repeatedly called in question. It has even become the fashion to cavil at almost everything which the Bible contains. We are a Preached in Christ-Church Cathedral, Dec. 9th, 1860. 92 INFIDELITY OF THE AGE. [SERM. grown so exceedingly wise, have made so many strange discoveries, and have become so clear-sighted, that the more advanced among us are kindly bent on dis- abusing the minds of their less gifted brethren of that most venerable delusion of all, (for it is coeval with Christianity,) that the Bible is in any special sense the Word of GOD. I do not say that Theologians talk thus. But pretenders to Natural Science, know- ing nothing whatever of Divinity, and therefore intru- ding into a realm of which they do not understand so much as the language ; together with, (sad to relate !) men bearing a commission in the Church of CHRIST, (and who ought therefore to be building up, where they are seeking to destroy,) are employing the powers which GOD has given them, in this direc- tion. It becomes indispensable, in consequence, that we should say somewhat on behalf of those Oracles which have been so vigorously impugned ; and it should not seem strange if we oppose to such de- structive dogmatism, the most uncompromising seve- rity of counter statement. The objections which have been raised against the Bible, although they have been industriously gleaned from various quarters, will all be most effectually met, I am persuaded, by getting men to acquaint them- selves with the contents of the deposit itself. And yet, inasmuch as it is the nature of doubts, when once injected into the mind, to fester and to spread ; inasmuch also as the bold confidence of plausible as- sertion, especially when recommended by men of repu- tation, and set off with some ability and skill, is apt to impose on youth and inexperience; we seem re- duced to a kind of necessity, to examine ; and, as far as the limits of a sermon will allow, to refute; the IV.] OBJECTIONS BROUGHT AGAINST THE BIBLE. 93 charges which have been so industriously brought forward against the Bible. The favourite objections of the day come partly from without, partly from within. The classification is not exact, but it may serve to assist the memory. One class of objections is, in a manner, destructive, for it results in entire disbelief of the Bible : the other class, suggesting imperfections, results in a low and disparaging estimate of its contents. When ex.- ception is taken against certain portions of Holy Scrip- ture, on the ground of discoveries in Physical Science, of the dictates of the Moral Sense, of the supre- macy of mechanical Laws, and the like, we consider that the supposed difficulties come from without. As much as we care to say on this class of objections has either been already offered, or must be reserved for a subsequent occasion b . When doubts are insinuated, arising out of the subject-matter of the Bible, we consider the difficulties to proceed from within. The apparent contradictions of the Evangelists, are of this nature. Supposed errors or misstatements, come under the same head. Yery imperfectly, yet sufficiently for our immediate purpose, we have touched upon both subjects. Those portions of the Old Testament which savour in the highest degree of the marvellous, must be reserved for separate consideration c . To-day I pro- pose to speak of another kind of objection ; but which arises, like the others, out of the subject-matter of the Bible. Moreover, it is the kind of difficulty which most readily presents itself to any who listened with unwilling ears to my last discourse. Some here pre- sent may remember my repeated and unequivocal as- sertion that Holy Scripture is inspired from the Alpha b See Sermon VII. c Ibid. 94 ABSOLUTE INFALLIBILITY OF SCRIPTURE. [SERM. to the Omega of it ; not some parts more, some parts less, but all equally, and all to overflowing ; that we hold it to be, not generally inspired, but particularly ; that we see not how with logical consistency we can avoid believing the words as well as the sentences of it ; the syllables as well as the words ; the letters as well as the syllables ; every " jot " and every " tittle " of it, (to use our LORD'S expression,) to be divinely inspired: and further, that until the contrary has been proved, we shall maintain that no misapprehen- sion or misstatement, no error or blot of any kind, can possibly exist within its pages : that we hold the Bible to be as much the Word of GOD, as if GOD spoke to us therein with human lips ; and that, as the very utterance of the HOLY GHOST, we cannot but think that it must be absolute, faultless, unerring, supreme. I. To this, it has been objected as follows : You cannot possibly mean what you say. You will not pretend to assert that the list of the Dukes of Edom d , is as much inspired, inspired in the same sense, as the Gospel of St. John. To which I make answer, that I believe one to be just as much inspired as the other : and before I leave off, I will endeavour to bring my hearers to the same opinion. In the mean- time, it is only fair to the objector, to hear him out : to follow his guidance ; and to see whither he would lead us. It will be quite competent for us then to retrace our steps; to point out "a more excellent way ;" and to entreat him, with all a brother's ear- nestness, to reconsider the matter, and to follow us. The objection may, I believe, be fairly stated as follows. It is unreasonable to consider any part of d Gen. xxxvi. IV.] POPULAR NOTION OF INSPIRATION. 95 Holy Scripture inspired which the author was com- petent to write without the aid of Inspiration. Just as you would not multiply miracles needlessly, and ascribe to special Divine interference results which might be otherwise accounted for, so neither ought you to call in the aid of Inspiration where it may clearly be dispensed with. A genealogy, a cata- logue of names, whether of places or persons, what- ever may reasonably be suspected to have been an extract from public Archives ; nothing of this sort need you, nor indeed, properly speaking, can you, call "inspired." More than that. All mere narratives of ordinary transactions, or indeed of transactions extraordinary ; whatever, in short, a writer, having first beheld it with his eyes, appears to have simply described with his pen, it is unreasonable to regard as the work of Inspiration. For it is plain to common sense, (so at least I have heard it said,) that there is much, both in the Old and in the New Testament, the delivery of which required no other than the ordinary gifts of men : actual observation, good memory, high intellect, clearness of statement, honesty of purpose. Look at the preface to St. Luke's Gospel. It seems only to convey that the author of it believed himself to be bringing out a superior edition of a narrative which had already been attempted by many. I would apply, (it is said,) to the whole of the Old Testament the same observations which I apply to the New. There are parts which evidently required nothing but opportunity of experience, or research, and the ordi- nary qualities of a trustworthy historian. This then is the way the case is put. There is no intentional irreverence on the part of the objector : no conscious hostility to GOD'S Truth. Very much the reverse. 96 A POPULAR VIEW OF INSPIRATION [sERM. But having once assumed that the catalogue of the Dukes of Edom is not to be regarded as an inspired document, he has logical consistency enough to per- ceive that he cannot exactly stop there. And so, he carries his speculations a little further. He tries to take (what he calls) a " common sense " view of the question. He says that he thinks it a dangerous proceeding on the part of the preacher to insist on the infallibility of Apostles and Evangelists. Mean- while, I suspect that he is not by any means without a suspicion that he is on a platform beset with far greater dangers, himself. He has walked a little this way, and that way; and his "common sense" has shewn him that there is an ugly precipice on every side. Nay ; he perceives that the ground trembles, and cracks, and shakes, and even yawns beneath his feet. For I request you to observe, that there is abso- lutely no middle state between Inspiration and non- inspiration. If a writing be inspired, it is Divine : if it be not inspired, it is human. It is absurd to shirk the alternative. Some parts of the Bible, it is allowed, are inspired ; other parts, it is contended, are not. Let it be conceded then, for the moment, that the catalogue of the Dukes of Edom is not an inspired writing; and let it be ejected from the Bible accordingly. We must by strict parity of reasoning, eject the xth chapter of Genesis, which enumerates the descendants of Japheth, of Ham, and of Shem, with the countries which they severally occupied, that truly venerable record and outline of the primaeval settlement of the nations! The ten Patriarchs before, and the ten after Noah : the many enumerations contained in the Book of Numbers : much of the two Books of Chroni- IV.] OF SCRIPTURE, APPLIED AND TESTED. 97 cles : together with the Genealogies of our SAVIOUR as given by St. Matthew and St. Luke. It is clear that the history of the Flood, very much of it at least, is of the same nature : a kind of calendar as it were, and record of dates. But we may go on faster, and use the knife far more freely. Every thing in the Pentateuch of which Moses had been an eye or ear- witness, and which he set down from his own personal knowledge, may be eliminated from the Eible, as not inspired. Accord- ing to the principle already enunciated by yourself, I call upon you to excise from the Book of GOD'S Law, Exodus, and Leviticus, and Numbers, and Deuter- onomy : those passages only excepted which are pro- phetical, as the. xxxiiird of Deuteronomy. Joshua must go of course : for if the son of Nun did not write the Book which goes under his name, (as the wise men in Germany say, or used to say, he did not 6 ,) of course the narrative is not authentic; and if he did, you say that it ought not to be regarded as inspired. Judges and Ruth cannot hope to stand; for they are mere stories, narratives of events which any contemporary author who enjoyed " actual ob- servation, good memory, high intellect, clearness of statement, and honesty of purpose," was abundantly qualified (according to your view of the matter) to commit to writing. The Books of Samuel and of Kings cannot be claimed as the work of Inspiration, of course. Chronicles we have got rid of already. No imaginable plea can be invented for the Books of Ezra, of Nehemiah, and of Esther ; those writings e See the Hulsean Lectures for 1833, (The Law of Moses viewed in connexion with the History and character of the Jews, with a defence of the Book of Joshua, &c.) by Henry John Rose, B.D. H 98 A POPULAR VIEW OF INSPIRATION [SERM. having evidently required nothing (to use your own phrase) but u opportunity of experience or research, and the ordinary qualities of a trustworthy historian." The prophetical books you spare ; natural piety sug- gesting that since " Prophecy came not in old time by the will of man, but holy men of GOD spake as they were moved by the HOLY GHOST* ;" the writings of Isaiah and the rest, must be retained as inspired. We expunge those portions only which are simply historical and moral; since to these, by the hypo- thesis, the spirit of Inspiration cannot be thought to have extended. We come now to the New Testament ; and two of the Gospels are found to be mutilated already, by the elimination of one chapter of St. Matthew and one of St. Luke. But on the principle that personal obser- vation, a good memory, honesty of purpose, and so forth, are the only requirements necessary, we may proceed to carry forward the work of excision with spirit, so that we be but careful to use discernment. For example, we may begin with the Call of St. Mat- thew, and the Feast which he made to our LORD in his own house. Who so competent to relate this, as the Evangelist himself? Whenever, in short, the Twelve were present, St. Matthew, (as one of the Twelve,) may be assumed to have written from per- sonal observation ; and that portion of his narrative is to be rejected accordingly as uninspired. It is painful to anticipate what will be the fate of St. John's Gospel, on this principle, together with most of the Divine Discourses therein recorded. Not, to be sure, that we shall lose the conversation with Mcodemus, nor that with the woman of Samaria; f 2 St. Peter i. 21. IV.] APPLIED. ITS ABSURD RESULT. 99 because St. John was not present when either of those conversations took place : but all, from the xivth to the xviith chapter inclusive ; as well as the discourse in the vith chapter, must of course be dismissed. The matter of these discourses, it will be urged, (with more of logical consistency, alas ! than of essen- tial truth,) might have been faithfully handed down by St. John without any extraordinary gift. He was bound to our LORD by more than ordinary affection. He was ever nearest to Him. Is it not conceivable, (we are asked,) that these two causes, aided by a re- tentive memory, would at least enable him to give us the record which he has given ? Quite superfluous must it be to state that the Acts of the Apostles, under the expurgatory process which now engages our attention, will cease to be regarded as an inspired Book; and therefore must be at once disconnected from the confessedly inspired portions of Holy Scripture. St. Paul's Epistles, you say, on the contrary, are probably inspired, and therefore are probably to be spared And I really think we need go no further. If your own handling of Holy Scripture, your own method, by yourself applied, be not a reductio ad absurdum, I know of nothing in the world which is. ... Look only at that hand- ful of mutilated pages in the hands of one who is supposed to be the impersonation of " common sense ;" turn the tattered and mangled leaves over and over, which you are pleased to call the Yolume of Inspira- tion ; and get all the comfort and help out of it you can. But be not surprised to hear that you are ex- posing yourself to the ridicule of the sane part of Mankind, even while haply you are acting a part which makes the Angels weep How much of H 2 100 A DIFFERENT VIEW PROPOSED [SERM. the Bible will remain, when Science, (Physical, Moral, Historical,) has further done her work, I forbear now to inquire : but I shrewdly suspect that she will leave you very little beyond the back and the covers. Let us not be told, (as we doubtless shall,) that the human parts of Scripture need not be ejected from the Canon because they are human: that they may be allowed to stand with the rest, although uninspired ; and the like. About this, we at least are competent judges. We are now bent on discovering how much of Holy Scripture is the Word of GOD ; and we refuse, for the moment, to regard as such, and to retain, a single passage which, being (as you say) uninspired, is simply the word of Man. II. Let me now be permitted to lay before you a somewhat different view of the office of Inspiration. Since the illumination of Science, falsely so called, and the process of Common Sense, would seem to have resulted in the extinction of the deposit, I ask your patience while I try to shew, that common sense, informed by a somewhat loftier Theological Instinct, may give such an account of the matter as will en- able us to preserve every word of the deposit entire. You call my attention to the catalogue of the Dukes of Edom, and tell me that it required no supernatural aid to enable Moses to write it. How, may I ask, do you ascertain that fact ? No specimens of the documentary evidence of the land of Seir in the days of Moses, are known now to exist on the earth's surface. You therefore *know absolutely no- thing whatever about the matter of which you speak so confidently. But, that we may grapple with the question fairly, let us come down from an age concerning which nei- IV.] OF THE NATURE AND OFFICE OF INSPIRATION. 101 ther of us knows anything beyond what the Bible teaches, to a period with which all are familiar, and to documents of which we know at least a little. It will suit your purpose far better that you should in- stance the two Genealogies of our LORD, of which you also say that it is impossible to maintain that they exhibit the work of Inspiration in the same sense as when some lofty statement of Christian doc- trine comes before us. Indeed, you deny that they are inspired at all. I, on my side, am willing to admit that it is quite possible, even probable, that the first and the third Evangelist had access to ex- tant documents of which they respectively availed themselves, when they recorded our LORD'S descent. But, do you not perceive that the great underlying fallacy in all you have been saying, is your own wholly gratuitous assumption that you are a com- petent judge of what did, what did not, require supernatural aid to deliver ? that whatever seems as if it might have been written without Inspiration, was therefore written without it ? I see so many practical inconveniences, or rather I see such glaring absurdity, resulting from the supposition that Inspi- ration goes and comes before an authentic document, that I am constrained to think that you are altogether mistaken in the office which you assign to Inspiration, in the kind of notion which you seem to entertain concerning its nature. An Evangelist, if you please, is inspired. It be- comes necessary to introduce a genealogy. Following the Divine guidance, (the nature of which, neither you nor I know anything at all about,) he applies in a certain quarter, and obtains access to a certain document. Or he repairs to a well-known repository 102 INSPIRATION STILL THE SAME, ALTHOUGH [SERM of public archives, and out of the whole collection he is guided to make choice of one particular writing. He proceeds to transcribe it, omitting names (drop- ping three generations for instance,) -or inserting names (the second Cainan for example,) or, if you please, neither omitting nor inserting anything. The document, (suppose,) requires no correction whatever. Well but, this man was inspired a moment ago, in what he was writing ; and no reason has been shewn why he should not be inspired still. He has adopted a document, by incorporating it into his narrative. By transcribing it, he has made it his own. I am at a loss to see that its claim to be an inspired writing, from that moment forward, is in any re- spect inferior to the rest of the narrative in which it stands. You are requested to remember that when we call the Bible an inspired book, we mean nothing more than that the words of it are the very utterance of the HOLY SPIRIT ; that the Book is as much the Word of GOD as if high Heaven were open, and we heard GOD speaking to us with human voice. All I am contend- ing for notVj is, that this is at least as true of one part of the Gospel as of another : that if it be true of any- thing in the Gospel, it is at least as true of the Genealogy of CHRIST. The subject-matter indeed is different ; but it is a mere confusion of thought to infer therefrom a different degree of Inspiration. Let me try and make this plainer by a few familiar illus- trations. 1. When the Sovereign reads a speech from the Throne, does she speak the words of it in any different sense from the worcfs of a speech which she has her- self composed ? Nay, are words of investiture, mere IV.] THE SUBJECT-MATTER MAY BE DIFFERENT. 103 words of form and state, in any less degree spoken, than words of confidence, and private friendship ? 2. Again. The substance of paper and the substance of gold, are widely different. And yet, when paper has been subjected to a certain process, and stamped with a certain impress, there is practically no difference whatever between the value of what was, a moment ago, absolutely worthless, and an ingot of the purest gold. 3. Consider how the case stands with a merely human author. An historian has occasion to introduce into his narrative the descent of a House, or the preamble of an Act, or any other lifeless thing. Does his re- sponsibility cease when he comes to it, and recom- mence immediately afterwards ? Is he not responsible just to the same extent for that, as for every other part of his story ? That he did not compose it himself, is certain : but neither did he compose the sayings which he has recorded of great men. True also is it that the edification to be derived from the pedigree is not so great, cer- tainly, not so obvious, as from certain of the events which he describes. But it is nevertheless henceforth an integral part of his history. He sought for it, and he found it : he weighed it, and he approved of it : he transcribed it, and he interwove it into his narrative. In a word, he adopted; and by adopt- ing, he made it his own. Henceforth, it will be quoted as authentic, because it is found to have satisfied him. The utmost praise which can be accorded to any creature is, that it thoroughly fulfils the office where- unto GOD sends it. A genealogy is not intended to make men wise unto Salvation : the threats and pro- 104 INSPIRATION IRRESPECTIVE OF THE MATTER. [SERM. mises of GOD'S Law are not intended to acquaint men with the descent of David's Son. But because their offices are different, it does not follow that their origin shall not be the same ! Is a shoe-latchet in any sense less an article manufactured by Man, than a watch ? Is the Archangel Michael, burning with glory, and intent on some celestial enterprise, with twelve legions of glittering seraphs in his train ; is such a host as that, one atom more a creation of the ALMIGHTY than the handful of yellow leaves which nutter unheeded on the blast ? None of these figures present a strict parallel ; and yet, successively, they seem to set forth different aspects of the same case, with sufficient vividness and truth. ... So bent am I on conveying to your minds the strong sense of certainty, the clear definite view, which I cherish for myself on this subject, that I take leave to add yet another illustration. 4. If I commission a Servant to deliver a message, is not the message which he delivers mine ? If I give him words to deliver, are not the words which he delivers mine ? So obvious a proposition is no matter of opinion. You cannot deny it. Nor, (to apply the illustration to the matter in hand,) nor do you deny it, probably, so far as Prophecy ', (in the popular sense of the term,) is concerned : but you begin to doubt, it seems, when any other function of the prophetic office is in question. " Any other function," I say ; for, (as all men ought to be aware,) a prophet, (nave in Hebrew, TrpcxfrrjTrj? in Greek,) does not, by any means, of necessity imply one who describes future events. YIpo does not denote futurity of time, but vicariousness of office. The 7rpo-r)Tr)s, in fact, means ' an interpreter 1 rather than 'a prophet,' (for which, in our popular sense, the Greek is rather p.dvrts :) hence the use of the words irpo^Tjnjs, Trpo^reixo, npo(f>T]Tia in the New Testament, e.g. 1 Thess. v. 20. 1 Cor. xi. 4 : xii. 10. Rom. xii. 6, (where see "Wordsworth.) See also 1 Cor. xiv. 1, 3, 4, 5, &c. : in all which places, the -rrpo^Trjs was what we should rather now call a preacher. But then, the expounding of GOD'S Word is the special function of the preacher's office from which he takes this name. The reader is referred to Blomfield's Glossary, Agam. v. 399, and to 106 THE MESSAGE IS GOD's, WHATEVER [sERM. So long then as the message which the Servant delivers is prophetic, you do not object to the notion that it' is GOD'S message ; nay, that the words spoken are GOD'S words. You begin to doubt, it seems, when a collection of genealogies, (as the two Books of Chronicles;) or when a story like that contained in the Book of Esther is concerned. But what is this but very trifling, and mere child- ishness? The message may be mine, it seems, if it be of a lofty character : it may not be mine if it be of a homely, ordinary kind ! I send a message by my Servant, and he delivers it faithfully : but whether it is to be .called my message, or is not to be called my message, is to depend entirely on the subject-matter ! .... Thus, if a King, refusing to appear in person, should issue a reprieve to prisoners under sentence of Death, a proclamation of Peace or of "War, an address to the representatives of the constitution, (Clergy, Lords, and Commons,) in parliament assem- bled, the message would be his. But if, on the contrary, he were only to send a few homely words, the expression of some wish or intention which has nothing that seems particularly royal in it, then, the message would cease to be his ! .... I protest that as I am unable to see the reasonableness of such a method of regarding things human, so am. I at a loss to understand why men should so regard things Divine. 5. This entire matter may be usefully illustrated by having recourse to an analogy which was established on a former occasion : namely, the analogy between Liddell and Scott's Lexicon; (in both of which, some important references are given :) also to Trench's Synonyms of the New Testament, pp. 22 26. IV.] THE NATURE OF THE MESSAGE MAY BE. 107 the Written and the Incarnate Word \ That our LORD JESUS CHRIST is at once very GOD and very Man, we all fully admit ; although the manner of the union of GODHEAD and Manhood in His one Person we confess ourselves quite unable to comprehend. Even so, that there is a human as well as a Divine element in Holy Scripture, who so blind as to overlook ? who so weak as to deny ? And yet, to dissect out that human ele- ment, who (but a fool) so rash as to attempt ? . . . . To apply this to the matter before us. Certain parts of Holy Scripture you think, (for reasons to yourself best known,) are not to be looked upon as inspired in the same sense as the rest of the volume. Just as reasonably might you try to persuade me that our SAVIOUR was not in the same sense our SAVIOUR when He ate and drank at the Pharisees' board, as when He cast out devils and raised the dead. Was He not equally the Incarnate WORD at every stage of His earthly career; from the time that He was laid in the manger, until the instant when He expired upon the Cross? The degradation which He endured in Pilate's judgment-hall did not affect the reality of the great truth that the GODHEAD was indissolubly joined to the Manhood in His Person. He was not less very GOD as well as very Man when some one spat upon Him, than at His Transfiguration and at His Ascen- sion into Heaven ! . . . Why then should the mean aspect and lowly office of certain parts of Scripture, (genealogical details and the narrative of what we think ordinary occurrences,) be supposed to disen- title those parts to the praise of being as fully inspired as any thing in the whole compass of the Bible ? 1 See above, pp. 2 5. The reader will find an interesting passage based on this analogy, in the Appendix (F). 108 THE HISTORICAL BOOKS OF THE BIBLE. [SERM. I may remind you, in passing, that the narrative of Scripture, even in its humblest, and (to all appear- ance) most human .parts, has a perpetual note of Divi- nity set upon it. The historical portions are through- out interspersed with indications that the writer is beholding the transactions which he records, from a Divine, (not a human,) point of view. GOD is in- variably, (sooner or later,) mentioned as the Agent ; or there is some reference made to GOD ; or to GOD'S Word. As Butler expresses it, "The general de- sign of Scripture .... may be said to be, to give us an account of the world, in this one single view, as Govs world: by which it appears essentially distin- guished from all other books, so far as I have found, except such as are copied from it k ." k Analogy, P. n. c. vii. The same thing has been more fully expressed in a volume of Sermons which deserves to be far better known than it is : " I suppose that if there is one portion of the Old Testament which a discriminator would set aside as less needing to be reckoned inspired than other parts, it is the Historical ; the books which are strictly narrative. Now it may seem to have been providentially ordered, in the purpose of meeting this view, that these books are made to bear on them most peculiarly the stamp and the claim of Inspiration. For they do not profess to be so much the account of what Man did, as what GOD did in ruling men, and guiding human events. They are a history of a pro- vidential course of events, and, (which is the point,) as seen from the providential point of view. They are a history written not on Earth, but above the skies. Events are spoken of therefore in this view. A man's obduracy is recorded thus, ' GOD hardened his heart.' A king numbers his people; it is recorded as a thing suggested in the spiritual world. In fact, the historic volume of the Old Testament is a history of the secret springs of things; it is a narrative of things which none but GOD ALMIGHTY could know ; not Man's Word therefore at all, but GOD'S." Sermons, by the Rev. C. P. Eden, pp. 153155. Several other extracts from the same suggestive volume of a very excellent Divine, will be found in the Appendix. IV.] THE TITLE ON THE CROSS. 109 I entreat you therefore to disabuse your minds of the very weak, aye and very fatal, notion that the cata- logue of the Dukes of Edom is less, or in any different sense, inspired, from the rest of the narrative in which it stands. We may not multiply miracles needlessly, it is true ; but neither may we deny the miraculous character of certain transactions, (as the two Draughts of Fishes,) which, apart from the recorded attendant circumstances, would not have been deemed mira- culous. In truth, however, Holy Scripture, in one sense, is a miracle from end to end; and if we may not multiply miracles needlessly, certainly we are not at liberty to dismiss the recorded details of a single miracle, as of no account. Consider also, I entreat you, whether it is credible that Inspiration should be a thing of such a nature, that it comes and goes, is here and is gone, once and again in the course^of a single page. "What ? does it vanish, like lightning, when the Evangelist's pen has to record the title on the Cross, to re-appear the instant afterwards ? This allusion to the title on the Cross of our Blessed LORD, variously given by each of the four Evangelists, reminds me of the singular perversity of mankind when this subject of Inspiration is being treated of; and to this, I now particularly desire to invite your attention. When a document is simply transcribed by the Evangelist, or may be supposed to have been merely transferred to his pages, men assert that so purely mechanical an act precludes the notion that Inspiration has had any share in the transaction. Be it so !; Behold now, four inspired writers exhibiting the brief title on our LORD'S Cross with considerable verbal diversity ; and you will hear the same critics open-mouthed against the Evangelists' claim to Inspi- 110 INCONSISTENCY OF HUMAN CAVILS. [sERM. ration, for exactly the opposite reason ! It is just so of places quoted from the Old Testament in the New. Faithful transcription, (we are told,) is in the power of all. "What note of an inspired author have we here? But the places are not faithfully transcribed. On the contrary. They exhibit every possible degree of deflection from the original standard. And lo, the Apostles of CHRIST are thought not to have quite un- derstood Greek, to have mistaken the sense of the Hebrew, and to have been the victims of a most capricious memory. For the last time. Certain nar- rative portions of Holy Scripture, (it is assumed,) could have been written without the aid of Inspi- ration; and therefore it is unphilosophical, (we are told,) to assign to them a divine original. But the marvellous parts of Holy Scripture, which seem to claim a loftier original than man's unaided wit, these you view with suspicion, or you deny ! . . . . "Whereunto shall I liken the men of this gene- ration ?" Before dismissing the subject, I must ask you to observe, that this arbitrary, irreverent method of ap- proaching Holy Scripture, is absolutely fatal; and can result in nothing but general unbelief. It con- fessedly leaves the individual reader to decide what parts of the Bible he thinks could, what parts could not, have been written without Divine assistance; a point on which I am bold to say that he is not com- petent even to form an opinion. In other words, it constitutes every man the judge of how much of the Bible he will retain, how much he will reject. To put the case yet more plainly, it makes every man a GOD to himself, and the maker of his own Bible. For, mark you, the exceptions taken against a gene- IV.] NATURE AND OFFICE OF INSPIRATION. ' 111 alogy, or a catalogue of names, are just as applicable to the account of our LORD'S Discourses as given by St. John. Once convince me that the function of Inspiration ceases when a genealogy has to be set down, because (say you) it requires no Inspiration to enable an Evangelist to copy written words; and I shall have no difficulty in convincing myself that St. John's Gospel, from the xivth to the xviith chap- ters inclusive, is not inspired, because I cannot but infer that then neither can it require Inspiration to enable an Evangelist to copy spoken words. The ori- ginal fallacy, I repeat, the irpwrov \jsevdos, con- sists in your supposing yourself a competent judge of the nature and office of Inspiration ; concerning which, in reality, you know nothing. You can but reverently examine the phenomena of the Book of Inspiration; remembering that you have everything to learn. The Bible, it cannot be too often repeated, too clearly borne in mind, the Bible must stand or fall, or rather, be received or rejected, as a whole. A. Divinity hath over-ruled it, that those many Books of which it is composed should come to be spoken of collectively as if they were one Book. As it was for- merly called rj ypafyrj "the Scripture," so is it hap- pily called "the Bible" (the Book) now. "Moses the Prophets and the Psalms," was the recog- nized analysis of the volume of the Old Testament. The Gospels, the Epistles, and the Apocalypse, exhi- bits the sum of the contents of the New. There is no disjoining the Law from the Gospel. There is no disconnecting one Book from its fellows. There is no eliminating one chapter from the rest. There is no taking exception against one set of passages, or supposing that Inspiration has anywhere forgotten 112 A REMONSTRANCE FROM ANALOGY. [SERM. her office, or discharged it imperfectly. All the Books of the Bible must stand or fall together. " Nothing can be put to it, nor anything taken from it 1 ." It is a fabric hard as adamant; and the gates of Hell will assuredly never prevail against it. But remove in thought a single stone; and in thought, that goodly work of Lawgivers and Judges Kings and Prophets Evangelists and Apostles, collapses into a shapeless and unmeaning ruin m . Nor may it occasion perplexity, or breed mistrust in any thoughtful mind to find this Book of GOD'S Law so complex in its character, so various in its contents, so fruitful in its difficulties. Might it not, on the contrary, have been expected beforehand, that some analogy would have been recognizable be- tween the general complexion of GOD'S Works and of GOD'S Word? While I behold the creatures of GOD so various, their functions so marvellous, their nature so little understood, the very purpose of their creation so great a mystery; shall I think it strange that that Book which is but another ex- pression of GOD'S Mind and Will, proves diverse in texture, and difficult of interpretation ? Shall I grow rebellious against the message, because the history of it is hid in the long night of ages ; say rather, in the counsels of GOD'S inscrutable will ? or shall I be incredulous that it comes from Heaven, because I see the fingers of a Man's hand writing upon the plaister of the wall ? or shall I despise those parts of it of which I cannot detect the medicinal value? As there are riddles in Nature, so are there riddles in Grace. Ano- malies too, it may be, are discoverable in both worlds. 1 Eccl. iii. 14. So Deut. iv. 2: xii. 32. Rev. xxii. 19. m See the Appendix (G). IV.] VASTNESS OF THE SACRED PROVINCE. 113 Give me leave to add, that as the microscope reveals unsuspected wonders in the one, so does minute ex- amination bring to light undreamed of perfections in the other also; unimagined proofs of divine wisdom, and skill But beyond all things, there is per- haps this further thing which it behoves us to con- sider : that the field of either is very vast ; the sub- ject-matter very complex : and as, in one, many Pro- fessors are needed, (for the Animal kingdom and the Vegetable kingdom are realms apart: the analysis of substances, and the structure of the Earth demand the undivided attention of different minds;) so does it fare with the other also. The languages of Scripture are in themselves a mighty study ; and the collation of the Text is the portion of a long life. The Law of Moses would abundantly engross the time of one who should undertake to explain its depths ; as the Gospel of JESUS CHRIST would assuredly fill to overflowing the soul of another who should desire to appreciate its perfections. The Prophetic writings are a distinct field of labour. The same may well be said of the Epistles of St. Paul. It would be easy to multiply de- partments ; for I have said nothing yet of Sacred His- tory ; and above all, of Sacred Exegesis. But enough has been stated to introduce the remark that consider- ing how slenderly one man is able to labour in all these various provinces, it behoves each one of us to be humble ; and certainly to be a vast deal more mis- trustful of ourselves than some of us unhappily seem to be ; especially when the errand on which we pro- pose to come abroad is the assailing of the authenticity, or the morality, or the integrity, or the Inspiration, of any part of the Bible. Our own amazing ignorance, our many infirmities, our faculties limited on every i 114 NEED OF HUMILITY. [SERM. ? might well keep us humble in the presence of Him whose knowledge is infinite ; whose attributes are all perfections ; whose very Name is ALMIGHTY ! Shall we, on the contrary, presume to sit in judgment upon His Word, which claims to be none other than the authentic record of His Providence, the Eeve- lation of His very mind and will ? . . . Truly, in this behalf, beyond all others, we seem to stand in need of the solemn warning : " Dangerous it were for the feeble brain of Man to wade far into the doings of the Most High: whom although to know be life, and joy to make mention of His Name ; yet our soundest know- ledge is to know that we know Him not as indeed He is, neither can know Him. And our safest eloquence concerning Him is our silence, when we confess with- out confession that His glory is inexplicable; His greatness above our capacity and reach. He is above, and we upon earth : therefore it behoveth our words to be wary and few n ." And this brings me naturally back to the subject of my first Sermon from this place ; and enables me to conclude, as I began, with an earnest entreaty to the younger men present, that, whatever their future destination in life may be, but especially if the Ministry is to be their high privilege, (and the blessed- ness of that choice they can have no idea of, until they prove it by experience !) ; an entreaty, I say, that they would now be assiduous, and earnest, and regular, and punctual, and devout, in their daily study of one chapter of the Bible. And while you read the Bible, read it believing that you are reading an inspired Book : not a Book inspired in parts only, but a Book inspired in every part : not a Book unequally inspired, n Hooker's Ecd. Pol, B. i. c. ii. 2. IV.] THEORIES OF INSPIRATION TO BE REJECTED. 115 but all inspired equally: not a Book generally in- spired, the substance indeed given by the Spirit, but the words left to the option of the writers ; but the words of it, as well as the matter of it, all all given by GOD. As it is written, " Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of GOD" I illustrated sufficiently, last time, in what way fulness of Inspiration is consistent with the expression of individual character : even while I availed myself of the ancient illustration that an inspired writer is like an instrument in the harper's hand . I did not, of course, " intend thereby to affirm that the Writers of Holy Scripture were constrained to write, without any volition or consciousness on their part. . . . ALMIGHTY GOD, while He inspired the Writers of Scripture, did not impair their moral and intellectual faculties, nor destroy their personal identity p ." Let me not be told therefore that this is to advocate a mechanical theory of Interpretation. Theory I have none q . The Bible comes to me as the Word of GOD ; and, as the Word of GOD, (the LOED being my helper !) I will receive it. I should as soon think of holding a theory of Providence and Freewill, as of holding a theory of Inspiration. I believe in Providence. I know that I am a free agent. And that is enough for me. The case of Inspiration seems strictly parallel. I believe in the Divine origin of the Bible. I see that the writers of the several books wrote like men. ... See above, p. 77. v The Inspiration of the Bible, Jive Lectures, by Chr. Words- worth, D.D. 1861, p. 5. ^ For some remarks on Theories of Inspiration, see the Ap- pendix (H.) i2 116 REMARKS ON THE [SERM. That outer circle of causation, which, leaving each indi- vidual will entirely free, so controuls without coercing, so overrules without occasioning, the actions of men, that all things shall work together for good in the end, and the great designs of GOD'S Providence find free accomplishment ; all this, far, far transcends your and my powers of comprehension. It is as much beyond us as Heaven is higher than the Earth. And, in like manner, we must be content to own that Inspi- ration, the analysis of which is so favourite a pro- blem with this inquisitive age, is far, far above us likewise. To St. Luke "it seemed good" to write a Gospel ; and doubtless he held high communing on the subject, which may, or may not, have sounded like ordinary human converse, with St. Paul. St. Mark in like sort, beyond a question, enjoyed the help of St. Peter, while he wrote his Gospel. But St. Peter and St. Mark, and St. Paul and St. Luke, were all alike, however unconsciously, held by the Ancient of Days within the hollow of His palm ; and, as Augustine says, "Whatsoever He willed that we should read concerning His acts and sayings, that He commissioned the Evangelists to write, as though it had been Himself that wrote it r ." The guidance was remote, I grant you. The mechanism which moved the pens of those blessed writers was far above out of their sight; and complex beyond anything which the mind of man can imagine; (so that the publican lisped of "gold, and silver, and brass 8 ;" and the companion of St. Peter, at Kome, wrote Latin r " Quicquid Ille de Suis factis et dictis nos legere voluit, hoc scribendum illis tanquam Suis manibus imperavit." St. Matth. x. 9. IV.] NATURE OF INSPIRATION. 117 words in Greek letters*; and the Physician of An- tioch withheld the statement fhat the woman who had spent all that she had in consulting many physicians, "was nothing bettered, but rather grew worse u ;" and the beloved disciple perhaps indulged his own personal love while he recalled so largely the dis- courses of his LORD :) but, for all that, the long se- quence of cause and effect existed ; and the other end of that golden chain which terminated in the man, and the pen, and the ink, and the paper, the other end of it, I say, was held fast within the Hand of GOD. The method of Inspiration is but another of the many thousand marvels which on every side surround me; one of the many things I cannot fully under- stand, much less pretend to explain. But I may at least believe it in silence, and adore*. And, (forgive me for keeping you so long; but I cannot let you go until I have emptied my heart a little more on this great, and most concerning subject ;) mark you, Sirs, however reluctant some of you may be to admit that you agree with me, you do agree with me, almost to a man. For, what mean your reasonings on Holy Scripture, your sermons, and your dissertations, and your catechizings, your for- mulae of belief, and your definitions of Faith, except you believe in a vast deal more than the substance of Holy Scripture ? How can you pretend to expound a text, unless you hold the words of that text to be inspired ? What inferences can you venture to draw from words, the Divinity of which you dare not affirm ? *' E. g. Kfirrvpicov : (TTTfKouAareop '. n Comp. St. Luke viii. 43, \vitli St. Mark v. 26. * The reader will be grateful for a beautiful and highly suggestive passage from Eden's Sermons, in the Appendix (I.) 118 THE VERY WORDS OF SCRIPTURE INSPIRED. [SERM. 0, to what endless, hopeless scepticism are you point- ing the way ! "What a variety of most unanswerable questionings will you provoke ! How can you hope ever to convince or convict, if you begin by acquaint- ing your adversary that it is only for the substantial verity of Scripture that you claim Inspiration; the verbal details being quite a different matter ! See you not that you put into his hands a weapon with which he will infallibly slay yourself? Did the Bishops and Doctors of the Church, when they met in solemn Council, did they hold such a theory concerning Holy Scripture, think you, as that the matter of it alone is Divine, the language human ? More briefly, that the words of Scripture are not inspired? What then mean their weighty definitions of Doctrine ; GOD the FATHER, " Maker of Heaven and Earth," GOD the SON, " by whom all things were made :" the SON, " 0eo$" e/c 0eoO," " being of one substance with the FATHER:" " incarnate by the HOLY GHOST of the Yirgin Mary :" who " descended into Hell" "whose kingdom shall have no end:" the HOLY GHOST, "TO Kvpiov KOL TO fcooTnnW," "who pro- ceedeth from the FATHER and the SON?" What means every article of that Creed to which you and I have given our unfeigned assent, and which Atha- nasius would have gladly subscribed to, the most precious jewel in the Church's casket ! Nay, what means St. Paul's commentary on the history of Mel- chizedek, if the very words omitted from Holy Scrip- ture are not a Divine omission ? You will perhaps be told hereafter, (I am speaking now to the younger men,) that quite fatal to this view of the question, is the state of the Text of Scripture : that no one can maintain that the words of Scripture IV.] STATE OF THE TEXT OF SCRIPTURE. 119 are inspired, because no one can tell for certain what the words of Scripture are ; or something to that effect. Now I will not stop to expose the falsity of this charge against the text of Scripture ; (which is implied to be a very corrupt text, whereas, on the contrary, it is the best ascertained text of any ancient writing in the world.) Eather let me remind you, once and for ever, how to refute this silly sophism, the transparent fal- lacy of which one would have thought unworthy of exposure before men of trained understandings ; but that one hears it urged so often and so confidently. See you not that the state of the text of the Bible has no more to do with the Inspiration of the Bible, than the stains on yonder windows have to do with the light of GOD'S Sun ? Let me illustrate the matter, (though it surely cannot need illustration !) by sup- posing the question raised whether Livy did or did not write the history which goes under his name. You, (suppose,) are persuaded that he did, J, that he did not. So far, we should both understand, and perhaps respect one another. But what if I were to go on to condemn your opinion as untenable, because of the corrupt state of Livy's text? Would you not reply that I mistook the question entirely : that you were speaking of the authorship of the work, not about the fate of the copies! . . . Suppose, however, I were to contend that Livy may indeed have fur- nished the matter of his history, but that the form of expression must needs have been supplied by some one else ; still on the same ground of the corrupt state of the historian's text. What would you think of me then? a man who not only confounded two things utterly dissimilar, (the authorship of a book, and the amount of care with which it had been transcribed 120 SUBSTANCE INSEPARABLE FROM FORM. [sERM. and printed ;) but who was for distinguishing the mind of the writer from the expression of that mind ; the thoughts, from the words which are essential to their transmission ! A hopelessly illogical person, surely ! no, Sirs ! Banish the fancy at once and for ever from your minds. You cannot thus dissect Inspi- ration into substance and form. It is a mere delu- sion of these last days, prated of from man to man, until respectable persons begin to give in to the fal- lacy; and persuade themselves that they themselves believe it. They hope thus to avoid the danger which is supposed to attach to hearty belief in the Bible as the very Word of GOD ; as well as to secure for them- selves a side-door, (so to speak,) by which to escape, whenever they are inconveniently hard pressed. How much more faithful, to leave GOD to take care of His own ! How much more manly, to be prepared some- times to confess ignorance ! ... As for thoughts being inspired, apart from the words which give them ex- pression, you might as well talk of a tune without notes, or a sum without figures. No such dream can abide the daylight for a moment. No such theory of Inspiration, (for a theory it is, and a most auda- cious one too !), is even. intelligible. It is as illogical as it is worthless ; and cannot be too sternly put down. The philosophical mind of Greece, (far better taught !), knew of only one word for both Eeason and the ex- pression of it. Lodged within the chambers of the brain, or put forth into living energy, it was still, with them, the Ao-yos. I invite you, as the only in- telligible view of the matter, your only alternative, unless you resolve to run the risk of the most irra- tional rationalism, to take this high view of Inspi- IV.] ANT1CHRISTIAN SPIRIT OF THE AGE. 121 ration : to believe, concerning the Bible, that it is in the most literal sense imaginable, verily and indeed, the Word of GOD. And do you, (for I am still addressing myself to the younger men,) learn to put away from your souls that vile indifferentism which is becoming the curse of this shallow and unlearned age. Ee as for- giving as you please of indignities offered to your- selves; but do not be ashamed to be very jealous for the honour of the LORD of Hosts ; and to resent any dishonour offered to Him, with a fiery indig- nation utterly unlike anything you could possibly feel for a personal wrong. Attend ever so little to the circumstance, and you will perceive that every form of fashionable impiety is one and the same vile thing in the essence of it : still Antichrist, disguise it how you will. We were reminded last Sunday that the sensualist, by following the gratification of his own unholy desires, in bold defiance of GOD'S known Law, is in reality setting himself up in the place of GOD, and becoming a GOD unto himself 7 . The same is true of the Idolatry of Human Eeason ; and of Phy- sical Science: as well as of that misinformed Moral Sense which finds in the Atonement of our LORD no- thing but a stone of stumbling and a snare. It is true of Popish error also ; for what else is this but a setting up of the Human above the Divine, (Tra- dition, the worship of the Blessed Virgin, the casuistry of the Confessional, and the like,) and so, once more substituting the creature for the Creator? "What again is the fashionable intellectual sin of the day, but the self- same detestable offence, under quite a different disguise ? The idea of Law, (that old idea y Alluding to a sermon preached by the Provost of Queen's. 122 ANTIDOTE FOR IMPIETY. [SERM. which, is declared to be only now emerging into su- premacy in Science,) takes the hideous shape of re- bellion against its Maker ; and pronounces, now Mira- cles, now Prophecy, now Inspiration itself, to be a thing impossible; or is content to insinuate that the dis- closures of Kevelation are at least untrue. What is this, I say, but another form of the self-same iniquity, a setting up of the creature before the Creator who is blessed for evermore ; a substitution of some created thing in the place of GOD ! The true antidote to all such forms of impiety, believe me, is not controversy of any sort ; but the childlike study of the Bible, each one for himself, not without prayer. Humble must we be, as well as assiduous ; for the powers of the mind as well as the affections of the heart should be prostrated before the Bible, or a man will derive little profit from his study of it. Humble, I repeat, for mysteries, (remember), are revealed unto the meek 2 ; and the fear of the LORD is the beginning of Wisdom a ; and he that would understand more than the Ancients must keep GOD'S precepts b ; and it is the commandments of the LORD which give light unto the eyes c . The dutiful student of the Bible is permitted to see the mist melt away from many a speculative difficulty ; and is many a time reminded of that saying of his LORD, " Do ye not therefore err, because ye know not the Scriptures, neither the power of GoD d ?" . . . The humble and attentive reader of the Bible becomes impressed at last with a sense of its Divinity, analogous I suppose to the conviction of Eleven of the Apostles that the Man they walked with was none other than the z Ecclus. iii. 19. * Ps. c ^ JQ. Prov. ix. 10. b Ps. cxix. 100. ' Ps. xix. 8. d St. Mark xii. 24. IV.] EXQUISITE STRUCTURE OF SCRIPTURE. 123 of GOD. That similarity of allusion, that sameness of imagery, that oneness of design, that uniformity of sentiment, that ever-recurring anticipation of the Gospel message; alt goes to produce a secret and sure conviction that every writer, under whatever variety of circumstances, had access to but one Trea- sury, drew from but one and the same Well of living water. Marks of purpose, shewn in the choice or collocation of single words, often strike an attentive reader; which, singly, might be thought fortuitous; but which, collectively, can only be accounted for on a very different principle. The beautiful structure of the Gospels strikes him especially ; and he could as soon believe that a song harmonized for four Angel voices had been the result of accident, as that the Evangelists had achieved their task without special aid, throughout, from Heaven. A lock of very com- plicated mechanism, which four keys of most peculiar structure will open simultaneously, must have been as evidently made for them, as they for it. It is almost treason, in truth, to the Majesty of Heaven to discuss" the Bible on the low ground which I have been hitherto forced to occupy. It is quite monstrous, in the first University of the most favoured of Christian lands, that a man should be compelled thus to lift up his voice in defence of the very In- spiration of GOD'S "Word. that Divine narrative, which is for ever rending aside the veil, and disclos- ing to us the counsels of the presence-chamber of the ALMIGHTY ! those human characters, beset with all the infirmities of our fallen nature, whose words and actions yet are shadows of things heavenly and eternal ! O that majestic retinue of types which, from the very birthday of recorded Time, heralded the 124 THE BIBLE NOT FOR CAVIL, [SERM. approach of the King of Glory ! that scarlet thread which runs through all the seemingly tangled web of Scripture, to terminate only in the cross of CHRIST ! How do the features of the Gospel struggle into sight through the veil of the Law ! How do the holy and humble men of heart ever and anon break out into speech, as it were, before the time ; as if they felt the burden of silence too great to be endured ! "Whence is it that we dare to handle the pages of GOD'S Book as if they were a common thing, doubt- ing, questioning, cavilling, disbelieving, denying ? Why choose for ourselves the soldiers' part, who buffeted, reviled, smote, spat upon Him ? . . . my friends, far, far be all this from you and from me ! Never imagine, because this day we have thus spoken, that such discussions are congenial to us ; or that we deem them the proper theme for addresses from the pulpit ; although the coincidence of this day's Collect seems, for once, to lend a kind of sanction to our pre- sent endeavours. Look through the whole range of patristic homilies, and you will not find one of the kind, with which, unhappily, our ears are grown so familiar in this place, ingenious attempts to evacuate Holy Writ of its fulness, on the one hand ; or apo- logies of some sort for its Divinity and Inspiration, on the other. You will take, if you are wise, far, far higher ground, in your private study of its pages ; remembering that "the most generous faith is in- variably the truest ;" nor ever stoop so low as we have been this day doing. Waste not thy precious time in cavil about the structure of the casket which contains thy treasure ; but unlock it once with the Key of Faith, and make thyself rich indeed. Already, (as we were last week reminded), already the IV.] BUT FOR ADORING STUDY. 125 Judge standeth at the door ; and assuredly, thou and I, (to whom GOD hath entrusted so much !) shall have to render a very strict account of the use we have made of the Bible, when we shall stand face to face with its undoubted Author. The season of the year reminds us, as with a trumpet, of that tremendous hour when the veil will be withdrawn from our eyes, and the office of Faith will be ended, and we shall be confronted with One who hath " a vesture dipped in blood, and whose Name is called THE WORD OP GOD." . . . " /have heard of Thee," (we shall, every one of us, exclaim), " I have heard of Thee, by the hearing of the ear ; but now, mine eye seeth Thee 6 !" Job xlii. 5. [SUPPLEMENT. SUPPLEMENT TO SEBMON IV. THEEE is yet another view of the nature and office of Inspiration, another ' Theory' as it would perhaps aspire to be called, which limits the extent of the Divine help and guidance which the writers, con- fessedly inspired, may be supposed to have enjoyed. According to this view, it is admitted that Inspiration was, from first to last, a continuous influence ; exerted equally throughout : but then, it has been suggested that perhaps its office was not to protect a Writer against a certain class of errors. The office of the Bible, (it is argued,) is to make men wise unto Salva- tion. It does not follow that Inspiration, because it guided a sacred writer so long as he wrote of Chris- tian Doctrine, so as to make what he wrote unerr- ingly true, should have protected him against slips of memory; preserved him from inaccuracies of state- ment; from inconclusive reasonings; from incorrect quotations ; from mistaken inferences ; from scientific errors. This is what is said : and because this is a view of the question which is observed to recom- mend itself occasionally to candid, and even to reve- rential minds, it seems to deserve distinct and care- ful consideration. But I must preface all I have to reply by remarking that " a Book cannot [properly] be said to be inspired, or to carry with it the authority of being GOD'S Word, if only portions come from Him, and there exists no plain and infallible sign to indicate which those por- AN UNWORTHY VIEW OF INSPIRATION. 127 tions are ; and if the same Writer may give us in one verse of the Bible a revelation from the MOST HIGH, and in the next verse a blunder of his own. How can we be certain, that the very texts, upon which we rest our doctrines and hopes, are not the uninspired portions ? "What can be the meaning or nature of an Inspiration to teach Truth, which does not guarantee its recipient from error?" So far a living sceptical writer. 1. Now, the first thing which strikes one in this theory, is its extreme vagueness. We hardly know what we have to consider; for nothing is definitely stated. Neither are we informed how many of the phenomena of Inspiration, this view is intended to explain. Again, does the theory apply equally to the Old Testament and to the New ? If it does apply equally to the Old Testament, (and I can see no possible reason why it should not^) then, I apprehend this theory will be found practically to run up into, and to identify itself with, that last described a . For a guidance which has failed to guide^ has been no guid- ance at all; and since whole chapters of the Old Testament will occur to every one's memory which may be thought to have no connexion whatever with 4 Christian Doctrine,' to conduce wondrous little to the ' making men wise unto Salvation,' it will follow that Inspiration is, according to this theory, in effect, of the nature already described, namely, a quality which can never be predicated of any passage of Scripture with entire certainty. The larger part of the Old Testament in fact, by this theory, is exhibited in the light of a common book ; having no pretension to be regarded as part of the Inspired Canon. 8 See above, p. 9599. 128 A VIEW OF INSPIRATION. [SUPP. TO But if this theory simply shirks the question of the Old Testament, then, those who are inclined to accept it, are bound to explain why there should be one theory of Inspiration applicable to the Old Testament, and another for the New : in which difficulty, I must candidly profess that I am not able to render any assistance at all. It is clearly not allowable to over- look the intimate connexion which subsists between the two great divisions of Holy Scripture ; the habi- tual references of the Writers of the New Testament to the writers of the Old, Moses, David, Isaiah, and the rest; or rather, to the utterance of the HOLY GHOST, speaking ly the mouth of those writers. What- ever may have been the Inspiration of the Authors of the New Testament must be assumed to have been that of the Authors of the Old Testament also. 2. But further, (to confine our remarks to the Scriptures of the New Testament ; which, it is mani- fest, the view under consideration specially contem- plates ;) however plausible in the abstract a theory may sound, which would account for a Chronological difficulty, the insertion of what seems to be a wrong name, a quotation made with singular license, an unscientific statement, the apparent inconsistency of two or more accounts of one and the same transaction, in respect of lesser details, a (supposed) inconclusive remark, or specimen of reasoning which seems to be fallacious ; on the supposition that it is not the office of Inspiration to enlighten the understanding on points like these, or to preserve the pen from error ; how- ever plausible, I say, this theory, abstractedly con- sidered, may appear ; it will be found that it will not bear the searching test of a practical application. It would indeed be a great advantage to the cause SERM. IV.] PRACTICALLY TESTED. 129 of Truth, and a great help to individual minds, as well as wonderfully promote the arriving at a sound con- clusion in this perilous . department of speculative Divinity, if, instead of putting up with a vague theory, (like the present,) regardless of its logical bearings and necessary issues; men would compel themselves to apply their view to the actual pheno- mena of Holy Scripture : to carry it out to its legi- timate consequences, and steadily to contemplate the result. I venture to predict that the theory which we are now considering, when submitted to such a test, would be found not only inconvenient, but absolutely untenable. The inconsistency and absurdity which re- sults from it, can, I think, easily be made to appear. For if any one who is disposed to regard it with favour, instead of idly, (as is the way with nine- tenths of mankind,) repeating the formula in terms more or less vague and indefinite; and straightway wincing, falling back on generalities, and in a word shirking the point, the instant it is proposed to bring the question to a definite issue ; if a favourer of the present theory I say, instead of so acting, would take up a copy of the New Testament, and proceed, with a pen in his hand, to apply the theory, by running his pen through the places, (and they must be capable of individual specification !), which he suspects of being external to the influence of Inspiration; or, if you please, which he thinks have been penned with- out that Divine help which makes what is written infallible ; I venture to predict that such an one will speedily admit that his erasures are either so very few, or so very many, as to be fatal to the theory of which they are the expression. If they be confined to " the fifteenth year of Tibe- B: 130 THE THEORY EFFECTS TOO LITTLE, [SUPP. TO rius b ; to the names of the second Cainan c , Cyrenius d , Abiathar 6 , i Jeremy the prophet f ;' to "the sixth hour g ," and so on; no great inconvenience truly will result. But the instant you go a step further, the difficulty begins. Many of the quotations from the Old Testament may be made to correspond with the Hebrew, doubtless, without sensible inconveni- ence : but there are others which refuse the process. However, let it be supposed that all such indications of imperfect memory, or misapprehension of the sense of the Hebrew Scriptures, have been removed; and here and there, that an irrelevant clause in the reasoning has been lopped off, or an unscientific re- mark expunged. After all this has been done, I ven- ture to say that the result will be the reverse of satisfactory, even to the theorist himself. He will infallibly exclaim secretly, I seem to have gained wondrous little by this corrective process. Was it worth while, in order to achieve this, to tamper with the Divine Oracles? The great body of Scripture remains after all, in all its strangeness, all its per- plexing individuality. Meanwhile, piety and wisdom modestly suggest, Is it reasonable to think that Evangelists and Apostles should have stumbled, like children, before dates, and names, and quotations from their own Scriptures ? Surely if this be all that can be objected against the Bible, the very slenderness of the charge becomes its sufficient refutation ! The erasures are so few, in fact, that they refute the theory. But if, on the other hand, the pen be freely used, then the result will be fatal to the theory, because it b St. Luke iii. 1. c j^ ^ 36> a Ibid ^ 2 . St. Mark ii. 26. ' St. Matth. xxvii. 9. * St. John xix. 14. SERM. IV.] OR TOO MUCH. 131 will be fatal to the record. If an ' Essayist and Re- viewer' were to reduce the Gospels to consistency, according to his view of consistency, the Gospels would scarcely be recognizable. If he were to reject from St. Paul's writings every instance of what he thinks fanciful exposition, illogical reasoning, inexact quotation, and mistaken inference; the result would be altogether unmanageable. For any one who at- tends to the matter will perceive that such things run into the very staple of the Apostle's argument; and therefore cannot be detached without destroying the whole. The householder's reason for not remov- ing the tares, ("lest while ye gather up the tares ye root up also the wheat with them h ,") applies exactly. If St. Paul's exposition of Melchizedek be fanciful and untrustworthy, then does the proof of the superiority of our SAVIOUR'S Priesthood over that of Aaron, fall to the ground. If his handling of the story of Sarah and Hagar be an uninspired allegory, then does his argumentation respecting the rejection of the Jews and the calling of the Gentiles disappear. If the fur- niture of the Temple, and the provisions of the Jewish ritual, were not dictated by the SPIRIT of GOD *, then will the Epistle wherein it is found be reduced to proportions which make it meaningless. If Deuter- onomy xxv. 4 has no reference to the Christian Mi- nistry, then the entire context (in two of St. Paul's Epistles) must go at once k It is useless to mul- tiply such instances. Any one familiar with the wri- tings of St. Paul will know the truth of what has been offered ; and will admit that the erasures required by the theory before us will become so numerous as to h St. Matth. xiii. 29. Heb. ix. 8. k 1 Cor. ix. 9 and 1 Tim. v. 18. 132 FURTHER EXAMINATION [SUPP. TO prove, (to a devout mind at least, or indeed to any one of sense and candour,) that the theory is alto- gether untenable. It cannot escape observation, therefore, that how- ever plausible this view of Inspiration may sound, as long as some few petty historical, chronological, and scientific inaccuracies are all that have to be accounted for; the theory (unhappily) proves worthless when it comes to be practically applied; inasmuch as in the writings of St. Paul, for example, there is little or nothing of the kind just specified, to be condoned. Erroneous dates, unscientific statements, wrong names, and the like, form no part of the staple of the New Testament. Such instances may be counted on one's fingers ; and are to be sufficiently explained to render any special theory of Inspiration in order to meet them, quite a gratuitous exercise of ingenuity. 3. On the other hand, if a wider class of phenomena is to be dealt with by this theory, the reader is re- quested to observe that we involve ourselves in a gross contradiction; for we forsake the very principle on which it pretends to be built. The theory set out by reminding us that "the office of the Bible is to make men wise unto Salvation," not to teach physical Science, nor to deal with facts in chronology and the like : and the plea was allowed. But the theory which was devised to account for one class of phenomena is now most unwarrantably applied to account for an- other. "We have travelled into a widely different sub- ject-matter, namely, Divinity proper ! Let it there- fore be respectfully asked, If the Inspiration which the Apostles enjoyed did not preserve them against unsound inferences in respect of Holy Scripture ; and illogical, inconclusive argumentation in things Divine ; SERM. IV.] OF THE SAME THEORY. 133 pray, of what use was it ? We have not been re- viewing a set of Geological mistakes on the part of the great Apostle. To Physical Science, he has scarcely so much as a single allusion. He deals with Christian Doctrine ; with Divinity, properly so called ; and with that only. Pray, was not Inspiration a sufficient guide to him, there ? 4. It is high time also to remind the reader that although the office of the Bible, confessedly, is " to make men wise unto Salvation," it does not by any means follow that that is its only office. In other words, we have no right to assume that we know all the possible ends for which the Bible was designed ; and to lay it down, as if it were an ascertained fact, that it was not designed to enlighten men in matters of Chronology, History, and the like ; seeing, on the one hand, that all the evidence we are able to adduce in support of such an opinion, does not establish so much as a faint presumption that any part of Scripture is uninspired ; and seeing that, on the other, as a plain matter of fact, historical details constitute so large a part of the contents of the Bible ; and that the sacred volume is the sole depository of the History and Chro- nology of the World for by far the largest portion of the interval since that World's Creation. 5. In passing, it may also be reasonably declared, that it is to take a very derogatory view of the result of the HOLY SPIRIT'S influence, to suppose that imper- fections and inaccuracies can freely abound, nay, can exist at all, in a Eevelation which the same HOLY SPIRIT is believed to have inspired. They ought surely to be demonstrated to exist, before we are called upon to listen to the apologies which have been invented to account for their existence ! 134 A DILEMMA. DIFFICULTIES IN [SUPP. TO 6. Let me also advert to a dilemma which seems hardly ever to obtain from a certain class of critics the attention it deserves. If a writing be not inspired, it is of no absolute authority. If a part of a writing be not inspired, that part is of no absolute authority. If a single word in the text of Holy Scripture be even uncertain, (as, for example, whether we are to read 02 or EOS in 1 Tim. iii. 16,) that word becomes with- out absolute authority. We cannot venture to adduce it in proof of anything. Without therefore, in the remotest degree, desiring to discourage the applica- tion of a true theory of Inspiration to the phenomena of Holy Scripture, through fear of the necessary con- sequences, may we not call attention to the manifest awkwardness of a theory which no one knows how to apply, and about the application of which no two men will ever be agreed? the issue of the discussion being, in every case, neither more nor less than this, whether the portion of Scripture under consideration is Human, and therefore of no. absolute authority ; or Divine, and therefore infallible ! 7. A far more important consideration remains to be offered, and with this I shall conclude. Although, when St. Paul appears to reason inconclusively, some of us do not hesitate to refer the Apostle's (supposed) imperfect logic to his personal infirmity, yet, com- mon piety revolts against the proposal to apply the same solution to the same phenomenon when it is observed to occur in the Discourses of our Blessed LORD Himself. It seems to have been providentially ordained, however, that the discourses of CHRIST Him- self should supply examples of every one of those difficulties which it is thought lawful to account for, when an Apostle or an Evangelist is the speaker, SERM. IV.] OUR SAVIOUR'S DISCOURSES. 135 on the hypothesis of partial, imperfect, or suspended Inspiration. Now, since /, at least, shall not be per- mitted to be either vague or general, I proceed to subjoin the proof of what has been thus advanced : . The well-known difficulty about "the days of Abiathar," is found in one of our LOR&S discourses 1 . Here then is a case of what, if an Evangelist or an Apostle had been the author of the statement, would have been called an historical inaccuracy. /?. However unworthy of scientific attention the Mosaic account of the descent of Mankind from a single pair may be deemed, the universality of ( the Noachian Deluge,' the destruction of the Cities of the plain, the fate of Lot's wife, Jonah in the fish's belly, and so forth; to all these (supposed) un- scientific statements our Blessed LORD commits Him- self unequivocally 111 . y. When the Holy One inferred the Eesurrection of the Dead from the words spoken to Moses "in the bush n ;" when He proved that CHRIST is not the son of David, because " David in spirit calls Him ' LORD ;' " and when He shewed from a clause in the 6th verse of the Ixxxiind Psalm, ("I said ye are gods,") that it was not unlawful for Himself to claim the title of SON of GOD p ; I humbly think that the argumentation is of such a nature as would not produce conviction in captious minds cast in a modern mould q . I desire not > St. Mark ii. 26. m All will be found more fully insisted upon at the beginning of the Vllth Sermon. n St. Luke xx. 37-8. St. Matth. xxii. 41-6. p St. John x. 34-6. (pavevra ra> Mavarfj 0eoXoyet* rbv 8c eV 'lepi^w Te Mi X ar)\, K.r.X. The entire passage may be seen in the best annotated editions of Eusebius, (lib. i. c. ii. 17.) since that of Valesius, who first introduced it to notice. But to read it in a truly valuable context, reference should be made to Dr. Mill's Christian Advocate's publication for 1841, p. 92. The note alluded to has been reprinted in Dr. Lee's Discourses On Inspiration, p. 535. 1 Essays and Reviews, p. 31. V.] THE TRUE PRINCIPLE OF INTERPRETATION. 145 that they often speak with consentient voice,) singly, were but fallible men, however famous, as professors of Theological Science, they may have been. This, however, I venture to assume without any hesitation whatever, that if, instead of either of these two ways of ascertaining how Holy Scripture ought to be han- dled, we can be so fortunate as to discover from the Inspired Writers themselves what their method was with respect to the "Word of GOD, in such case, I say, we shall be in a position of entire certainty 01 . We shall then have full warrant for disregarding the dicta of modern sciolists on this great subject ; however arrogant their dogmatism, however confident their unsupported asseverations. I desire to be very clearly understood. My posi- tion is this. All Christian men allow that the Apo- stles and Evangelists of our LORD were inspired. Before such an audience as the present, I will not condescend even to allude to the absolute claim of our SAVIOUR CHRIST, who, as the Son of Man, en- joyed the gift of the Spirit without measure; who, as very GOD, " in the beginning created the Heaven and the Earth," (for, "In the beginning was THE WORD ; and THE WORD was with GOD ; and THE WORD was GOD. . . . All things were made by Him, and with- out Him was not anything made that was made n :") I will not, I say, for every utterance of our SAVIOUR CHRIST pause even, to claim the entire reverence of our hearts, the prostrate homage of our understand- ings. . . . Well then. If we can but discover what the mind and method of these several speakers and writers was, with regard to the Interpretation of Holy Scripture; on what principle, and with what senti- m See Appendix (J). * St. John i. 13. L 146 THE BIBLE UNLIKE ANY OTHER BOOK. [SERM. ments, they handled the Book of GOD'S Law; we shall have discovered the thing of which we are in search. For the Author of a book must perforce be allowed to be the best judge of the method and in- tention of that book : the HOLY SPIRIT must be al- lowed to be the best authority as to His own meaning ! Now this method, (of which, as I will presently remind you, we possess a great many specimens,) proves to be very extraordinary. It altogether esta- blishes the fact that the Bible is not to be interpreted " like any other book." That it could not be so inter- preted, might have been confidently anticipated be- forehand, from the very fact of its Divine origin . What I mean, Since, "by the mouth of David," the HOLT GHOST is expressly declared by CHRIST and by St. Peter to have " spoken;' 7 and since the Psalms collectively are described by St. Paul as the utter- ance of the HOLY GHOST; since Jeremiah's witness is said to be the witness of the HOLY GHOST ; and the HOLY GHOST is actually said to have spoken by Isaiah; while the Spirit of CHRIST Himself, (St. Peter says,) dwelt in the Prophets: in a word, since " holy men of GOD spake as they were moved by the HOLY GHOST," and the provisions of the Mosaic Law are to the same HOLY GHOST by St. Paul emphatically ascribed 5 ; stubborn facts, you are requested to ob- serve, which Essayists may prudently suppress but which no Sophistry on earth can either evade or So Bp. Butler, in a passage which will be found below, at p. 165-6. Yery different is the judgment of Professor Jowett, who is of opinion that " it will be a further assistance in the consideration of this subject, to observe that the Interpretation of Scripture has nothing to do with any opinion respecting its origin." Essays and Reviews, p. 350. P See above, pp. 55 57. V.] THE SUBJECT GRATUITOUSLY MYSTIFIED. 147 deny : seeing, I say, that Holy Scripture is declared by inspired men to be the utterance of the Eternal GOD, it was to have been expected beforehand that its texture would bear witness to its Divine origin ; and that, to interpret it "like any other book," would be to forget its extraordinary character. Interpret Sophocles and Plato, if you will, like any other book, for a very plain reason; but beware how you apply your purely human notions to the utterance of the Ancient of Days ; for that utterance, enshrined in one particular volume, clearly makes that one volume es- sentially unlike any other volume in the world. You are particularly requested to observe, further, that singular pains have been taken to mystify this entire subject. It has been a favourite device to multi- ply difficulties, real or imaginary, and so, to create a miserable sense of the dangers which fairly hem the subject in, in order to render more palatable a des- perate escape from them all. Thus, we are told of the risks to which Grammatical nicety, and Ehetorical accommodation expose us ; and again, the snares into which the Logical method may betray. Metaphysical aid, we are assured, mystifies ; and even Learning, (would to Heaven we had a little more of it !) obscures the sense q . Might we just take the liberty of sug- gesting that the study of the exploded works of German unbelievers, (of which Germany herself, thank i Professor Jowett in Essays and Reviews, pp. 393 402. He adds, " Discussions respecting the use of the Greek article, have gone far beyond the line of utility. There seem to be reasons for doubting whether any considerable light can be thrown on the New Testament from inquiry into the language. . . . Minute corrections of tenses or particles are no good." (p. 393.) And this, from a Regius Professor of Greek ! L2 148 THE HOLY SPIRIT^ METHOD [SERM. GOD ! is beginning to be ashamed,) on the part of men of very moderate intellectual powers, however wise in their own conceit; and with no previous Theological knowledge to guide them, is another yet jnore fruitful avenue to error ? . . . Next, we are threatened with the manifold inconveniences which would ensue from the discovery that there is more than one sense in Holy Scripture, (that one sense being assumed to be, not the sense intended by its Divine Author, but the sense which the first hearers may be supposed to have put upon it r .) "If words may have more than one meaning," (it is not very logically argued,) " they may have any mean- ing 8 ." We are told a great deal about " the growth of ideas ;" and of human prejudices ; and of " the disturbing influence of Theological terms." But all this kind of thing, it will be perceived at once, is altogether foreign to the matter in hand. Ought Scrip- ture to be interpreted like any other book, or not ? That is the real question ! Has Scripture only one meaning, or more ? That is the point in dispute ! Above all, What is the true principle of Scripture Interpretation ? That is the only thing we have to discover ! ISTow, as for how the principles of Divine Interpre- tation are to be discovered, it is undeniable that there can be no surer way than by discovering what is the method of the HOLY GHOST ; by inquiring, what is the method of our SAVIOUR CHRIST, and of His Evan- gelists, and of His Apostles ? 1. Surely it is needless to remind an audience like the present, what that method is ! Turn the first page of St. Matthew's Gospel, and weigh well the three famous cases of Interpretation which there encounter r See below, pp. 164-5. Essays and Reviews, p. 372. V.] MUST BE THE TRUE METHOD. 149 you*: namely, the assurance that Hosea's words, " Out of Egypt have I called my son u ;" that Jere- miah's declaration concerning the tears of Rachel x ; and that the many prophetic utterances concerning " the Branch 7 ;" found fulfilment, each, in CHRIST. The first, when, at Jehovah's bidding, He was carried up out of Egypt into Palestine ; the second, when the bereaved mothers of Bethlehem wept for their mur- dered offspring ; the third, when CHRIST, being bred up in Nazareth, was called a " Nazarene," the root of which, etymologically, denotes "a branch." But look further, and your surprise will increase at discovering how extraordinary the Divine method is. "When our Saviour cast out evil spirits and healed the sick, St. Matthew declares that He fulfilled that prophecy of Isaiah, " Himself took our infirmities and bare our sicknesses 2 ;" the language of the prophet in fact being, " Surely He hath borne our griefs and carried our sorrows* ;" which, as far as the words go, is rather a different thing. 2. But it is St. Paul who affords us the largest induction of instances. When he would establish the right of the Clergy to have due provision made for them, he finds his warrant in a most unexpected place of Scripture. " Say I these things as a man? or saith not the Law the same also ? For it is written in the Law of Moses, ( Thou shalt not muzzle the mouth of the ox that treadeth out the corn.' Doth GOD care for the oxen here alluded to b ? (/x?) r&v /3oo>z/ * St. Matth. ii. 15 : 17, 18 : 23. u Hos. xi. 1. x Jer.xxxi. 15. y e.g. Is. xi. 1. Also Zech. iii. 8 : vi. 12. Jer. xxiii. 5 and xxxiii. 15. * St. Matth. viii. 17. ' Is. liii. 4. b For consider Exod. ix. 19, Jonah iv. 11, &c. 150 SPECIMENS OF INSPIRED [SERM. rco 0ew ;) or saith He it altogether for our sakes ? For our sakes, no doubt, this is written c ." I re- mind you of the entire passage, because it is so very express. Elsewhere, St. Paul adduces a few verses from the viiith Psalm, the primary and more obvious meaning of which appears to assert nothing more than the supremacy of Man's present nature over the in- ferior races of animals ; (" all sheep and oxen, yea and all the beasts of the field d .") The application of it, in a prophetic sense, to the supreme dominion of our Redeemer over all created beings in Heaven and Earth, is certainly not one which would naturally suggest itself to us; yet is it for this purpose, and this only, that St. Paul adduces it; and as confir- matory of the universal sovereignty of CHRIST, the place in question is three times quoted by the same Apo- stle 6 , Elsewhere, when he would warn persons who have been partakers of both Sacraments, of the danger of final rejection, he cites the example of the Fathers of Israel in the "Wilderness. " The waters of the Eed Sea were a wall unto them, on their right hand and on their left f ," and the watery Cloud covered them e 1 Cor. ix. 8 10, quoting Deut. xxv. 4. See also 1 Tim. v. 18. " It seems providentially appointed that texts of the Old Testa- ment should be called out into Christian meaning which are the very texts we might have dismissed into a transitory interest. ' Thou shalt not muzzle the ox that treadeth out the corn.' * Humane provision !', modern observation might say. ' Is it for oxen GOD careth ?' is an Apostle's interpretation of the same text ; ' or saith He it altogether for our sakes f .... It is a law, we find, prospectively set down for the Christian Church." Eden's Sermons, p. 189. d Ps. viii. 7. e Heb. ii. 68. 1 Cor. xv. 25, and Eph. i. 22. See Shuttle- worth's Paraphrase of the first place cited, p. 394. f Exod. xiv. 22, 29. V.] INTERPRETATION OF SCRIPTURE. 151 above ; whereby it came to pass that " all our Fathers were under the Cloud, and all passed through the Sea ; and were all therefore baptized unto Moses in the Cloud and in the Sea." Moreover, he declares that they " did all eat the same spiritual meat;" (alluding to the Manna ;) " and did all drink the same spiritual drink : for they drank of that spiritual Eock that fol- lowed them: and that RocJc was OB.RIST*" .... Our SAVIOUR'S emphatic application to Himself (in the vith of St. John) of the Manna, "the bread which came down from Heaven," none can forget h . 3. But St. Paul further largely interprets the ordi- nances of the Mosaic Law. Thus, the provision that the High-priest alone should enter, once a year, into the Holy of Holies, not without blood, he interprets as follows; "the HOLY GHOST this signifying," (" the HOLY GHOST this signifying /) that the way into the holiest of all was not yet made manifest, while as the first Tabernacle was yet standing 1 ." He explains further that " CHRIST being come an High-Priest of good things to come, by a greater and more perfect Tabernacle, by His own Blood entered in once into the Holy Place, having obtained eternal Bedemp- tion for us j ." The Veil of the Temple, (he says,) typified CHRIST'S flesh k ; and St. Paul intimates that he could further have spoken particularly of the Golden Censer, and the Ark of the Covenant, and the Pot of Manna, and Aaron's rod, and the Tables of the Covenant, and the Cherubims of Glory 1 . Again, he says, that " the bodies of those beasts whose blood s 1 Cor. x. 14. h St. John vi. 3258. i Hebr. ix. 69. i Ibid., v. 11, 12. k Aia TOV KaraTTfTaoTiaros, roureort TTJS \6yrjK, " hath tithed," " hath blessed," the effect of the act remaining for ever in CHRIST typified by Melchizedek.) This mysterious King of Salem and Priest of the Most High GOD not only tithes but blesses Abraham, who had received from. ALMIGHTY GOD the promises, which included all blessedness, earthly and heavenly. Now, this implies Melchi- zedek' s superiority, for, of course, the less is blessed of the greater. Men who receive tithe here below are mortal ; but the very silence of Scripture respect- ing Melchizedek' s death, symbolically teaches that HE whom Melchizedek typified, yet liveth. And in- deed, (so to speak,) the tribe of Levi who take tithes, paid tithes to Melchizedek in the person of their great progenitor ; because Levi was as yet in the loins of his father Abraham when Melchizedek met him q . . . . I do not ask your pardon for thus leading you in de- tail over one unusually minute specimen of Divine Interpretation. I know well that there are many persons to whom the Divine method is highly dis- tasteful ; and who think their own method of Inter- pretation infinitely better. But, unfortunately for those persons, the question in hand is not a question of taste, but a dry matter of fact. We have to discover what is the Divine method of Interpretation, and no other thing. Its improbability and its inconvenience, its difficulty, and its strangeness, its seeming in- conclusiveness, (apart from the authority on which it rests,) and its certain uniqueness, (notwithstanding the many injunctions we have met with that we must i Hebr. vii. 110. The student in Divinity will find it well worth his while to inquire for a Latin Dissertation by the late learned Dr. W. H. Mill on this subject. V.] OF THE HISTORY OF MELCHIZEDEK. 155 interpret the Bible like any other book r ,) all these considerations are all together irrelevant, and beside the question. St. Paul himself admits that the Dis- course now before us is TTO\V$ /cat Sva-epjjirjvevTOs, long and of difficult interpretation 8 . Some will per- haps be found to inquire how it happens that while so many remote points of analogy are adduced, so obviously typical a circumstance as Melchizedek's bringing forth "bread and wine*" obtains no notice from the Apostle? I answer, For the same reason that Isaac is nowhere spoken of, nowhere so much as hinted at, in the Bible, as being a type of CHRIST. A blind man may see it. It requires no Eevelation from Heaven to teach such things as that ! But the typical foreshadowing of the superiority of our SAVI- OUR'S Priesthood over that of Aaron, in the story of Melchizedek, would infallibly have escaped mankind altogether, unless it had been thus specially revealed. Some there may be so utterly wanting in Theo- logical instinct, or so depraved of taste; so utterly unused to the study of GOD'S "Word, or so unobservant of the characteristic method of it, as to imagine that there is something trifling in the specimens of Inter- pretation before us. I am only concerned to maintain that they are Divine. You may think what you please about them. They are the teaching of the HOLY GHOST. Nay, if unfortunately any persons here pre- sent should think themselves wiser than GOD, I would request them to observe that, singularly enough, GOD has connected with this very exposition a short ad- dress to themselves. It runs as follows : " Concern - * Essays and Reviews, pp. 338, 375, 377, 419-20, 426, 428, 429, &c. The advice is Professor Jowett's. ' Hebr. v. 11. * Gen. xiv. 18. 156 SOLID FOOD UNFIT FOR BABES. [SERM. ing Melchizedek, we have to deliver a long and dif- ficult interpretation* difficult, however, only because ye have become dull of bearing*" (The fault, you ob- serve, is yours. Whereas GOD made your spiritual senses sharp and quick, you have blunted their edge, and are become stupid and obtuse. It follows :) " For when, by reason of the length of time that ye have professed Christianity, ye ought to be Teachers," (pray mark that!\ " ye have need that some one should teach you the first Principles of the Oracles of GOD ; and ye have become such as have need of milk, and not of solid food. For every one that useth milk, is without experience in the "Word of Eighteousness ; for he is an infant. But solid food (arepea rpotprj) is for them that are of full ageV Where you are requested to observe that a specimen of Interpretation you think trifling, the HOLY GHOST calls " solid 'food ;" and yourselves, who in your own conceit represent the World's Manhood x , He calls *7pr/ot&, " babes" .... This discrepancy of opinion strikes me as rather curious. 5. The time would fail, were we to enter as parti- cularly into the Divine Interpretation elsewhere given of another story, apparently as little fraught with mystery as any in the Bible. Who would ever have imagined that the brief narrative of Hagar's dismissal from the house of Abraham at Sarah's instance, was the dXXrjyopia of so Divine a thing as St. Paul declares ; the two Mothers setting forth the two Covenants, (one, bearing children unto bondage, the other, the free Mother of us all : Sinai symbolized by that, the heavenly Jerusalem by this .*) and even Ish- u Noo0pot yeydi/are raty aKoat?. Hebr. V. 11. v Hebr. v. 12 14. x Dr. Temple in Essays and Reviews. V.] MARVELLOUS TEXTURE OF SCRIPTURE. 157 maePs mockery not being without mysterious mean- ing? Such however is the Divine Interpretation. Elsewhere, when St. Paul desires to contrast the me- thod of the Gospel with the method of the Law, (this, glorious ; that, with the same glorious features concealed;) and also to illustrate the present un- belief of the Jewish nation ; the Apostle finds a pro- phetic emblem of their blindness in the veiled coun- tenance of their great Lawgiver, as described in the xxxivth chapter of Exodus. The mystical intention of that veil, (he says,) was to symbolize the nation's inability to look steadfastly to the end of the dispen- sation, and to recognize MESSIAH. Nay, to this hour, while they read their Scriptures, that veil (he says) is upon their hearts. And yet, even as Moses, when he returned to GOD, is related to have taken off the veil from his face, so (St. Paul says) will it fare with the Jews, when they convert and turn themselves to CHRIST. The veil will be withdrawn 7 . Now, I gather from all this, and many a hint of the like kind, that the whole of Scripture is of the same marvellous texture, the Old Testament and the New, alike, whether we have the eyes to see it or not. 6. But I cannot dismiss, the typical character of the Scripture narrative, until I have reminded you of one striking intimation of it which you might easily overlook. " fools and slow of heart," was our LORD'S reproof to Cleophas and his companion on the evening of the first Easter : " Ought not CHRIST r 2 Cor. iii. 12 16. Take notice that in allusion to the place, Exod. xxxiv. 34, (lyruea 6' av sjffstropsvsro Ma>v